"Rosenberg,.Joel.-.Guardians.Of.The.Flame.02.-.Sword.And.The.Chain" - читать интересную книгу автора (Dragon Stories)
Introduction It started as a game. Just a quiet,
pleasant evening for seven college
students. Karl Cullinane, Jason Parker, James
Michael Finnegan, Doria Perlstein, Walter
Slovotsky, Andrea Andropolous, and Lou Riccetti sat down for an evening
of fantasy gaming. It was going to be fun. That's all it was supposed to be. But then gamemaster
Professor Arthur Deighton somehow
transferred them to the Other Side. Without warning, they found themselves in
the world they thought existed only in
their imaginations, in the bodies of the characters they had been
pretending to be. Short, skinny Karl
Cullinane became a tall, well-muscled warrior; crippled James Michael
Finnegan became the powerful dwarf, Ahira Bandylegs. All seven of them changed into different people with unusual
talents. Suddenly it wasn't a game anymore. Jason Parker was the
first to die. He spent the last few moments of his life kicking on the end of a
spear. The others survived, but now they weren't
playing, they were fighting to stay alive,
to escape the wrath and weapons of warriors and wizards, slavers and lords. They had to find the
Gate Between Worlds and return home. They had to, and
they did—but in the doing, they lost far too much. Ahira died at the Gate. Doria went catatonic.
Nothing could be done about that at home. But, back on the Other Side, the
Matriarch of the Healing Hand Society could bring Ahira back to life, could
cure Dona's shattered mind. So they returned to the Other Side. And,
yes, the Matriarch was willing to help
them, just this once. But nothing is ever
free. There were prices to pay, and promises to make. Promises that would be
kept. No matter
what the cost. CHAPTER ONE: Profession "Where we do go from here?"
Karl Cullinane asked, sitting next to Andrea Andropolous on the largest of the
flat stones surrounding the
ashes of supper's campfire. He squinted at
the setting sun as he sipped his coffee. Andy-Andy smiled. Karl always liked that
smile; it brightened up what had been an
already bright day. "Do you mean that metaphorically?" she
asked, tossing her head to clear the wisps
of hair from her face. Extending a slim, tanned forefinger, she stroked his
thigh. "Or are you asking where the
two of us can slip off to, to get some privacy?"
She looked up at him, her head cocked to one side. "I would have thought
that last night would have been enough
for a while. Let's wait until dark, shall we?" He laughed. "That wasn't what I
meant—I was talking about how long we're going to stay here on the preserve. The Hand Society isn't going to let us
live here forever." And I was also wondering how the hell we're going to keep our promise to the Matriarch. "But. . ."He took her hand. "As long as you've brought the
subject up, I wouldn't mind—" A firm, reedy voice sounded in Karl's
head: *This is ridiculous. * Lying on the grass
twenty yards away, Ellegon opened his eyes. Then, raising his head from his
crossed forelegs, the dragon
glared at the two of them. *Can't you think about anything but sexual
intercourse? I know you're only humans, but
must you always be in heat?* Curling and uncurling
his leathery wings, he rose to all fours, sending a flock of birds fleeing from
their perches 17 18 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN in a nearby elm and into chittering flight. Ellegon was small, as dragons go: He measured barely the
length of a Greyhound bus from the grayish-green tip of his pointed tail to the saucer-sized nostrils of his saurian
snout. His cavernous mouth closed, then opened,
releasing wisps of smoke and steam. *I would think that people who were
recently college students could have other subjects on their minds. Now and
then, at least.* Ellegon, Karl thought. You're not being
reasonable. I— *No, never mind. Pay
no attention. Don't bother with me. I'm only a dragon, after all.* The dragon
turned and lumbered away. "Ellegon,"
Karl called out. "Come back here." The dragon
didn't seem to hear. Karl shrugged. "I wish he'd be a bit less—" "—of a pain in
the butt," Walter Slovotsky finished, as he walked up. "But it's your own fault, you
know." He was a big man, although not quite as tall, broad-shouldered, or well muscled as Karl. Here, at
least. Back home, Walter had been a half a foot taller than Karl, and much
stronger. But Karl had been changed in the transfer between worlds, receiving
added height and muscle, as well as skills
that he hadn't possessed at home. There had been changes, but not everything
had changed; Walter still could figure things out faster than Karl could, most
of the time. And that still rankled. "What
do you mean?" Karl asked, irritated. "Tell you in a
moment; I need some coffee." Picking up a rag to protect his hand from the heat of the battered coffeepot's handle, Slovotsky poured himself a
cupful. He seemed oblivious to the
chilly wind that blew across the meadow, despite the fact that he was
shirtless, as usual, dressed only in blousy white pantaloons and
sandals, a tangle of knives and straps at
his hip. With his free hand,
Slovotsky rubbed at the corners of his eyes. Their slight epicanthic folds gave
him a vaguely oriental
appearance, although his features were clearly Profession 19 Slavic, and his black hair was slightly
curly. "You're just asking for a hard time, Karl. There's no reason for it.
He's jealous,
that's all." "Jealous?"
Andy-Andy arched an eyebrow. "Of me? Why? I wouldn't think—" *True.* "—that dragons
would get jealous," she finished, as if she hadn't been interrupted. Perhaps
she hadn't been; Ellegon could easily have turned her out. Karl turned to see
the tip of Ellegon's tail vanish as the dragon disappeared into a stand of trees on
the far side of the meadow. Don't eavesdrop. You want to join the
conversation? Fine. Come on back and chat.
Otherwise, keep out of it. No answer. Walter shrugged, the
corners of his mouth turning upward
in an amused grin. "It's just a matter of attention from Karl. Which
you're getting, and he's not." He jerked a thumb toward Lou Riccetti, who
sat propped against the base of a tall elm, his arms crossed over his blue workshirt, lost in thought.
"Slovotsky's Law Number Thirty-seven: Some people need less
attention than others." He shrugged. "Some want more. It all depends on—" "Ohgod." Perched in a high
branch of a dying oak, Ahira the dwarf shook his head. "Everyone, get
your weapons; Lou, you take my crossbow. Karl, on your horse. Move. There's a bunch of riders galloping toward the
preserve—I think we're about to be attacked." As he spoke, Ahira
was already climbing clumsily but quickly down the tree, supporting himself by
the pressure of his blunt fingers against the rough bark, not bothering to look for branches
to hold on to. Karl dropped his cup
as he jumped to his feet. With a quick, reflexive pat at his swordhilt, he ran across the meadow to where his chestnut mare stood, idly
grazing in the ankle-high grasses. Unless Ahira was jumping at shadows, there probably 20 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN wasn't time to saddle her. He took
the bridle down from the
branch where it hung and quickly slid the bit between her teeth as he slipped the crownpiece over her poll and
tightened it behind her ears. Reins in his left hand, he grasped her rough mane in his right and eased himself to her back,
swinging his right leg over and seating himself firmly. He flicked the reins
and dug in his heels. What the hell is going on? he thought. *I can see
it a bit better, and—* Make it
quick. We're about to be attacked. *No, we are not. This is what is
going on.* Ellegon opened his mind. Craning his long
neck to see over a rocky outcropping, Ellegon stared out over the Waste of Elrood. Off in the distance,
five shapes moved quickly across its cracked, dusty
surface. He concentrated on
them; they zoomed into view. All five were filthy humans, mounted on horses. Quite possibly tasty horses. Three of the humans rode together as they
pursued a fourth, a half-naked, skinny one, wearing a metal collar with a
dangling length of chain. The fifth rider, dressed like the other pursuers in matching green tunic and leggings,
galloped in toward the quarry from a different direction. Thanks, Ellegon, Karl thought. The fifth one probably took a different route than his friends; he's
trying to cut the slave off before he reaches the tabernacle grounds. *He will. His horse is much fresher than
the other four. * "Andrea!"
Ahira shouted. "Get up to the bluff. Hide in the bushes, and when they get
close enough, hit as many as you can with your sleep spell. We'll sort it out
later. Right
now, I just want to—" Profession 21 "No," Karl
said, reining in his horse next to the dwarf. "They're not after us. It's four soldiers, chasing an
escaped slave. They're not going to come close to the clearing. Andy, how far
can you reach with your sleep spell?" She waved her hands
helplessly. "Two, three hundred feet. At best." Ellegon, do any of
them have bows? You didn't notice before, and I couldn't tell. "Two
of them do. Karl, we've got to talk about—* Save it for later. He turned to Andrea. "No good. They'd
cut you down before you got in range. Ellegon and I'll take care of it." Get
airborne, and give me a hand. Karl had the only horse among the five of
them; depending on how far away the hunters
and their quarry were, he might have to hold the fort all by himself for
several minutes before the others could
arrive. Karl had a great
respect for his own fighting skills, but a single man successfully taking on four or more was a longshot, no matter how handy that one man was
with a sword. But with Ellegon overhead, there probably wouldn't be a
fight at all; few people would risk being roasted
in dragonfire. *No. * What? *I thought I made that clear. No, I will not get airborne. They have bows. I'm scared.* That was bizarre.
Ellegon's scales were as hard as fine steel; he was almost immune to any
nonmagical threat. But there was no
time to discuss that. "Ellegon's out— I'll slow them up. Catch up with me
as soon as you can." Andrea reached out and grabbed at his
leggings. "Wait. I've got a—" "No
time, didn't you hear me? escaped slave. Stay out of it; I don't want to have to
worry about your getting hurt." He jerked his leggings out of her grasp. Ignoring
Ahira's shouts from behind, he kicked his 22 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN horse into a canter. Galloping her down the
incline to the He cantered down the slope toward a break
in the trees. Beyond it, touched with the
red light of the setting sun, the Waste of Elrood lay in harsh, bright
flatness. Long ago, what now was the Waste had been covered with lush greenery like the wooded sanctuary
surrounding the tabernacle of the
Healing Hand. A thousand years ago, a death duel between two wizards had
ended that; now a vast ocean of sun-cracked
earth spread across the horizon. A quarter of a mile ahead, a dustcloud
roiled. At its head the lone rider, keeping
a bare hundred-yard lead on three others, dodged his horse to avoid the
fourth rider coming from the side. Four on one. I hate
four on one. But that was the way it
had to be, at least for a while; it would take Walter, Ahira, and Riccetti a good five minutes to catch up. Karl would be hard pressed to hold off four warriors
for that length of time. A five-minute swordfight would be an eternity. *Then again,* the dragon's voice sounded
dimly in Karl's head, *you might just be
able to talk to them.* Bets? He dug in his heels. As he neared the quarry, the man swerved
his horse away. A half-naked, skinny wretch
with a badly scarred face, rivulets of sweat running down his dust-caked
chest, he jerked on the reins with his cuffed hands, the dangling links of chain tinkling in bizarre merriment. "N'var!"
Karl called out in Erendra. Don't run. "T'rar ammalli." I'm
a friend. No good. The man obviously figured that
Karl was with the others; his clothing was similar to theirs. To him, it must
have looked like a trap, as though yet another
horseman had appeared to cut him off just a few hundred yards away from the sanctuary of the tabernacle Profession 23 grounds. A low moan escaped his lips
as he cut perpendicularly across Karl's path. As though he had waited for just this
chance, the fourth pursuer let fly a whirling leather strap, weighted at both ends. Twisting through the air, it spun
across the intervening yards and
tangled itself in the rear legs of the quarry's horse. Whinnying in pain
and fear, the horse tumbled to the ground, sending the rider flying. He tumbled
head over heels on the rough ground, and then fell
silent. There wasn't time to see to the fallen
man. If he was dead, there wasn't anything to do. Injured, he probably could
keep for a while; Slovotsky, Ahira, and Riccetti would be along with the bottle of healing draughts. Reaching across his
waist, Karl drew his saber. "Easy, now," he whispered to his horse, while he settled the reins in his left fist. "Just stand
easy." He waited for the four
soldiers. As their horses pranced to a panting halt,
he took a quick inventory of their weapons.
All four were swordsmen, wearing the wide-bladed shortsword popular in the
Eren regions. Karl could probably handle that, on horseback. His ruddy mare was a large and powerful
animal; likely he could dance her
around that tired assortment of lathering
geldings while his saber's greater reach took its toll. But the two at the rear of the group had
crossbows strapped to their saddles. That could be bad. Very bad. But. . . crossbows? If they had them, why
hadn't they used them? *Stupid. Dead . . . isn't worth . . .
much.* Ellegon's voice was dim now that
Karl was on the very edge of the dragon's
range; worse, the flow of words had developed gaps when Ellegon wasn't
concentrating. Right, he thought,
wondering if the dragon could hear him. He faced the four men. "Ryvath
ed," he said, letting the
guttural Erendra r roll off his tongue. It stops here. 24 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN The leader, a burly, bearded swordsman,
answered him in the same language. "This is none of your concern," he said, moving his horse closer to
Karl's. "The slave is the
property of Lord Mehlen of Metreyll, whose armsmen we are—laws regarding
abandoned property do not apply." Karl could just
barely hear Ellegon. *Stall. Just stall.* He couldn't stall for long. The younger of
the two bowmen had
unstrapped his crossbow and was fumbling for one of the bolts
in the wooden quiver strapped to the cantle of his saddle. But it was at least worth a try.
"You," he said in Erendra, "if you touch that bowstring, I'll
take it away from you and wrap it around
your throat." The largest of the four was almost a head shorter than Karl;
perhaps he could intimidate them for a few minutes, until the odds evened up. The bowman, a blond youth who looked to be
in his late teens, sneered. "I doubt that," he said. But his fingers stopped their search for a bolt. Good. Just a few more minutes. "Now, we can talk," he said, lowering the point of his sword. He listened for sounds from behind him.
Damn, nothing but the clattering of hooves
as the quarry's horse got to its feet. The escaped slave was, at best,
feigning unconsciousness. At best .
. . To hell with it. "He is not a
slave. Not anymore. He is under
my protection." It was only fair to give them a chance; Karl had made a
promise to the Matriarch, but he could
hardly fulfill it by killing everyone in this world who tolerated—or
even supported—the ownership of people. It wouldn't work, even if Karl was
willing to wade through a sea of blood. Dammit. There had been a time
when the most violent thing Karl could remember doing was blocking too hard during a karate
lesson. Profession 25 But there have been some changes made. "You're not going to take
him." The leader snorted.
"Who are you?" He raised an eyebrow. "You don't look like a daughter of the Hand. You're ugly as most of them, granted, but—"
He cut himself off with a shrug. "What do you suggest we do? We have chased him a long way—" "Turn around and
ride away," Karl said. "We will just leave it at that." The leader smiled, his right hand snaking
across his body toward the hilt of his sword. "I doubt—" His words turned into a bubbling gasp as
the point of Karl's saber sliced through his
throat. One down. Karl kicked his horse over to
the next swordsman, a pock-faced beardless
one, who had already drawn his sword. There was no time to
waste; he had to take this one out and get to the bowmen quickly. As the other slashed down at him,
Karl parried, then thrust at the man's swordarm. No-Beard was ready
for that; with a twitch of his arm, he beat Karl's sword aside, then tried for a backhanded slash to Karl's neck. Karl ducked under
the swing and used the opening to thrust through to his opponent's chest, the flat of his blade
parallel to the ground. The point slid through the leather tunic as if through cheesecloth. Karl jerked his saber
out. Wine-dark blood fountained, covering his sword from its tip to its basket hilt and beyond,
staining Karl's hand and wrist. He had gotten through to either the aorta or
the heart. It didn't much matter which;
No-Beard would be dead in seconds. Karl spun his horse around to face the
others. Like mirror images, the two bowmen
turned their horses and galloped in
opposite directions. He hesitated for a moment.
At close quarters, he could take
both. But with just a few yards between them, one 26 THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN of the bowmen could drill him through
while he killed the other. There was no choice.
He would have to take out one, and worry about the other later. The bowman to the
left wheeled his horse about. Two tugs at his saddlestraps unlimbered his
crossbow; he reached down to his
waist for a three-pronged beltclaw. Forty yards of broken ground separated
Karl from him. Karl dug in his heels and kicked his
horse into a gallop. If he could
get to the bowman quickly enough... Thirty yards. Bracing the butt of the crossbow in a notch in his saddle, the bowman slipped
the claw over the bowstring and
pulled it back, locking the string into place. The beltclaw
fell from his fingers. Twenty yards. With trembling hands, the bowman drew a foot-long feathered bolt from his quiver,
slipped it into the crossbow's groove, and nocked it with a practiced movement of his thumb. Ten. He raised the bow to
his shoulder and took aim, four fingers curled around the crossbow's long trigger. With an
upward slash, Karl knocked the crossbow aside,
the bolt discharging harmlessly overhead. As the bowman reached for the dagger at his belt, Karl speared him through the chest. The sword stuck. Damn. Karl had been in too much of a hurry; he hadn't made sure that the flat of his blade was
parallel to the ground—the damn sword had wedged itself in between two ribs. As Karl tried to jerk it loose,
the blood-slickened hilt twisted out
of his fingers. The limp body of the
bowman slipped from the saddle, carrying Karl's sword with it. He swore,
and— Agony blossomed like
a fiery flower in the middle of Karl's back. His legs went numb and lifeless. As he started to slip from his mare's back, he tried to
hold on to her mane, but a spasm jerked the rough hairs from his fingers. he landed on his side on the hard ground, his
body Profession 27 twisted. From the corner of his eye, he glimpsed the fletching of the
crossbow bolt that projected from his back. He felt
nothing, nothing at all from the waist down. My
spine. Ellegon, help me. Please. No answer. Nothing. Through a red cloud
of pain, he saw the other bowman still his horse's jittery prancing and reload
his crossbow, taking the time to aim carefully. It was the blond boy he had
threatened before. Beyond him, Ahira, Walter, and Riccetti ran across the sun-baked plain,
weapons carried high. But there was no way that they could reach the bowman in
time. The point of the
bolt drew his eyes. Shiny though rust-specked steel, glistening in the ruddy light
of the setting sun. It bore
down on him; the bowstring— —snapped, sending the bolt looping
end over end in the still air. A long red
weal drew itself across the boy's leg; as he lowered his hands to protect
himself from his invisible attacker, he was jerked out of the saddle. He collapsed in a
heap as Walter Slovotsky ran up and took up a position standing over the boy, one knife in each hand. "Go take care of Karl,"
Slovotsky addressed the air. "I'll see to this . . . trash." A staggered line of dust puffs drew itself
across the ground toward where Karl lay. "Easy," Andy-Andy's voice murmured. "Lou has the bottle of
healing draughts. It won't hurt much longer." Gentle, invisible fingers cradled his head. Quietly, she spoke
harsh, awkward syllables that could only be heard and forgotten while Karl watched Lou Riccetti puff
and pant his way across the plain, an ornately
inlaid brass bottle cradled in his arms. And then, as her
dismissal of the invisibility spell began to take effect, the outline of her head appeared, superimposing itself over his view of Riccetti. 28 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN The image solidified: first the brown
eyes, faintly misted with tears. Then, the slightly too-long, slightly bent nose, the high-boned cheeks, and the full
mouth, all framed with the long brown hair that was now touched with red
highlights in the light of the setting sun. Karl had always found Andy-Andy beautiful, but never more so than now. "Andy, my legs—" "You stupid shit."
She slipped an arm under his shoulder and clumsily flipped him over onto his
belly. "Quick, give it here." A cork popped. A wrenching pain forced a scream from his
mouth as the bolt was drawn from his back.
But, horridly, the pain still
vanished in mid-back. He was paralyzed. No. Please God, no. He tried to
talk, but his mouth was as dry as the
Waste. And then a liquid coolness washed the pain
away. It vanished, as though it had never been. "Twitch
your toes, Karl," she commanded. He
tried to. And they moved. He was all there; he felt everything, everything
from the top of his aching head all the way
down to where his right great toe throbbed. Probably sprained it when
I fell. "Thanks." He tried to get his arms underneath him, to push himself to his feet. "That will be enough of that,"
Andy-Andy said. "We're running
short of the healing potion. I had to give you most of it to take care of the hole in
your back. We can't afford to have you swallow any more
just to take care of the shock to
your system. So you just lie there. I've got to go see to the
man that got knocked off his horse." "Don't bother," Ahira said, his
voice a low rasp. "Must've
snapped his neck in the fall. He's dead. Damn." *But,* Ellegon's
voice sounded in Karl's head, *he died free. You gave him that gift. * Wonderful. Tears welled up. He
hadn't done anything right.
He should have listened to Andy-Andy: If he had Profession 29 only waited a few moments, she could
have cast her spell of invisibility on him; the escaped slave would never
have been scared into turning
aside; the bola would have missed. And Karl
would never have been shot, not while he
was invisible. It could have all been done so easily, if only he had waited. And, now, it's all
a waste. *No. It was not.* That's
easy for you to say. Coward. *Listen to me, Karl. He was too far away; I couldn't hear much of his mind as he tried to escape; I
don't even know his name. But I did hear one thing, when he saw you, and mistook you for one of the pursuers. I
heard him thinking, "No—I'd rather die than go back."* And if
I'd waited— *He still would have
died, sometime soon. Perhaps ten years from now, perhaps fifty. No time at all; you humans are so ... ephemeral. But he might not have died
free. Always remember that he died a free man.* And was that so much? *He thought so. What right have you to dispute it?* The dragon's mental voice became gentle. *You've
had a difficult time. Go to sleep now. Lou will rig a travois, and we'll
bring you back up to camp.* But— *Sleep.* Weariness welled up and washed him in a
cool, dark wave. Ahira looked down at the bound form of the
blond bowman and swore softly under his breath. "What the hell are we going to do with this?" The youth didn't
answer; he just stared listlessly at the ground. The dwarf rested his hands on the hilt of
his double-bladed battleaxe. The axe was the simple answer, and probably the
best one. But possibly not. In any case, there
was enough time for a leisurely decision whether or 30 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN not to kill the bowman; with his hands tied
to the roots of an old oak,
he wasn't going anywhere. Walter stooped to
check the knots. "It'll hold him. Do you want me to have Ellegon keep an
eye open?" Ellegon. That was another matter. If that
damned dragon of Karl's hadn't turned coward suddenly— *Two points. I belong
to myself, not to Karl Cullinane, or anyone else. Secondly, I did not suddenly "turn
coward," dwarf. I am a coward, James Michael Finnegan. I have been, for
more than three hundred years.* Don't
call me that. My name is Ahira, *Now it is. And what scares you the most?* "What does that have to do with
anything?" *I will show you, if
you insist. But I suggest you save it for later, Ahira. For the time being, let it
rest that there is one thing that frightens me just as much as the thought of being
crippled James Michael Finnegan frightens you. * Slovotsky chuckled.
"I'd take him at his word, were I you, little friend. You weren't around when
he gave Karl a taste of what
being chained in Pandathaway's cesspit felt
like. Check with Karl before you let him show you." He raised his
head and addressed the air. "Ellegon? Do me
a favor and tune us out; I want a private conversation with the
dwarf." *Very well.* The dragon's mental voice went silent. Slovotsky shook his
head. "Not that I trust him to keep out of our heads. It's just that since he's agreed to, he probably
won't let the cat out of the bag to Karl. Cullinane's going to be a problem." Ahira looked over to
the far side of the meadow. Under a pile of blankets, Karl Cullinane lay
sleeping in the twilight. A
few yards away, Andrea and Lou Riccetti sat talking
quietly. "Cullinane's
going to be a problem," Ahira echoed, as he and Slovotsky walked to the
far edge of the clearing, away from the bound bowman. "Big deal." Slovotsky cocked his head. "You don't think so?" "Cullinane's
the least of my worries, Walter. We've Profession 31 got bigger ones." Ahira jerked his head
at the bound form of the blond bowman. "Like what we're going to do with William Tell here. Or how long we can stay
on the preserve before the Healing Hand
Society kicks us out." He shrugged. "Right now, I'm more
worried about Riccetti. I told him to take
my crossbow. All he ended up doing
was bringing along the healing draughts for after. Not exactly a big
help. If we'd really needed him in the fight, we would all have been in deep
trouble." Ahira pounded his fist against a tree, sending chips of bark flying off into the night. "Don't get so bent out of shape about
Riccetti; you're missing the big problem." Slovotsky laid a hand on his shoulder. "But take it easy. Try and deal
with one thing at a time, as you used to when you were writing computer
programs—just one step, one problem at a time. "Take Riccetti. So what if he wasn't
any good in a fight? Can't blame him. The
rest of us have the abilities we gained in the transfer. I've got this."
With a smooth, flowing motion,
he pulled one of his four throwing knives from the tangle of straps at his hip, caught the tip of the blade
between thumb and forefinger, and threw it at a nearby tree. It quivered as it sank into the trunk five and a half feet above the ground. Slovotsky patted at his hip. "And
while I'm not in Karl's league, if we can
get a sword for me, I could use it reasonably
well. Not to mention my thieving skills." He walked over and pulled the
knife from the tree, taking a moment to clean it on a fold of his blousy
pantaloons before replacing it in its sheath. "You've got your strength,
your darksight, and your skills with crossbow and
battleaxe. Karl's damn good with his sword; Andy-Andy has her spells." "But Riccetti's got nothing."
Lou Riccetti had been a wizard; he had given
up his magic as his part of the payment to the Matriarch of the Healing
Hand Society for bringing Ahira back to
life.
32 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Which means that I'd
be an ungrateful ass if I gave him hell for not getting involved in the fight. If it wasn't for me— No. That wouldn't
do; recriminations wouldn't be any help! The question, as usual, was what to do
next. "Any ideas on what we do with Riccetti?" A shrug. "We hand that problem to
Karl. Let him work it out; he knows more about weapons and martial arts than both
of us put together. For all I know, he might
be able to turn Lou into a decent swordsman, if the two of them work at
it." Slovotsky seated himself on a waist-high boulder. "Leave that
one alone for the time being. As you pointed out, we've got bigger problems
staring us in the face. Like what we're going to do with the bowman there. If we let him go, we're just
asking for trouble. On the other hand, slicing his throat in cold blood doesn't exactly thrill me." "I don't think it matters whether or
not it thrills you. Not if—and I say if—we have to do it. He'll keep for
a while. . . . You were saying I missed the
big problem?" "Yup."
Slovotsky nodded. "Have you taken an inventory of our supplies lately? It's not just that we're down to our last pound of coffee and last fifth of
Johnny Walker—if we don't get some food, and soon, we're going to be
eating bark in a little while." "Good point.
Make a list tonight, and we'll talk it over in the morning, all five—" *Six.* "—all six of
us." He spun around, startled at the interruption. "I thought you agreed to let us talk
privately." *Sorry.* The dragon's mental voice held no
trace whatsoever of sincerity. Tell me, do you give Karl as much trouble
as you do me? *More. I like him better.* Slovotsky threw back
his head and laughed. "I told you he'd eavesdrop." His face grew somber. "But I'm still
worried about Karl. What the hell are we going to do Profession 33 about him? He could easily have gotten
himself killed today, dashing
off like that. And in case you weren't paying
attention, the Matriarch said that she won't help us anymore. Any further deaths are as final as
. . ." He furrowed his brow as he searched for an analogy. "A temporary rate hike from the phone
company?" Ahira suggested. "Right." "As for
Karl," Ahira said, shrugging, "I've got to try to get him to show a
bit of restraint. He has this thing about freeing slaves—and it's already put a
price on our heads. We can't
have him just rushing off and slashing away every
time he sees someone in a collar." Not that Ahira had
any complaint about Karl's feelings; as James Michael Finnegan, Ahira had
been raised in a world where
slavery was generally considered a wrong.
Or, at least, the prerogative of governments, not individuals. But slavery had been
the way of things in this world for millennia; they couldn't change things overnight, no matter what
Karl had promised the Matriarch, as his part
of the payment for Ahira's revivification. *You can
be sure that Karl won't be restrained, Ahira.*
Oh? And why is that? *Mmmm, just call it professional pride.* Walter Slovotsky
nodded. "The dragon's got a point." He rubbed the back of his hand over his eyes and yawned. Ahira clapped
Slovotsky on the arm. "It's been a long day. Ellegon, you keep an eye peeled on the Waste; Walter, I'll take first watch. Go get some sleep;
I'll wake you in a couple of hours. We'll worry about all this tomorrow." "At Tara?" Slovotsky didn't wait
for an answer; he walked off, whistling the theme from Gone with the Wind. CHAPTER TWO: "That Isn't Much, Is It?" We should be careful
to get out of an experience only the wisdom that is in it—and stop there; lest
we be like the cat that sits down on a hot stove lid. She will never sit on a hot stove
lid again—and that is well; but also she will never sit down on a cold one
anymore. —Mark Twain Back when he was in
school, pursuing one of his many majors, Karl Cullinane had avoided the sunrise religiously; he
saw the dawn only accidentally, unintentionally,
through cigarette-smoke-tearing, caffeine-aching eyes after a night spent among a pile of books and papers,
throwing together a last-minute term paper, or cramming for a final exam. Whenever he could, he
arranged his classes—the ones he didn't intend to skip regularly; the others didn't
matter—to
let him sleep as late as he could. Often he rose at the crack of noon. Back then, he could sleep through anything. Seems there've been
some changes, he thought, sitting tailor-fashion beside Andy-Andy's sleeping form, blankets
piled around him as protection against the dawn chill. The sun rose across
the Waste, touching the sky with pink and orange fingers. When he looked at the Waste through half-closed eyes, it was almost beautiful. 34 That Isn't Much, Is It? 35 *I see you're
awake,* the reedy voice sounded in his head. *Finally.* "I'm
awake," he whispered, rubbing at the middle of his back. No pain; none at all. It wasn't
pain that kept him awake. When a distant breeze had wakened him, Karl had been afraid to let himself fall asleep
again; his sleep had been filled with visions of himself as half a person, chopped off at the middle of his stomach.
And nightmares of wading through
unending pools of blood and gore. "Just leave me
alone, Ellegon." He lay back, pillowing his head on his hands. The dragon had deserted him yesterday; Karl felt no inclination to talk to him
now. * You're being very
immature about this, * the dragon said petulantly. "Leave me alone." "What is it,
Karl?" Andy-Andy whispered, her breath warm in his ear. "Nothing. Go back to sleep." He
closed his eyes. "That's what I'm going
to do." *But I have to talk to you.* No. Andy-Andy cuddled
closer, her long brown hair covering his face with airy, silken threads. Karl
put his arms around her and held her to him. He drew in his breath
to sigh, then spent several long seconds trying to spit out her hair without
waking her. God, how I hate mornings. He opened his eyes. Then again . . . Andy-Andy lay sleeping, the blanket's
ragged hem gathered around her neck, her
features even more lovely in repose. Her long lashes, the olive tone of her
skin, the slight bend in her slightly
too-long nose—an inventory of parts
didn't do her justice. Then again, maybe I'm prejudiced. He reached out a hand to pull the blankets down— *And, then again, maybe you should give
both your hormones and your mammary fixation
a rest, and talk to 36 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN me. You don't understand. Maybe I should make you understand. * Don't. Ellegon's mindlink
could carry more than the dragon's phantom voice or images; it could also transmit
feelings,
experiences. And not just pleasant feelings, either. *Will you listen to me, then?* Carefully brushing her hair away, Karl
sighed. Just give me a minute. He untangled himself from Andy-Andy's sprawling limbs and slipped out of the
blankets, taking a moment to slip his
breechclout on, step into his sandals, and strap their laces around his calves.
He eyed his leggings and tunic, debating with early-morning laziness whether or not to put them on now. Later.
After coffee. Absently, he picked up his scabbarded
saber and slipped the belt over his left shoulder, resting his right hand for
just a moment on its sharkskin hilt. Karl had a tendency to lose things, one way or another, but here, in this world, losing his sword could quickly mean
losing his life. Near the downhill edge of the clearing,
Riccetti and Slovotsky slept under their blankets, their snores barely reaching Karl's ears. Beyond them, on a flat stone next to the
smoldering remains of last night's fire, Ahira sat, drinking a cup of coffee,
keeping watch over the sleeping form of the captive bowman. His head turned,
and he lifted an aluminum Sierra cup in a silent invitation. Nodding gratefully, Karl walked down the
gently sloping clearing, the morning dew clutching at his feet with damp,
chilly fingers. That felt good, in a strange way; the clammy cold was a
physical confirmation that his legs weren't
numb. He glanced at the ashes
of the fire as he seated himself on a flat rock, silently accepting a hot cup
of coffee from Ahira. He shook his head. Ahira shouldn't have been so care- That Isn't Much, Is It? 37 less with the fire. Maybe, by adding enough tinder and kindling, they could tease the embers back into a
roaring fire, but maybe not. And
they had only a couple of books of matches left. Once those were gone, the only
way they would have to light fires would be with flint and steel. Which was a pain, no matter how easy his old Boy
Scout manual had made it look. *I imagine it is. But if I were you, I
wouldn't worry about it. Consider for a moment the fact that the fire is dead,
but the coffee is hot.* Beyond a stand of trees, a gout of orange flame roared skyward. * Think it through. * Another blast of fire cut through the
lightening sky. Karl sipped his
coffee. It was just the way he liked it: too sweet for most people to stomach, with
just a touch of creamer.
"Ellegon? Just take it easy on me, please? I don't think all that well in
the morning." Ahira chuckled. "Who does?" He
sobered. "Sleep well?" "No." He looked down at his
right hand. Somebody had washed the blood from it while he slept, but there were
dry, reddish-brown flecks under his nails and in the hairs on the back of his
hand. "Had a few bad dreams." "I
can't feel too sorry for you; I was up all night." "Slovotsky didn't relieve you?" The dwarf shrugged
his improbably broad shoulders. "I didn't wake him. He's going to need
his sleep. You, too —you've
got a long trip ahead of you. We're short of almost every kind of supply, and
somebody's going to have to go into Metreyll
and do some shopping." He furrowed
his heavy brows, peering up at Karl. "And scouting—we've got to
figure out what to do when the armsmen are
missed. To do that, we've got to know what the situation is, in Metreyll.
Yes?" "Not really. We really have a way to
fix things so we don't get blamed: We leave
the dead men where they are, and put a sword in the hand of the dead
slave." / wish I 38 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN knew your name. I'm sorry, whoever you
are, but you don't have any further use for that body. As a decoy, it might help to save our lives. "If anyone comes
around to investigate, he'll have to decide that the slave had turned to fight, driving one off, killing the
other three; their horses just wandered
away." Ahira snorted.
"You do wake up slow—the locals are going to think that an unarmed,
half-starved slave killed three swordsmen?" "As long as
there aren't any other suspects around, they will. Either that, or they'll have to
decide that somebody, for no apparent reason, came from God knows where to the slave's
defense." "Hmm.
That doesn't sound likely." "No, it
doesn't. Happens to be true, that's all. Occam's Razor, Ahira. Most people use it all
the time, even if they can't
tell you what it is." Karl drank some more coffee. "Got another
idea?" "No." "Then
let's give mine a try." "Agreed." The dwarf nodded.
"Andrea, Riccetti, and I will take care of it. We'll keep their horses,
yes?" "Yes." Not
that the poor assortment of fleabags would be of much use. "But there's something
you're missing," Karl said. "We're low on healing draughts. Someone
has to go over to the
tabernacle and see if we can pry some loose.
Besides, I want to see how Doria's doing." Ahira nodded.
"I'll give it a try. Tomorrow. Although . . . the Matriarch did say we're on our own. No more help.
And that could mean—" "That they won't give us any.
Not that they won't sell us some. We do have the coin Walter and I took
off Ohlmin—" *Only because I brought it here. You
abandoned it near the Gate Between Worlds.* Karl ignored the dragon and spoke to
Ahira. "We should be able to meet their price." That Isn't Much, Is It? 39 "You hope. I'll
check it out. And see how Doria is. If I can. You get the Metreyll
shopping trip." "Agreed." Karl stood. "I'd
better go saddle up my horse and get
going." "No."
Ahira shook her head. "Not until dark. You're taking Walter with
you." "I know," Karl said, irritated,
"that you don't know much about horses, but putting two men our size on one isn't good for a horse, even when there's no
hot sun beating down. And we can't
take one of the new horses; they might be recognized. So I'd better ride
in alone, just me and my horse. I like her.
She did good, yesterday." *Meaning
that I didn't.* Exactly. Ahira scowled. "First of all, you're
not taking your horse; Ellegon's going to
fly both of you over tonight, and drop
you off outside Metreyll. I want Walter to go along, to keep an eye on you. You've got a tendency to
get into trouble." He swigged the last of his coffee, then set the
aluminum cup down gently on a flat stone. "As far as Ellegon goes, Karl, I
wish you'd learn to be a bit more patient with the people you care about. "I had a long talk with Ellegon last
night. He had his reasons. Dammit, Karl, that dragon may be more than three
centuries old, but by dragon standards, he's still a baby. You don't expect a
child to do the right thing, not when he's
scared out of his wits." "And what the
hell did he have to be scared about? All those soldiers had were bows and swords. Nothing for him to be
afraid of." *There was so. I'll show you.* "Don't." Karl stood. "Stay
out of my mind." Ellegon had opened his mind to Karl before, letting Karl
feel what it had been like to be chained in a Pandathaway sewer for three centuries. A dragon's mind
couldn't edit out familiar smells the way a human's could. Three 40 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN centuries of stench. . . . "Maybe you
had a good reason. Just tell
me, for God's sake." *Very well, then—* "No." Ahira shook his head slowly. He lowered
his voice. "Karl has to learn not to make snap judgments, Ellegon. It could get any number of us killed.
Show him. Now." Don't— Ellegon
opened his mind . . . . . . and flew. That
was the secret, after all: Alone, his wings weren't strong enough to lift
him; he had to reach inside
and let his inner strength add itself to the lifting power of his fast-beating wings. Slowly, he gained altitude, as he circled
around the craggy vastness of Heiphon's reaches until the ledge where he had been born was far beneath him, the
hardened shards of his shell only vague white flecks, barely discernible. Ellegon worked his
wings more rapidly, until the wind whistled by him. He began to tire, and let the frantic beating of
his wings subside until they barely kept him flying. Then it occurred to him
that if his wings weren't sufficient, possibly they were superfluous; perhaps
his inner strength alone could support him in the air. -So Ellegon curled his
wings inward, and lifted even more with his inner strength. And dropped through the sky like a stone. In a panic, he spread his wings against
the onrush of air and worked them, scooping air from in front and above, whisking it behind and below. For a moment, it
seemed as though his frenzied effort had no effect, but then the craggy peak
slowed its menacing
approach, stopped, and began to fall away. Another lesson
learned, he thought. It seemed that his inner strength couldn't support him all
by itself, either. It would have been nice if there were someone to tell him that, instead of letting him learn by
trial and error. That Isn't Much, Is It? 41 But that is the way
it is for dragons. We have to learn for ourselves. It didn't occur to him to wonder how he knew that, or how he knew
that he was a dragon. A mile below him, a gap in the clouds
loomed invitingly. He eased the frantic
beating of his wings until he started to lose altitude and dropped
slowly through the gap, letting the cottony
floor of clouds become a gray ceiling. Below him, lush greenery spread from
horizon to horizon, broken only by the
brown-and-gray mass of the mountain called Heiphon, a blue expanse of water to
the south, and a dirty brown tracing that wormed its way across the grassland, through the forest. What was that brown
line? It cut across the forest and dirtied the tops of the rolling hills,
sullying the greenery. It had to be unnatural, as though someone or something
had deliberately chosen to make the land ugly. He couldn't understand that. Why would
anyone spend time on the ground soiling the
greenery, when one could fly above
it and enjoy it? Ridiculous. He eased back with his inner
strength, spreading his wings as he glided in for a closer look. There was
something moving on the dirt line. . . . There. A strange sort of
creature, indeed. Six legs and two heads; one head long and brown and sleek, the other pasty flesh only
partly hidden by greasy fur. No, he was wrong. It
was two creatures, not one. Both four-legged, although the smaller one's forelegs were stunted. If
it got down on all fours, its backside would stick
up in the air. No wonder it chose to ride on the back of the other; even
a creature as ugly as that would not want
to look more foolish than necessary. But why did the larger one carry it?
Perhaps the smaller was the larval form, and the larger its parent. He flew closer, and as he did, their minds
opened before him. Ellegon began to understand. The smaller creature was a Rheden Monsterhunter; at
least, that was what its small mind said. And the larger had no choice 42 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN about carrying it; it was compelled to, under threat of leather and steel. Another absurdity.
No matter; Ellegon would end the silliness, by eating them both. As he stooped, the Rheden Monsterhunter's
head snapped up. It reached for a strange contraption: two sticks, one bent,
the other straight. That was a bow and arrow,
but what was dragonbane? The Rheden Monsterhunter pulled back the
arrow, and then released it. The stick flew toward Ellegon. He didn't bother flaming it, and there was
no point in dodging it. He was a dragon, after all; surely this puny stick
couldn't hurt him. Its oily head sank
into his chest, just below the juncture of his long neck. A point of white-hot pain expanded across his torso. Ellegon fell. He crashed through the treetops, branches
snapping under his weight, not slowing his
fall. The ground rushed up and struck him; his whole body burned with a
cold, cruel fire that faded only slowly to
black. When he awoke, a
golden cage surrounded his face; a golden collar clamped tightly around his
neck. He lay on his side on the hard ground, his legs all chained together. Tentatively, he tried to flame the chains,
using just a wisp of the fire of his inner
strength. He screamed as his neck burned. Safely beyond his reach, the Rheden
Monsterhunter stood smiling. "It'll take me some days to rig a cart for
you, dragon. But it will be worth it; they'll pay a fine price for you in
Pandathaway." Karl shook his head, trying to clear it.
So, that was why Ellegon hadn't helped him.
It wasn't really cowardice. It was sheer, unreasoning terror.
Definitely unreasoning; if Ellegon had looked into the bowmen's minds, he would have seen that none of their
arrows were tipped with extract of
dragonbane. Dragons were nearly That Isn't Much, Is It? 43 extinct in the Eren regions; the cultivation of dragonbane was a dying
skill. But he couldn't. As
a young dragon—no, as a child— he had been so badly hurt by that crossbow
bolt that the thought of
facing another dragonbane-tipped arrow chased
all rationality from his mind. The pain of the bolt cleaving through his chest . . . *Yes. It hurt. * Karl looked down at his own chest. A
wicked round weal over his heart stared back
at him like a red eye. *Karl, I'm . . . sorry. I was just so scared.* It hadn't been fair to expect the dragon
to leap to his aid. Ellegon wasn't an
adult, not really. Applying adult standards to him was wrong. The dragon was a
curious mix of infant and ancient: By dragon standards, three and a half
centuries of age put Ellegon barely out of babyhood,
but Ellegon had spent almost all of that time chained in a cesspool in Pandathaway. How do you handle a
child who's frightened? Not by shutting him out of your life; that was
clear. Maybe there wasn't a
hard-and-fast rule, but the answer had to start with listening. Karl nodded. So I'll start listening
now. "It's okay, Ellegon. My fault; I should have known you had your reasons. Are you sure that you're willing to fly
us into— near Metreyll, once it gets dark?'" *I'll try,
Karl. I'll try to do better, next time. I will.* He sighed. "See that you do," he said out loud, while his mind murmured, / know you
will. Ahira
stared up at him, his heavy brow furrowed. The dwarf sat
silently for a moment. "I've written down a shopping list, some of the things we're going to need. All of us had better go over it." "No problem.
Something else on your mind?" Ahira nodded. "What are we going to do about Riccetti?
He's practically helpless in a fight, and I'm willing to bet that we're going to go through more than a couple before this is all over." 44 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Sorry, but
there's no easy solution to that one. As soon as I get back, I'll start him on
swordsmanship. But I can't make a swordsman out of him overnight. At best,
it'll be months before he
develops any kind of proficiency. Mmm . . . he's not left-handed, is he?" "No. Why?" He sighed. "It doesn't matter, then.
Lefties have an edge in swordplay, just as
they do in tennis, back home. The
rest of us aren't used to having the blade come from the other side.
It's—" He stopped himself. Of course. An opponent's unfamiliarity
was a huge advantage; it had helped a
Japanese police society disarm numerous samurai at the end of Japan's feudal
era. But the name of the weapon they
carried—what the hell was it called? It hovered just at the edge of his mind. A
length of chain, weighted down at both
ends— *Manriki-gusari. * Thanks.
But how did you know? *I read
minds, fool.* Ahira laughed. "Get some breakfast.
And take it easy for the rest of the day; you'd better be on your toes in Metreyll. Karl?" "Yes?" "I want your word on something. No
fighting unless it's in self-defense." "Fine." Self-defense was a loose
term, one that could be applied to almost any situation by a sufficiently flexible
mind. "That sounds reasonable." *Hypocrite.* Huh? *You have nightmares about wading through
blood, and then the next day you try to wiggle out of Ahira's suggestion that you not shed more unless you
really have to.* Ellegon— "Excuse me," the dwarf said.
"I wasn't finished. You've been known
to have a liberal imagination; Walter decides what constitutes self-defense, not you." That Isn't Much, Is It? 45 "Understood." "Do I
have your word?" "You're not leaving me a lot of
leeway." Karl sighed. "Yes." "Good." Ahira spread his hands.
"Just stay out of trouble. That's all I'm asking. That isn't much, is
it?" *That, friend Ahira, depends.* CHAPTER THREE: Metreyll I was never attached to that great sect, Whose doctrine is, that each one should select Out of the crowd a mistress or a friend, And all
the rest, though fair and wise, commend To cold
oblivion, though 'tis in the code Of modern morals, and the beaten road Which those poor slaves with weary footsteps tread Who
travel to their home among the dead By the
broad highway of the world, and so With one chained friend, perhaps a jealous foe, The dreariest and the longest journey go. —Percy Bysshe Shelley The preserve was miles behind. Half a mile
below, the Waste of Elrood lay in the starlight, a solid expanse of baked, cracked earth, the blankness
relieved only by an occasional stone
outcropping. Shivering only partly from the cold, Karl
clung to Ellegon's back. The cool night air
whistled by, whipping through his
hair. He looked down and
shuddered. Even if the Waste had not held bad memories, it would still have been unpleasant; a landscape like something out of the
pictures the Apollo astronauts had
brought back, with none of the charm of accomplishment those pictures
carried with them. Behind him, Walter Slovotsky chuckled. "I wouldn't 46 Metreyll 47 worry about it, Karl," he called out, his voice barely
carrying over the rush of wind. "It's an advantage—as long as we're at the preserve, anyone who wants
to give us trouble would have to
cross forty miles of the Waste to do
it." *He has a point, Karl. And, powerful as
they are, I'm willing to bet that the Hand clerics are grateful for that protection. * That was probably true. And it pointed up
one of the troubles in this world: Anytime
you had anything, be it a piece of land, a horse, a sword—even your own
life— you always had to consider the
possibility that someone would try to take it away from you. Just because he wanted it. *And is that so different from your
world?* For a moment, Karl's head felt as
though it were being stroked by
gentle fingers—from inside. Then: *Or don't you consciously recall the
Sudetenland, Lithuania, Wounded Knee, or—* Enough. You made your point. Just leave it at that, eh? But, dammit, there was
a difference. Back home, there was at least an acknowledgment that the strong preying on the weak
was wrong. It was reflected in laws, customs,
and folktales, from fables about Robin Hood to the legends of Wyatt Earp. He chuckled. Well, it was the legend that
counted, anyway. Back when he was majoring in American history, Karl had found
several accounts that suggested that the Earp brothers were just another gang
of hoods, as bad as the Clantons they had gunned down—from ambush—at the O.K. Corral. The Earps had managed
to wangle themselves badges, that was all. And when you think about it, quite
probably Robin Hood robbed the rich to give
to himself. Which made sense; in
the holdup business, robbing the poor had to be easier than robbing the rich—but it was bound to be financially unrewarding.
48 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN *That's why they
call them "the poor," Karl. If it was rewarding to rob them, they
probably would be known as "the rich." * Funny. *Only to
those with a sense of humor.* The boundary of the Waste loomed ahead, a
knife-sharp break between the scarred ground
and the forested land beyond. In the starlight, the huge oaks would
normally have seemed to be threatening hulks, but by comparison with the Waste,
their dark masses were somehow contorting. You don't have to go any farther. Set us
down anywhere near here. *Just a short way.* Ellegon's flight
slowed. *Let me put you a bit closer; this way, you won't have so far to walk.* Why the sudden concern for my sore feet? *l have my reasons,* the
dragon responded, with a bit of
a mental sniff. *But since you're so eager to be on foot . . .* The dragon circled a clearing among the
tall trees, then braked to a safe, if bumpy, landing. Karl vaulted from Ellegon's back, landing
lightly on the rocky ground. Reflexively,
he slipped his right hand to his swordhilt as he peered into the night. Nothing. Just trees in the dark, and a
mostly overgrown path leading, he hoped, toward Metreyll. Walter climbed down
to stand beside him. "My guess is that we're about five miles out," he
said, helping Karl to slip
his arms into the straps of a rucksack. "We could camp here and walk into town in the morning, I
guess," Walter said, frowning. He brightened. "Or maybe we
should just walk in now." Karl slipped his thumbs under the
rucksack's straps. "Do I get two
guesses which you'd rather do?" *Be safe. Take three.* "Well?"
Slovotsky jerked a thumb toward a path. "Why not?" Ellegon, you'd better get going. But do me Metreyll 49 a favor: Circle overhead, and see if the path leads to
the Metreyll road. *I didn't set you down here by accident,
fool. Of course it does.* As Karl and Walter moved away, the
dragon's wings began moving, .beating until
they were only a blur in the darkness, sending dust and leaves swirling
into the air. Ellegon sprang skyward and
slipped away into the night, his outline momentarily visible against the
glimmer of the overhead stars. *Be careful,* he said, his mental voice barely audible. And then he was gone. "Let's
walk," Karl said. They walked in silence for a few minutes,
carefully picking their way along the dirt path through the trees. Finally, Walter spoke. "I've
got a suggestion, if you don't mind." "Yes?" "Look, this is just a supply
trip." Slovotsky patted at the leather pouch dangling from his belt.
"Right?" "You have a keen
eye for the obvious." Karl shrugged. "What's your point?" "Hmm, let me put
it this way: I'm not going to take the chance of lifting anything. Granted, as long as we're based in the sanctuary, we've got a nice buffer
zone between Metreyll and the Waste, but there's no need to push it. We
don't want to get the locals angry at us. Too risky." "Fine. So you're not going to use
your skills." That made sense. There was enough to do in Metreyll, and with all the coin they had, money wouldn't be a
problem for a long while. They had to buy provisions and supplies, as well as some hardware. And weapons; the
party was short of spares. "That wasn't what I meant."
Walter ducked under an overhanging branch,
then made a show of holding it out of the way so that Karl could pass. Sometimes,
it seemed as though Walter made too
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN much of Kail's being larger than he was. Then again, maybe that was understandable; Slovotsky had long
been accustomed to being the biggest man in almost any group. "What
I meant," Slovotsky went on, "is that you have "So?" "So we give
Metreyll a bye. No interfering with local . . . customs, no matter how repugnant. At least for the time being. My guess is there's still a reward out
for you in Pandathaway. We don't want reports getting back there about
your still being alive." "Thanks
for your tender concern about my health." Slovotsky snorted. "And thank you for
the sarcasm. I don't particularly care if
you believe it, but I am worried about you. As well as me. If you
start swinging that sword in Metreyll, we're both in deep trouble." "Walter, where
did you get the idea that I'm some sort of bloodthirsty monster?" "Mmm . . .
yesterday was kind of a clue." He held up a hand to forestall KarPs objection. "Okay, that was a
cheap shot. Look—I'm not saying that you really enjoy slicing open someone's
gut. With the exception of the time we
killed Ohlmin and his men, I don't think you've ever liked violence. "But it doesn't bother you the way it
used to. What it comes down to, Karl, is
something you said in Pandathaway,
after you freed Ellegon. Something about if what you're doing is
important enough, you worry about the consequences
later." "Wait—" "No, you wait. Slovotsky's Law Number
Seventeen: Thou shalt always consider the consequences of thy actions.
You could make a lot of trouble for all of us, if you don't keep your head
on." Metreyll - 51 He understood
Walter's point. And it did make a kind of sense; the time he had freed Ellegon had
cost them all much. But to commit himself not to do anything about people in
chains . . . Karl shrugged.
"I gave Ahira my word. Just leave it at that." Walter sighed deeply.
"Unless I can convince you that I'm right, I wouldn't trust your reflexes,
Karl. I've seen the way you clap your hand to your sword whenever you're irritated
about anything. When you know there's no reason to cut someone up, you're safe to
be around, granted; I'm not worried about your stabbing me if I don't put enough
sugar in your coffee. . . . The trouble is, you're thinking as if you were the only one
who can suffer from your actions, dammit." "You sound scared." "I am."
Walter snorted. "Not just for my own tender hide. I didn't want to tell
you this, but . . . Ellegon told me something, on our way over; he tuned you out. Wasn't sure whether you should know or not. He
left it up to me whether and when to clue you in." "And what's this great secret?" "Well, you know
his nose is more sensitive than ours." Walter shook his head slowly.
"It must have made it hell for him in the sewers. But the point is, he
can pick up on things that you and I can't. Even things that a medical lab back home would
have trouble with. Slight biochemical changes, for instance. Hormones, like
that." A cold chill washed
across Karl's back. "Whose biochemical changes?" "Andrea's.
Nobody knows it but you, me, and Ellegon, Karl. She's pregnant, although only a couple
of day's worth.
I guess congratulations are in order, no?" Ohgod. "You're
lying." He turned to face Slovotsky. "Aren't you?" "Nope. Now, did
that drive the point home? If you screw up, you're not just endangering you and
me—and Andy,
for that matter. You get yourself killed or put the
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN rest of us on another wanted list, and you're putting an unborn child's life in danger. Yours."
Slovotsky snorted. "So are you still interested in playing Lone Ranger
right away? If you call me Tonto, I swear I'll stick a knife in you." His head
spun. A baby? "Karl, you—" "Okay. You made your point." I'm going to
be a father. He rubbed his knuckles against the side of his head. There's
going to be a baby depending on me. "Hope so."
Slovotsky said solemnly. Brightening, he clapped a hand to Karl's shoulder. "Hey, can I be the godfather?" "Shut up." Slovotsky chuckled. "You want what?" The blacksmith
turned from his forge, bringing the redly
glowing piece of metal over to his anvil, holding it easily with the
long wroughi-iron pincers. He picked up his
hammer and gave the hot metal a few tentative blows before settling down to
pounding it in earnest. Wary of flying
sparks, Karl moved a few feet back. "I want a length of chain," he said in
Erendra, "about this long." He held his hands about three feet apart.
"With an iron weight on either end—those should be cylindrical, about half the size
of my fist. If you can do that sort of thing." "It wouldn't be
difficult," the smith said, returning his worked iron to the forge. "I can have that for you by noon, if you're in a hurry." Sweat running in
rivulets down his face and into his sparse red beard, he pumped the bellows for a few moments before
pausing to take a dipperful of water from an oaken barrel. The smith drank
deeply, clearly relishing every swallow. He took a second dipperful, tilted his head back, and slowly poured the water
onto his Metreyll 53 upturned
face, then shook his head to clear the water from
his eyes. "What do you want it for?" he
asked, offering Karl a dipperful of water
with a gesture of his hand and a raised eyebrow. "Religious artifact." Karl
accepted the dipper and drank. "I'm an apostle of the metal god." The smith cocked his head. "There isn't a metal god." "Then
I'm probably not one of his apostles." The smith threw back his head and laughed.
"And Teerhnus is liable to get his
proud nose cut off if he puts it where
it doesn't belong, eh? Very well, have it your way. Now, as to the price—" "We're not done yet. I'll want two of
them. And I'll also want to buy some of your
other equipment. I'll need ...
a general-purpose anvil, some basic
tools—hammer, tongs—and a hundred-weight of rod, sheet, and bar stock, a bit of—" The smith snorted.
"Granted, there is enough work for another smith in Metreyll, but you don't look the type." He
set his hammer down and reached out, taking Karl's right hand in both of his.
"From this ridge of callus I'd say you've spent much time with that sword
in your hand, but none with a hammer. And you're
too old to apprentice." Karl drew his hand
back. "It's for a friend. Now, what sort of coin are we talking about for all
this?" It was hard to
concentrate on the transaction with the back of his mind shouting, A father—I'm going to be a father! Teerhnus shook his
head. "You don't know what you're talking about." He gestured at the
seven different anvils scattered around the shop, each mounted on its own tree-trunk stand. They
ranged dramatically in size and shape, from a tiny one that couldn't have weighed more than thirty pounds to an immense, almost cubical
monster of an anvil that Karl
probably couldn't have lifted. "Even a brainless farrier needs at least two anvils to do any kind
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN of work at all. If your friend wants to be
able to do more than shoe horses, he'll need at least three. And I'll need quite a bit of coin
for each. Damn, but it's a pain to cast a new anvil. You are planning to travel
with them?" He peered at Karl from under heavy brows. "I'd be a
fool to help
you set up a friend of yours in competition with me, no matter what the
price." Karl shook his head.
"That's not what I'm planning to do. I swear it." The smith nodded. "On your sword, if you please." Karl slowly
drew his sword, then balanced the flat of the blade on his outstretched palms.
"What I have sworn is true." The smith shrugged.
"I guess that settles it. Nice piece of workmanship, that sword. Are those
Sciforth markings?" "I don't know. Would you like to
see it?" "Of course." Teerhnus accepted the hilt in his huge hands. He held the
sword carefully, stroking a rough thumbnail along the edge. "Very sharp.
Holds the edge well, I'll wager." He flicked the blade with his finger, smiling at the clear
ting! "No," he answered his own question, "that's not a Sciforth
blade. They make good steel in Sciforth, but not this fine. Could be Endell, I
suppose;
those dwarves know their alloys." He rummaged around in a wooden bin until he
found a soft wool cloth, then
handed sword and cloth to Karl. "Where
did you get it?" Karl shrugged as he
used the cloth to wipe the blade; he replaced his sword in its scabbard. He
couldn't answer honestly; the smith wouldn't believe him. Or possibly worse, he might. Back home, on the Other
Side, the sword had been a skinning knife;
it had translated well. "I just
found it somewhere." Better an evasion than to be caught in a lie. "Now, when can you have the
anvils and such ready?" "Hmmm . . . you're planning to be in Metreyll long?" "Not past sunset. I'm en route to . .
." Visualizing MetreyU 55 Ahira's map of the Eren regions, he picked a city at random. "... Aeryk. I plan to be out of
Metreyll by nightfall." "Can't be
done." The smith shook his head. "I do have work to do. I could
spare some rod stock, I suppose, but I don't have any spare hammers, and casting
anvils is just too much
trouble to bother with." Karl produced a pair of platinum coins,
holding one between thumb and forefinger.
The obverse showed the bust of a bearded man, the reverse a stylistic rippling
of waves. "Are you sure?" "Pandathaway
coin, eh?" The smith spread his palms. "Well. . . those two are fine as a down payment, but I'll need six more on delivery." "This is platinum, after all—and
Pandathaway coin, at that. I thought you'd be happy to take these two, and give me some gold back, as well as the iron." "I doubt that." The smith grinned.
"I wouldn't call that thinking at all. Let's agree on seven platinum, and
we'll both be happy." The money wasn't really a problem, but
there was no need for Karl to draw attention
to himself by seeming to have too free a purse. "Three. And you will give
me five gold back. Pandathaway coin, not this debased Metreyll coinage." "Six platinum and six gold. And you
will stay in Metreyll, along with your strong back, long enough to help me cast three new anvils." Karl sighed, and
resigned himself to a long bargaining session. "Four . . ." Five pieces of
platinum, six of gold, four of silver, and a bent copper poorer, Karl waited for Walter Slovotsky in the town
square, near the lord's palace. Metreyll was laid out differently than the
other cities they had seen. Unlike Lundeyll, the city itself had no protecting walls. Unlike Pandathaway, it was both
landlocked and apparently
unplanned; MetreylFs streets 56 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN radiated out from the central palace like a misshapen web, woven by a demented spider. Although calling it a palace might have
been too generous an assessment: It was a cluster of nine two-storied sandstone buildings, surrounded by narrow,
crumbling ramparts. The raised portcullis showed its age: The timbers were splintering, the pulley
chains and spikes so rusty that it was clear that the portcullis was lowered rarely if ever. Two mail-clad guardsmen at the gate eyed
him casually as they sat on three-legged
stools, their spears propped up against the wall nearby, but well out of
reach. Karl nodded to
himself. Ill-kept, unattended defenses were a clear sign that Metreyll hadn't known
warfare for a while, and the lack of challenge from the bored guardsmen meant that the
locals were used to the presence of strangers. "Are you going to sleep just standing there?" Squinting in the
bright sunlight, Walter smiled down at him from the bench of the half-filled
flatbed wagon. "You'll
be glad to hear that beef is cheap—seems the ranchers had too good a year. I
picked up about four hundred pounds of
jerky for a song." He snorted. "Not exactly 'This Way to Cheap Street,' but a song." He set the brake and dismounted, patting
the two hitched mules in passing.
"Although horseflesh—even muleflesh—is afc a premium. I
bought a stallion and another gelding—the
hostler will hang on to them until dark—but they set me back a nice
piece of change. Apparently it's going to be
another bumper crop of cattle this year, and the tributary ranchers are
paving nice prices for labor—all kinds of
labor." Karl smiled as he
took off his rucksack and tossed it into the wagon. "I almost wish we needed
a bit of money. When I was a kid, I fully intended to be a cowboy." He shrugged.
"Maybe we could look into all of us hiring out as hands, anyway. Just for a while."
Of course, they Metreyll 57 would have to figure out how to keep Ellegon out of sight. No, that probably
wouldn't do. He had responsibilities now. Fulfilling childhood fantasies was something he would have to set aside. Walter shook his
head. "I don't think that's such a good idea. All the hiring is for a
cattle drive—and guess where that's headed." "Pandathaway?" Slovotsky nodded.
" 'Everything comes to Pandathaway'—except us, I hope. I doubt they go
easy on felons' accomplices." "Good point. So you keep your eyes open, too." "They never close, Karl. Now, how'd
you do at the smith's?" "Fine, I guess.
Although he struck a hard deal. Come to think of it, I probably was taken. But he
did throw in a couple of used swords." He shrugged. "In any case, we can
pick up that gear at sunset, too. West end of town." He eyed the noon sun.
"Any ideas on what we should do until then?" Slovotsky raised an
eyebrow. "Joy Street? Or whatever they call it. It's down this way—" He held up a palm. "You don't absolutely have to cheat on
Andy, you know. Just a few beers,
while I see what's available. Prisoner of my hormones, I am." Karl laughed. "Why not? I could use a
beer." He boosted himself to the bed of
the wagon and sprawled on a sack of
grain. "You drive." The unpaved street
twisted gently through the markets,
past a drab tarpaulin where a sweaty grain seller
hawked his muslin sacks of oats and barley, a ramshackle corral where a well-fleshed hostler
groomed his tattered assortment of swaybacked mares and half-lame geldings, an open-air workbench where a squinting
leatherworker and a bewhiskered swordsman haggled angrily over the price of a fore-and-aft peaked
saddle. Wagons
creaked through the street, as farmers and
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN their slaves brought sacked grain and caged chickens to market.
Some wagons were drawn by dusty mules, or slowly plodding oxen; others were
handcarts, pulled by slaves. Karl gripped his sword. He fondled the
sharkskin hilt for a moment, then sighed and let his hand drop. Damn Walter
for being right. This wasn't the time or place to get involved in a swordfight.
And besides, I can't solve the problem
by chopping up everyone who owns a slave. That just wouldn't do it. That thought didn't
make him feel any better. "Goddammit." "Just keep cool," Slovotsky
whispered, urging the mules on. The street widened as
the slave market came into view. Surrounded by a hundred bidders and
spectators, a noisy auction
proceeded in front of a boxlike wagon bearing the
wave-and-chain insignia of the Pandathaway Slavers' Guild. The auctioneer accepted a handful of coins
from a farmer, then, smilingly, snapped the farmer's chains around the wrists of a skinny, bearded slave
before removing his own chains. "You should have no difficulty with
this one; he has been well tamed," the auctioneer said, as the farmer looped a hemp rope around the slave's neck. As the slave was led away, Karl shuddered at
the old scars that crisscrossed his back. Well tamed . . . "Easy,
Karl," Walter whispered. "There's nothing you can do about it." One of the slavers brought the next slave out of the wagon.
This slave was a short, dark man in a filthy cotton loincloth. His whip scars
were fresh; livid red weals were spattered
randomly over his hairy torso and legs.
Lines around the edge of his mouth and eyes suggested that he used to smile
often. But he wasn't smiling now; chained at his neck, wrists, and
ankles, he stared sullenly out at the crowd. A cold chill ran up Karl's spine. "Walter, I know him." Metreyll 59 "No
kidding?" Slovotsky's expression belied his calm tone; he looked as if he
had been slapped. "The Games in
Pandathaway—he was my first opponent. Took him out in a few seconds." This was horrible.
An expectant father had no business risking his own life, forgetting the danger
to the others, but this man
was somebody Karl knew. Not a close friend, granted; he didn't even know
the other's name. But someone he knew,
nonetheless. He turned to Slovotsky. The thief shook his
head. "Karl, do us both a favor and get that expression the hell off your face.
You're starting to draw
stares." He lowered his voice. "That's better. We're just a couple of
travelers, chatting idly about the weather and the price of flesh, got it? I
don't know exactly what harebrained scheme
you're working on, but we're not going to do it. No way. Remember, you
gave Ahira your word." "Walter—" Slovotsky raised his
palm. "But this isn't the time to put your honor to the test. We've got
plenty of coin. We'll bid on him. Sit tight for a moment." Tossing the reins to Karl,
he vaulted from the wagon and moved into the crowd. The bidding was
stiff; several of the local farmers and ranchers forced the price from the initial
twelve gold up to more than two platinum. The most persistent, a stocky man in a sweatstained
cotton tunic, followed each of his bids with a glare at Slovotsky, as though
challenging him to go on.
When the bidding topped two platinum, the stocky
man threw up his hands and stalked off, muttering vague curses under his breath. Finally, the
auctioneer raised the twig above his head, holding it delicately between his thumbs and
forefingers. "Will anyone challenge the price of
two platinum, three gold for this man?" he asked the crowd in a practiced singsong. "A worthy, well-mannered
slave, no doubt useful both in the
field and as breeding stock. Both 60 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN he and his sons will work hard, and require little food. No? I ask again, and again, and—" He snapped
the twig. "The slave is sold;
the bargain is made." He nodded down at
Slovotsky. "Do you want to claim him now? Very well. No chains? Two silvers
for the ones he wears, if you want them. I'd advise it; this one hasn't quite been broken to his collar. Yet. And
watch the teeth—he's nasty." Walter reached into his pouch and handed
over the money, accepting the slave's leash and an iron key in return. A few cuffs and curses moved the man down
the platform's steps and over to the wagon. The slave's eyes widened as he saw Karl.
"You're Kharl—" Slovotsky backhanded
him across the face, then drew one of his knives. "Keep your tongue still if you
want it to stay in your mouth." The point of his knife touching the smaller man's neck, he urged him onto the
back of the wagon. The auctioneer smiled in
encouragement before calling for the next slave to be sold. "Just keep
quiet," Karl whispered. "And relax. Everything's going to be
fine." "But—" "Shh." With a clatter, the wagon
began to move. "I know a smith on the edge of town. We have to make a stop first, but we'll have the collar off you in
just a little while. Just be patient." "You mean—" "He means
you're free," Walter said, giving a flick to the reins. "It just won't show quite
yet." The little man's mouth pursed, as though
he were bracing himself for a slap. Then he shook his head, puzzled. "You
mean that, Kharlkuhlinayn." It was half an
unbelieved statement, half a terrified question. At Karl's nod, his
face grew somber. And then his gap-toothed mouth broke into a smile. A special
sort of smile. Karl didn't say anything. Nobody else
would have understood how beautiful that
smile was. Metreyll 61 Unless they had seen
it on the face of someone they loved. Or in a mirror. "Ch'akresarkandyn
ip Katharhdn," the little man said, as he sat on a sack of wheat in the bed of the wagon, rubbing at the lesions left by his chains. The
sores were infected, oozing a hideous
green pus in several places. Undoubtedly,
his wrists and ankles ached dreadfully, but the light rubbing was all he allowed himself. "It's not so hard to pronounce, not as difficult as
Kharlkuhlinayn." "Call me Karl." "You can call me
Chak, if you'd like. You can call me whatever you want." Chak nodded slowly.
"I owe you, Kharl. I don't understand why you freed me, but I owe you." Walter chuckled.
"So your only objection to slavery is when you're the slave." Chak's brow furrowed. "Of course.
It's the way of things. Although . . ."he shook his head. "There's
times when it turns my stomach. Then again, it doesn't take much to turn my
stomach. I'm a Katharhd; we've got delicate
digestion." "What happened
to you?" Karl asked. "When we met, you were living off your winnings
in the Games, but—" "You put an end
to that, Karl Cullinane, and I've spent many an hour cursing your name. When you
knocked me out of the first
round, I was down to my last couple of coppers. Fool that I was, I signed with
this shifty-eyed Therranji; said he was taking on guardsmen for Lord Khoral. Damn elves can't help lying. "In any case,
fourteen of us rode out of Pandathaway. Took a while until we were past Aeryk and clear of the trade
routes. One night, we camped and had dinner— with an extra ration of wine.
Spiked wine; we all woke up in chains, got
sold off in small lots. Seems the Therranji
was a clandestine member of the Slavers' Guild, not a recruiter for
Khoral." Chak shrugged. "He was just 62 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN trying to get us clear of Pandathaway. That
way, chaining us wouldn't bring the Guilds Council down on him for ruining the
damn city's reputation as a safe place to be." His eyes grew vague. "Not that it'll stay safe for him." A clattering came
from around the bend, accompanied by a distant snorting and whinnying of
horses. Chak's nostrils flared. "I know that
bloody mare's whining. It's the wagon of my
former owners." His right hand
hovered around the left side of his waist. "Wish I had a
sword." He eyed the two scabbarded weapons lying on bed of the wagon. "Would you be willing to lend me one?" Karl nodded. "Sure." "No." Walter shook his head. "We don't want
any trouble. Karl, give him your tunic. I
don't want them to see Chak out of
his chains; we don't need loose talk about two strangers who bought and freed a slave." Karl shook his head. "I never gave my
word about not—" "Karl. It comes
down to the same thing. Now, is your word good, or not? Give him your tunic,
please." Nodding slowly, Karl complied. "Just
sit tight for a moment." He tossed the
tunic to Chak, who slipped it on without
comment, although the hem fell well below his knees. Chak sat down, tucking a loose blanket around his legs to
hide that, and began a careful study of the contents
of a muslin sack. Karl snatched the rapier from the bed of
the wagon and tossed it to Walter. Slovotsky raised an
eyebrow; Karl shook his head. "I'm not looking for trouble," Karl said.
"But slip this on anyway. We don't need to look helpless, do we?" "Well ..." Walter conceded the point, belting the rapier around his waist. "Let's look
busy." Karl jumped down from
the wagon and busied himself with offering bowls of water to the mules, while Walter checked the leads of
the trailing horses. Metreyll 63 The slavers' wagon
passed without incident, although the two slavers riding beside it gave
practiced glances at Karl's
and Walter's swords. Karl nodded grimly; when the smith had agreed to throw in
a pair of swords, Karl had deliberately picked a slim rapier for Walter, one
with a well-worn, sweat-browned bone hilt. Since Slovotsky wasn't good with a
blade, it had seemed a sound precaution to
pick a weapon that advertised a nonexistent
expertise. Several grimy faces peered out through the
barred windows of the boxy slave wagon. Chak kept his face turned away, although he couldn't resist sneaking
a peek. As the wagon pulled away, he sighed.
"Damn." The word was the same in
Erendra as in English, something Karl
occasionally wondered about. Karl took his hand
off the pommel of his sword. Walter and Ahira were right; they couldn't afford
to draw attention to themselves here and now. But ..." But that doesn't excuse it. Walter peered into his face. "I'm
sorry, Karl." He spread his palms.
"Slovotsky's Law Number Nine: Sometimes, you can't do anything
about something that sucks." He sighed. "No matter how much it
sucks," he murmured. Chak was already
pulling off Karl's tunic. "That child is what bothers me. Just too
young." Karl raised an eyebrow as he slipped on the tunic. "She's only eleven or so. But
Orhmyst—he's the master; the rest are just barely journeymen—likes his women young. Says they're more fun. He's had this
one for better than a year, ever
since he raided Melawei; kept chattering
about keeping her, even after they get to Pan-dathaway. Said she wouldn't bring much coin, compared with the pleasure." Karl's
heart thudded. "What?" Walter's face whitened. "He's raping
an eleven-year-old girl?" Chak
rubbed at the back of his neck. "Every night. 64 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN And she spends her days whimpering, and begging for some
healing draughts to stanch her bleeding; Orhmyst isn't gentle." Chak pounded his fist against the bed of the wagon. "In the Katharhd Domains, we'd cut off
his balls for that, and not worry
about whether the girl was slave or free." "Walter,"
Karl said, "we can't—" "Shut up, dammit. Give me a
minute." Slovotsky brought his fist to his mouth and chewed on his fingers
for a long moment. Then he threw up his hands.
"Cullinane, if it were possible that
you set this up ... never mind." He glared at Karl.
"You remember what I was saying, about how you sometimes can't do anything about some things that suck?" Karl nodded slowly. "Well, you can just forget it.
Sometimes I don't have the slightest idea of what I'm talking about—" "We
agree on something, at least." "—but for now, how do you want to
handle this? You're the tactician, not me." "I promised
Ahira I wouldn't get in any fights, unless it was a matter of self-defense." He chuckled, knowing what Walter was going to say. "And you also
agreed that I'd decide what constitutes self-defense. This does." Walter flashed a weak grin.
"We'll work out an appropriate rationalization later. Tactics are your
department: How are we going to do it?" Karl smiled.
"We'll follow them, but lag behind. Until it gets dark. Then you get the pleasure of skulking around, doing a nice, quiet recon." He
turned to the little man. "Do
you want in on this? You can have a share of their coin." Chak shrugged.
"I wouldn't mind. Always could use a bit of extra coin. Particularly," he said, patting at a
phantom pouch, "now." He took the other sword from the wagon and drew
it partway out of the scabbard. It Metreyll 65 was a wide, single-edged blade, more of a
falchion than anything else.
Chak nodded. "As long as my share includes
this, it might be worth it." Karl raised an
eyebrow. "And maybe you've a score to settle with these folks?" "That too." Chak smiled grimly.
"There's always that." Karl sat back
against the base of a towering pine, his sword balanced across his lap.
Deliberately, he twisted the
chain of the manriki-gusari between his fingers. It helped to keep his hands from shaking. Overhead, the
branches and pine needles rustled in the wind, momentarily revealing, then hiding the
flickering stars. A cool breeze blew from the west, sending a shiver across his chest. Half a mile down the
road, almost hidden by a stand of trees, a campfire burned, sending gouts of sparkling ashes soaring into the night
sky. Chak grunted. "That friend of yours
is taking too long," he whispered.
"Probably tripped over his feet. Got himself killed." He tested the edge of his falchion's blade, then
sucked at the cut on his thumb for the twentieth time. At least. "Good blade." Karl shook his head.
"No, we would have heard something." "We would have heard that it's a good blade? Truly?" "No, if he'd
gotten into trouble—" Karl stopped himself, then gave Chak a sideways look. The little man's face was a
caricature of puzzlement. "Seems you're getting
your sense of humor back." Chak smiled. "I always joke before a
fight. Helps to steady the nerves. Now, my father, he always used to drink. Claimed it sharpened his eye, tightened his
wrist. And it did, at that." "Oh." Karl was skeptical; he let it show in his voice. A snort. "Until
the last time, of course. His wrist was so tight it was still straight as an arrow after a dwarf chopped his
arm off." He bit his lip for a moment. 66 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Which is why I don't drink
before a fight—joking keeps the
arm looser." He looked over at Karl. "Now that you know all about me, tell me where you're from. The
name is unfamiliar, although you look
a bit like a Salke. A tall Salke, but they do grow them high." Karl shook his head.
"It's kind of complicated. Perhaps I'll go into it sometime." "As you wish." Chak took one end
of the manriki-gusari. "But you will
tell me about this metal bola you're holding. Please? Never seen one
like that before; doubt even you can throw it far." "You don't throw
it, usually. And as to what it can do, I suspect I'll have a chance to show you, in a while." "Damn
sure of yourself, Kharl." "Of
course." He smiled genially at Chak as he knitted his fingers together to
keep them from shaking. In fact, it's all I can do to keep my sphincters under
control. But he couldn't say that. "We were talking about that valley of yours." "Not mine. Not
really; I just passed through it once. But it is pretty. And not occupied, as far as
I was able to tell. At least,
not as of a few years ago. It's just too far away from any civilization; if
anyone wanted to settle there, he'd have to travel for ten, twenty days to get
to the nearest cleric. And since it's in Therranj, it'd be a bitch for humans to do business. Damn elves'll
take you, every time." "But people could live there." "Sure." The
little man shrugged. "Like I said, if they were willing to do without civilized
necessities. I'm—" "Making far too much noise," a
voice hissed, from somewhere in the
darkness. Karl leaped to his feet, his sword in one
hand, the manriki-gusari in the other. Walter Slovotsky chuckled as he stepped
from the shadows. "Relax. It's just your friendly neighborhood thief." Karl quelled an urge to hit him. Dammit, he had asked Mdtreyll 67 Walter,
more than once, not to sneak up on him. And Walter was usually good about it. Just
nerves, I guess. "How
are they set up?" Slovotsky squatted and picked up a twig.
"This is the wagon," he said, making an X on the ground. "The road runs here." He drew a
gentle arc to the left of the X. "Campfire here,
on our side of the wagon; throws light on our side of the road. Chak, there are four of them, no?" "Yes." "Well, I could
only see three. One's on watch on top of the wagon, a bottle of wine and a cocked crossbow to keep him
company. There's a huge one sleeping on our side of the fire—he's got a bow,
which isn't cocked." Slovotsky
shrugged. "But he's sleeping with his sword in his hand. The third
one's in a hammock strung up here, between
two trees." He spat on the ground. "Couldn't find
the fourth. He could be out in the brush relieving himself, but if he is, he's
either got the runs or is constipated as hell. I gave him plenty of time to show up; no sign." "Maybe he's in the wagon?" Walter
shrugged. "Could be." Chak shook his head.
"They don't sleep in the wagons. Too dangerous. And if one of them was with
the women, you would have
heard. They don't use gags. But I wouldn't
worry about it; they've only got the two bows, and we've accounted for those. As soon as the fight starts, the
fourth one will pop up, and we'll cut him down." "So?" Walter asked. "How do we do it?" Karl stood. "We'll play it as.we did
with Ohlmin and his friends, with a bit of the way we handled Deighton thrown
in. Conceal yourself close to the wagon—close enough to be sure you can get the
watchman with your knife—and wait. Chak and I will work ourselves in, as close
as we can. Give us plenty of time to get into position,
then start things off by throwing a knife, taking 68 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN the watchman out. That'll be the signal for Chak and me." "Fine," Walter said. "But
we don't know what their watch schedule is.
What if they switch off before we get there?" "Good point. If all they do is change places, don't
worry about it; just take out whichever one is on the wagon. On the other hand,
if the crossbow moves from the wagon, or if
the slaver by the fire cocks his bow, we'll need to know that before we take them. If that happens, just
slip away; when enough time has passed and Chak and I haven't heard anything,
we'll head back here, rethink the attack, and try again." He turned to Chak.
"You kill the one in the hammock. I'll take the one by the fire." The little man
nodded. "Should be easy. What do I do after?" "Just grab one of their bows, see if
you can find the fourth one. Or help me, if I'm in trouble." "Walter, when
you take the watchman out, try for the chest—but any good disable is fine. Don't
expose yourself to go in for the kill; as soon as you get the watchman, look for the fourth man." He clapped a hand to
Walter's shoulder. "Remember, football hero, you're free safety. We've got to be damn sure we get them all; if one of the bastards
escapes, we're in deep trouble. We don't need for word to get back to
Pandathaway that Fm still alive." Walter's mouth quirked into a smile.
"Bloodthirsty, aren't we?" "You got any goddam objection?" "That
wasn't an accusation. I did say we, after all." CHAPTER FOUR: On the Aeryk Road Those who know how to win are far more
numerous than those who know how to make
proper use of their victories. —Polybius Walter Slovotsky crouched in the tall
grasses surrounding a huge oak, his belly hugging the ground, one of his
four teak-handled throwing knives in his right hand. His palm concealed the blade; a reflection from the
steel could alert his target, twenty yards away. Beyond the boxy slave wagon with the
sleepy-eyed guard sitting cross-legged on its flat roof, the campfire burned an orange rift into the night. From where
he lay, Walter couldn't see beyond
the wagon to where Karl and Chak
were— —should be, he reminded himself. Should
be. They were supposed to have moved
silently into place by now, but
Walter had long ago learned that things didn't go the way they should
around Karl. Not that things always went
badly, just differently. Too bloody much of the time. He slipped his thumb along the cool
slickness of the blade and decided to wait just a few more minutes, to make sure they had gotten to the right places. This had to work just right. If it didn't, the
fact that Karl was still alive would soon be common knowledge, even if a surviving
slaver caught
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN only a glimpse of him. No other men six and a half feet tall made a habit of taking on slavers on the
trade routes of the Eren regions. Come to think of it, no shorter men got
into that habit; the Pandathaway guilds had long made that an ill-advised profession to get into. So why the hell am I in this?
Not because of some eleven-year-old girl
I've never even laid eyes on. It was because of goddam Karl Cullinane.
As usual. Walter could have tolerated knowing that somewhere, some little girl was being mistreated, even raped.
People were being mistreated everywhere; cutting the number by one or
two wasn't going to change that. You had to take the
long view. Maybe there was a way to change things, but it couldn't happen
overnight. Risking
everything for a moment's gratification just didn't make any sense at all. So why did I agree to this? He sighed. Goddam Karl Cullinane. If I
had just shrugged and dismissed it, he'd
have looked at me as if I were a piece of shit. And was that such a big deal? Was Karl
Cullinane's opinion so important? Yes. Ahira was Walter's best friend, and
Karl had worked out a way to bring Ahira out of the grave. That counted for something. That
counted for a lot. And KaiTs growth over the past months
counted for more. When they had arrived on This Side, Karl had been a
directionless flake; Walter had watched him grow, seen him strip away his
shield of not caring, of choosing not to understand others, not to commit himself. It all added up to respect. The simple
fact was that Walter respected Karl, and
wanted to receive the same in turn from him. Walter Slovotsky had always
been respected by everyone whose opinion he
cared about, and he wasn't about to learn how to live without that. He shook
himself. // / don'* pay attention to what's On the Aeryk Road 71 going on, I may have
to learn how to live with a bunch of crossbow bolts in me. He rubbed at a slim scar that curved
around the left side of his collarbone. A knife had left that as a
remembrance of Lundeyll; it hadn't been any fun at all. One of his own knives,
and it had cost quite a bit to get it replaced in Pandathaway. In fact— Enough.
It was time to stop
stalling, and get it done. One way or
the other. He set the knife
down with the bulk of the oak's trunk between it and the view of the watchman, and raised himself on his toes and fingertips, inching
slowly, silently into the cover of the tree. Aim for the chest, Karl
had said. Very well; the chest it would be. Picking up the knife between the thumb and
first two fingers of his right hand, he
stood and moved quickly to his right. Raising the knife to shoulder
level, he threw, then dove for the cover of
the grasses. With a flicker of
steel, the knife tumbled end over end through the night air. The guard must have
seen the sudden movement; with a
grunt, he jerked back and to the side. The knife's hilt caught him a glancing
blow in the left arm, then fell away in the
dark. "Datharrrrti!" the guard called
out as he reached for his crossbow and
jumped to his feet. Raiders! Oh, shit. Karl had said to hide in the shadows, but
he hadn't been counting on this. With a functioning cross-bowman on the roof of
the wagon, the fight would be over before
it began. The bowman, a blocky
little man, leveled his crossbow at Walter. Ignoring the rustle
of branches overhead, Walter broke into a staggered sprint, snatching another of his knives from his belt and throwing it, still on the run.
At least it might distract the bowman for a second or two. With a meaty thunk, the knife sank into
the watchman's thigh. His leg crumpled; he
fell to the roof, a sound halfway
between a scream and a groan issuing from his
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN lips. Clapping his hands to his leg, he
dropped the crossbow. Walter reached the side of the wagon.
Without a pause, he grasped the edge of its
roof and pulled himself up. Below, steel clashed
against steel. Karl fought with the gigantic swordsman who had been sleeping
next to the campfire. Swords flashed in the firelight; screams and shouts filled the
air. Groaning, the watchman pulled the knife
from his thigh, rose to his knees, and
lunged at Walter, stabbing downward. Walter caught the
descending arm with both hands, stopping the razor-sharp point just inches
from his left eye. A clout to the side of his head set the world spinning, but he held on as
they rolled around the rough wood. The watchman's free
hand clawed at Walter's throat; the rough fingers fastened on his windpipe.
Walter tried to drag air into his lungs as they struggled face to face, gasping as he drew in
the foul reek of wine on the other's breath. Inexorably, the knife
moved toward his face, the point seeking his left eye, as if on its own
volition. Walter pushed against the knife arm. The
blade's progress slowed; the point stopped
four inches from his eye. His hands started to
tremble. The point moved closer. Three inches away, then two, then— With a heave, Walter lurched on top of the
slaver, driving his knee into the open
wound on the other's thigh. The watchman
screamed; his fingers loosened from Walter's throat. Just for a moment, the
watchman's right arm lost its strength. Walter didn't wait
for him to recover; he twisted the knife arm behind the watchman's back and up,
past the hammerlock
position, until he felt a sickening, wet pop as the arm separated from the shoulder
socket, the knife falling from the slaver's limp fingers. OntheAerykRoad . 73 The slaver whimpered; feebly, he kicked at
Walter, trying to slide away on his belly. With one smooth
motion, Walter snatched up the knife and stabbed downward into the other's
kidney. He pulled the knife out and stabbed again, and again, and again, as the blood
poured from the slaver's wounds. With a muffled scream, the slaver
twitched, then fell still. Walter's stomach rebelled; he fell to his
hands and knees, sour vomit spewing from his mouth. Wiping his oiouth with a
bloody hand, he willed his body back under
control. Below, Cullinane sliced down at his huge
opponent's swordarm; as the other parried, Karl whipped the manriki-gusari
around the slaver's blade and jerked, sending both the manriki-gusari and his
enemy's sword flipping end over end into the night. He lunged in full extension; his blade slid into the slaver's
throat, almost to the hilt. Blood
fountained as Karl kicked the slaver off his blade; the giant gave a
bubbling groan and fell face down onto the
campfire. As he lay there
motionless, the fire hissed, sending up clouds of smoke and steam. A reek of scorched flesh reached
Walter's nostrils. He gagged, but quelled the urge
to vomit again. "Walter,"
Karl shouted, "are you okay?" Walter nodded. Chak walked slowly into the dwindling
firelight, his falchion dripping with blood.
"Mine's taken care of. But where's
Ohrmyst?" Walter vaulted to
the ground, letting his knees give to absorb the shock. "We've got to find
him. Quickly I If he gets away—" "I know, dammit. I know." Karl
looked from side to side, his face a snarling rictus. "Chak, you go that
way, I'll-" He stopped, lowering the point of his sword. Cullinane smiled.
He scanned the
ground for a 74 THE SWORD AND THE
CHAIN moment, then walked over to the fire and picked up a water bucket and a soft cloth. Ignoring the body
that lay smoldering in the ashes, he
dipped the cloth in the water and started washing his hands.
"There's another cloth here—clean
yourself up. You can use it." What was this
nonsense? This wasn't any time to relax. "Karl—" "I wouldn't worry about the fourth
man," Karl said, cleaning, then resheathing his sword. "Wouldn't
worry about him at all." A distant flapping
of leathery wings sounded from the direction of the road. "Although," Cullinane went on, "next time, I wish you'd look a bit more
closely; Orhmyst was sleeping in a
hammock slung way up high in that oak tree." He pointed at the tree
Walter had hidden under. "When the alarm sounded, he lit out." A dark, massive
bulk came into view overhead; the Chak shouted and dove for the concealment
of the woods. 'Relax, Walter.* Ellegon hovered overhead.
*I don't think Ohrmyst will be talking to
anyone. And would you tell your friend that I'm harmless? Please?* He landed on
the ground with a thump, then
lowered his massive head so that Karl could reach up and pat it. Karl's laugh sounded
forced as he scratched vigorously against the dragon's jaw. "Only
relatively." *True. * Ellegon burped. "What
are you doing around here, anyway?" *I told you I'd do
better this time. And Ahira figured you might get into trouble; he sent me out to check the road from the sanctuary to Metreyll. When I
didn't spot you, I started checking
this road. * Walter nodded, then knelt over the water
bucket, looking away from the body sprawled
over the coals. He splashed water on
his face; the sudden cold helped quell the last traces of his nausea. On the Aeryk Road 75 "That was nice timing, Ellegon," he said. A clattering from inside the wagon jerked
his head around. "Karl, what say we
free some people?" Karl shot a glance
toward the woods. "Chak, it's safe. You can come out now." No answer. 'Don't worry; he'll come out when he calms
down.* Then, accusingly: *You didn't tell him about me, did you?* "Well, no. It
didn't exactly come up. I wasn't thinking ahead." Not thinking ahead. That was Karl, all over. In fact— Ohmygod. "Karl—we're going to free these
people, no?" Cullinane cocked his
head, puzzled. "Of course. That's the purpose of the exercise, after all.
What—" "Bear with me a
minute." A cold wind sent a shiver up his spine. "There's fifteen, sixteen slaves in the wagon, right?" "Not slaves
anymore." Cullinane stooped to pick up his manriki-gusari, then twirled it
easily. "Not anymore." "And, I assume, some of them will
want to join up with us. At least for a
while." Cullinane nodded as
he pulled the smoldering body of the dead slaver from the campfire. He dragged
him a few feet
onto the bare dirt before riffling through his pouch. "Gin," he said, dangling a brass
keyring. "And you're right, but so
what? We've got enough food." "And some might not want to
come with us. They might want to go
home." "So what?" "So," Walter said, impatient,
"we give them some coin, maybe a horse if we can spare one, and wave as they go on their merry way. Right?" "Right." He
lifted his head and raised his voice. "Stand easy in there,"
he said in Erendra. "You will be free in a moment." "Dammit, Karl, listen to me. What happens when they 76 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN start talking about the nice, big man
who—teamed with a dragon, of all things—took on a bunch of Pandathaway slavers, and then freed them? Word
gets back to Pandathaway, somebody puts two
and two together, and—" Cullinane's face went ashen. "And the
hunters are on our tails again." Including Andy-Andy's rather pretty one,
which isn't going to be all that mobile in a
few months. I care about her, too,
Karl. "Exactly what we've been trying to avoid. So what do we
do?" Karl Cullinane drew himself up straight.
"We free them. Period." Walter shrugged.
"Fine. And what do we do about the aftermath?" Karl, if you aren't
scared shitless, you don't understand the situation. - "We work it out. Somehow. Just like
we work out what to do with that Metreyll armsman." He started toward the wagon, then caught himself. "Of course."
As he turned back to face Walter,
his face was creased in a huge smile.
"Did you ever study economics?" "No." What the hell did that
have to do with anything? "I did. For a
while." A mischievous grin replaced the friendly smile. "And economics
is, my dear friend, the answer." - "Well?" "I'll tell you later. C'mon, we've
got some locks to unlock, some chains to
break*. I think I'm going to enjoy this.
You coming?" "Sure." Why not? Besides freeing
them, the only choice was to leave them as slaves, and Cullinane wouldn't accept that. Probably have to cut
their tongues out, as well. And I wouldn't stand for that. So / might as well
get what pleasure I can out of this; sure as anything I'm going to be in front of the blades when the shit hits the fan. As they walked toward the wagon, Karl threw an arm On the Aeryk Road 77 around Walter's shoulder. "You know, there are times when I enjoy this profession. A lot." A
half-shudder went through Cullinane's
body, but his smile remained intact. Understandable. It was one thing
for Karl to feign shrugging off his revulsion for violence, but another matter
to truly take bloodletting for granted. The day you can kill without any
twinge of conscience, Karl, is the day I want to get as far away from you as I
can. "You've really got a
solution?" "The solution, Walter." Cullinane smiled.
"By the way, in case I didn't mention it, you did just fine. If the
watchman had been able to use his bow, all three of us would have been in deep
trouble. The rest of it doesn't matter."
With a sniff, he dismissed Walter's vomiting as irrelevant. "Thanks."
Respect; that felt good. Next question: is Cullinane's
respect worth going through this again?
Next answer: I'll duck that
issue for as long as I can. "But
this idea of yours—you're not going
to tell me yet, are you?" "Nope.
A little frustration is good for the soul." "I'm not going to
like the answer, am I?" *Nope.* Ellegon snorted. 'Not one little bit.* CHAPTER FIVE: The War
Begins If ever there could be a proper time for
mere catch arguments, that time surely is not now. In times like the present,
men should utter nothing for which they would
not willingly be responsible through time and in eternity. —Abraham Lincoln Ahira
sighed, shaking his head. / should have known better, he thought. / really
should have. *Correct.* Thank you, Ellegon. The dwarf spat. Thank you very much.
Any sign of trouble on the Waste? *I would
have mentioned it if there were.* "Is.
There. Any. Sign. Of. Trouble. On. The. Waste?" *No. There is nothing visible on the Waste.* Good.
Stay on watch. The dragon didn't answer; Ahira decided to
take that as an assent. "Karl?" "Yes?" The big man turned from his
conversation with Andrea and
the grimy little girl. "We need to talk. Take a walk with me." "Sure. Give
me a minute." Karl patted Andrea on the arm
and smiled down at the silent little girl, who clung to Andrea's arm as though it were a lifeline.
"See if she'll let you give her
a spongebath—and dig up something else for her to wear." He
switched to English. "Push for the bath,"
he said in a low voice, "and give her as thorough a going-over as you can. She's been through a rough
time, 78 The War Begins 79 and we'd better know if there's anything physically wrong with her." Andrea pulled the
girl closer. "Why not just give her more healing draughts? We've still got some
left from what
you found in the slavers' wagon, no?" "Only three
bottles. I don't know how long they'll have to last. We can't afford to dispense the
stuff when it isn't necessary, just as a precaution." "And if she does need some?" Ahira grunted.
"Then we give to her. Karl, I do want a word with you. Now." "One more
thing." Karl switched back to Erendra and raised his head. "Chak, keep an
eye on the bowman. It won't be for much longer." Sitting across from
the bound youth, Chak nodded, then jerked his thumb at a large wooden trunk next to the
boxy
slave wagon. "Yes, Kharl, but
do you mind if I go through this trunk while I do? I might find something.
Maybe another bottle or two of the healing draughts; maybe some more
coin." "How do you plan on opening it?" Chak smiled. "I think I can find a key." "Go to it, then." Across the clearing,
five other former slaves sat talking with Walter and Riccetti. Three men, two
women, all of them filthy,
although none were apparently injured; despite
his protestations, Karl had been generous with the bottles of healing
draughts he had found in the slavers'
wagon. There wouldn't be
more of that coming their way, at least not from the Healing Hand Society; the Hand acolyte had been more than clear on that point. "Well?" Karl raised an eyebrow. "What is it?" "I sent you into Metreyll to pick up
provisions and supplies, not six—no, seven
more mouths to feed." He shrugged, his shoulders threatening to
split the seams of his worn leather jerkin.
"I would have brought back all
of them, if most hadn't wanted to— 80 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Crunch! Ahira snatched his
battleaxe from his chest, tearing the handle right through the straps that bound it to him. A thumb-flick sent its leather sheath spinning
away. Cullinane drew his sword and spun around
into a crouch. "What the—?" "Sorry," Chak called out, as he
stood over the shattered trunk. He hefted
the sledge. "But I told you I'd find a key." Ahira looked down at
the torn leather thongs that had secured his battleaxe to his chest.
"Nice friend you've got there, Karl." He chuckled. "Take it easy, Ahira,
you're all tensed up." Ahira stared
pointedly at Karl's naked blade. "And, of course, you're not." "Well..." He slipped the saber back into its scabbard. "Never mind." Ahira raised a
palm. "Never mind. What is this insane
plan of yours?" Karl shook his head. "In a while.
First, how's Doria doing?" Ahira spat. "They wouldn't let me
see her. The acolyte I spoke to said that she's being 'fully integrated into
the body
of the Society,' and that any contact with outsiders —outsiders—was forbidden." Be
well, Doria. May you find with the Hand all that eluded you with us. "You think she's okay?" "Hope so. If she
isn't, there's not a damn thing we can do about it." Frustrating, but true. The Matriarch of the Healing Hand Society had protected the Hand
preserve against the powers that had devastated the Forest of Elrood,
turning it into the Waste. Handling a few warriors
and a novice wizard wouldn't cause her to work up a sweat. "Unless you feel like storming the tabernacle." Karl snorted.
"Fat chance. As to how I think we ought to proceed, how about you gathering everyone around, while
I have a talk with Andy, so that—" The War Begins 81 "Kharl! Kharlkhulinayn!" Chak
ran toward them, a long, thin piece of metal
held high in his hands. "Look!" He jerked to a halt and handed it to Karl, holding it carefully
as though it were a fragile piece of glass. Chak smiled broadly, as though he
had just presented Karl with the Hope
diamond. Ahira looked at it.
It looked like an oversized butter-knife, actually; the flat blade was almost
three feet long. He reached over and tested the edge against his thumb. Dull as a
butterknife, too. "What is this?" Chak stood back.
"You don't know? That, Ahira, is a woodknife." Karl cocked his head
to one side. "I'm no wiser; what is a woodknife?" "Look."
Chak lifted it from Karl's outstretched palms and walked to a nearby sapling.
Holding the handle with just
thumb and two fingers, he slashed at the trunk, as though in slow motion. The blade passed through the trunk as
though it weren't there. With a rustling of leaves, the sapling
crashed to the ground. "See?" Chak
said, bouncing the blade off his own neck. "It cuts only through wood. Nothing
else. Quite a find, eh? I expect we're going to find quite a bit of use for
this, where
we're going." What the hell did
that mean? "Karl? Would you please tell me what you're—" Cullinane raised a palm. "Tell you
what: Why don't you gather everyone around,
so I only have to go through this
once. No rush; I've got to talk to Andy first, soon as she's finished bathing the girl. Private
matter." What's going on with the two of them now?
I thought they'd worked things out. Ahira opened his mouth, then closed
it. None of my business. He nodded. "Fair enough, but this
had better be good." "It
will be. I hope."
82 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Karl led Andy-Andy
well away from the camp before sitting
both of them down on a fallen log. "How's she doing?" "Not too bad, at
least physically. A few bruises, some abrasions were all I could find. But I'm not
up on anatomy ... it's too bad you can't check her over." She
left the obvious unspoken; a little girl who'd gone through that
particular kind of hell didn't need any man poking and prodding at her. He chuckled thinly. "Two weeks of
premed doesn't make me an internist. If you can't find anything wrong with her,
I probably couldn't. Well . . . just keep an eye on her; we can always dose her
again later if she needs more. "But that's not why I needed to talk
to you." / wish I could put this off a bit longer, but—"I've
got a question for you." She smiled up at him.
"I can guess what it is. I've heard that fighting hikes up the ol' hormones, eh? Well ..." "Shh." He shook his head.
"This is serious. I've got something to
ask you, then something to tell you." And I hope I'm doing this in the right order. Her face matched his somber tone.
"Okay, Karl. You are serious. About
something." He took a deep
breath. "The question is this: Will you marry me?" Her eyes
opened wide. "Will I what?" "You heard
me." All of a sudden, he didn't quite know what to do with his hands. They
clutched aimlessly at the air
in front of him. "I know we don't have a priest around, but we could improvise some sort of ceremony. Marry
me—you know: live together, have kids, the whole bit." She threw up her
hands and laughed. "Karl, just 'cause we've slept together a couple of times ..." "It's
not that." Not just that, he amended silently. "If it's not that, then it has to be something else, some- The War Begins 83 thing that's pretty impor—no." Andy-Andy paled.
"I'm pregnant? I must be, but how do you know?" "Ellegon. He
can detect the pheromonal changes. But how did you guess?" "It's the only
thing that makes sense. We haven't discussed this before. . . ." She shook her head. "Dammit,
Karl, I'm not ready to be a mother, and—" He raised a palm. "And
we can take care of that. If "How?" "Do I have to go into details? Just
take my word, please. It can be done." "How?" He shrugged.
"This isn't exactly the way this was supposed to go, you know . . . Okay, think about it: We've got a lot of healing draughts, and I think I can
improvise the tools for a D&C. I know I'm not a doctor, but we've
got room for error. It'd hurt, but the draughts can protect you from any risk
of infection, any permanent damage. If you
want an abortion, you can have it. Up to you," he said, trying to
sound casual, failing miserably. The
thought of himself performing the abortion bothered Karl, not the notion
of an early abortion itself. He'd never bought the idiotic notion that a
microscopic blastula was a human being. Doing a primitive
abortion here isn't the only choice. We could try to sneak you back home, through
the Gate. But I really
don't want to try getting past The Dragon again,
and I'm sure as hell not going to suggest that. She tented her hands
in front of her mouth and chewed on a forefinger. "Let me think, okay?" "Fine. Take your time. Is ... is there anything I can do?" "Just
leave me alone for a while." "Andy—" "Please?" He stood. "Okay—but I've got to go talk to everybody
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN else;. Ahira's on my back. Join us in
a few minutes?" "Maybe. Just . . . just give me some time." He nodded. "I
love you, you know." "I
know." She smiled weakly. "Now get lost for a while." "Please
listen," Karl said in Erendra, as he stood in the center of the circle
of faces. "I've got something to say." He paused to look at them. With one
exception, all of the former
slaves still looked scared. The exception was Chak. His smile almost radiated
trust as he sat tailor-fashion, his right
hand never straying far from the hilt of his falchion. Lou Riccetti's round
face beamed up at him. Trust to Lou to work things out, if they involved
numbers. And those economics
courses he'd taken didnt hurt either. Riccetti
nodded reassuringly. Ahira scowled. As
usual. He didn't like being kept in the dark. Probably he wouldn't like what
came next any better. And then there was
Slovotsky. Walter, if I can ever figure you out, I'll admit to being a genius. 'Actually, Walter's easy. He's—* Shh. Karl went on:
"For those of you who don't know, there are people after my head. When I met
Ellegon, he was chained in a
cesspit in Pandathaway. I didn't like that; I freed him. "The Pandathaway guilds didn't like that.
They sent slavers out after me. After
all of us. They caught up with us in
the Waste. "We managed to get away, and then
kill all of the bastards. By now,
Pandathaway probably thinks that I'm dead." The Matriarch had said
that he couldn't be located while on the Hand preserve, and certainly a
location spell couldn't have spotted him during the period that he had been
home, on the other side of the Gate.
"They will soon be hearing that I'm alive. The wot Begins Ј5 "There's probably nothing that we can
do to prevent that." Twenty yards behind Ahira, the bowman glared over at him. "Even if we killed him; the
other freed slaves will talk. "I propose that we don't even try.
Instead, I suggest that we do two things. First, Chak knows of an
unin-habitated valley in Therranj. I propose that we move there, and settle down; raise food and cattle,
everything. We'll have to send another party into Metreyll to pick up some
more supplies and animals, cattle, sheep, goats, chickens, whatever we need. The trip will take a .while; and building houses, clearing fields, planting
crops, all of it will be hard work. But once we're settled in—" Walter shook his head. "That won't do
it. Pandatha-way is ticked at you, Karl;
they won't let a bit of distance stand between them and revenge."
He shrugged. "It might buy us some time, but that's all." 'Notice the "us"?* Yes. Now, shh. Karl held up a hand. "No. I'm not
going to spend much time there for the first couple of years; certainly not
enough to be located and found. Instead . . . Lou: Explain a bit about supply
and demand, and how that effects economic utility." Riccetti picked up
his cue as though they had rehearsed it. Which they had, of course. He stood. "The price of anything
depends on two things: how much of it is available, and how badly people want
it; supply and demand. If anything—anything—gets too expensive, then people start to find substitutes.
That applies to swords, to grain, to cattle—and to slaves. KarPs talking about making slaves too expensive." "Exactly."
Karl folded his arms across his chest. "And we'll do that by making slave-taking too expensive, too risky a business. I'm talking about doing the
same thing that we did yesterday, but on a larger scale. We'll hit every caravan we can, force the Slavers' Guild to
beef up
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN their caravans, adding more and more guards, cutting down on the profits from slaving. And we'll keep
doing that until the system starts to collapse." Shaking his head,
Ahira spat. "That's just plain silly. There are a lot of slaves, Karl; you won't affect the price of slaves one whit. Figure that Pandathaway
alone imports, say, three, four thousand slaves per year. Right now, they get them via raids on Therranj,
Melawei, and so forth. Let's say
that each caravan has twenty slaves, and that you hit—and free—one caravan each
tenday. And let's assume that every
one of the freed slaves either joins us in this valley of yours or finds
his or her way home. "That's only a
thousand or so freed slaves each year." He shrugged. "It'll drive up the price a bit. But
that's all." Smiling broadly,
Walter Slovotsky nodded. "Beautiful, Karl. Dammit, James, you're wrong; it'll do
more. Once we've demonstrated that we can take on slavers and get away with it, others
will start doing it, too. Everyone has shied away from crossing the Slavers' Guild
because of the fear of
retribution. Once we show that we can get away
with it, most of that fear will be gone. "It's a sure
bet that some of these unemployed mercenaries will try to get into the business.
And since they'll have stolen
the slaves, they'll be afraid to sell them. They'll
have to free them, making their profit off money that the slavers carry. Just as we did." He hefted his now-full purse. "A nice bit of thinking it
through, Karl. That is what you're
talking about, isn't it?" "Yes." From across the clearing, Andy-Andy's
voice called, "It's crazy, you know." She walked quickly toward the group. How did she hear? *I echoed your
words. * A mental smirk. * And if you're really nice to me, I won't relay your thoughts without permission.* The War Begins 87 / didn't know you could do that. Although
it really wasn't all that surprising, come
to think of it. * You didn't ask.* He scowled. Well,
then, relay this. He stopped himself. Never mind. "Andy—" "Later." She smiled. "We'll
have plenty of time, on this trip to that valley of yours. But we'd better move
quickly." She placed the flat of her
hand on her stomach. "Before I
start to swell." Karl couldn't help smiling. Ahira shook his head. "This is
insane, you know, but ..." "But what?" Riccetti frowned.
"It makes perfect sense." "But let's try it." The dwarf
bounced to his feet and stuck out his hand at Karl. "You can count me
in." As they shook hands, Ahira
shrugged. "It's worth a try." He turned to the freed slaves. "You may either come with us, or leave. Anyone who wishes to leave us should
see me later." Slovotslcy smiled.
"All we have to do is take on a few thousand slavers." Andy-Andy shook her head. "There's one other thing." "Oh?" Ahira cocked his head. "What am I missing?" "We've also got to stay alive." Karl nodded.
"That is the keystone of the whole plan, after all." A gout of fire roared into the sky. *Nice keystone.* Ellegon at his side,
Karl smiled down at the bowman. "I'm going to turn you loose. We'll give
you a waterbag and a knife;
start across the Waste tonight. I want the extra
time to get clear of here." As the youth glanced over at the string of horses, Karl shook his head.
"If you try to leave before
then, or raise a hand to any of us, or steal a horse, I'll have Ellegon eat
you." The dragon leered. 'Please try to leave
early. I could use a snack. *
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN The bowman glared up at Karl. "The
Pandathaway Guilds Council will hunt you
down like an animal. They will find you, Karl Cullinane. And, my Lord
Mehlen willing, I will travel to Pandathaway to watch you die." Karl smiled.
"Have Lord Mehlen give them a message from me. Tell them: Karl Cullinane is alive,
and . . ." He let his voice trail off. Did this make any sense? Here I am, an
expectant father, and I'm asking for
trouble. Ahira was right; this is absolutely
insane. *You made a promise to the Matriarch. And
though she will not help you further, will
you keep that promise, or not?* Karl looked across
the clearing to where the little girl was smiling at Andy-Andy over a bowl of
stew. Not much of a smile, but a smile nonetheless. And a very special sort of smile. . . . Yes. Hell, yes. He cut the bowman
loose. "Tell them this:
I'm hunting them." PART TWO: The Valley CHAPTER SIX: Settling In All things are
artificial, for Nature is the art of God. —Sir Thomas Browne The valley took Karl by surprise, although that morning ' Ellegon had told him they would reach it
shortly after noon. He led his mare up a gentle incline,
through the charred remains of what once
had been a stand of trees. There was no way of knowing what had caused
the fire that had burned a black slash across the surrounding miles; possibly someone's carelessness, possibly
a lightning strike. The fire had been
years before; rain had since reduced the burned trees to a flat ash surface that allowed easy passage for both the flatbed and the former slave
wagon. Life was starting to return; impudently,
thumb-thick saplings rose chest-high, as
though in a promise that this area would be wooded once again. In the
light breeze, leafy ferns nodded their
agreement. In further confirmation, the grasses had
started to reclaim the ground at the top of the hill. His horse snorted, nudging him from behind. "Dammit, Carrot, we're moving fast
enough." He turned to stroke her neck
before resuming their slow pace through
the rubble. "You take it easy, hear? I don't want you breaking a
leg." She whinnied as if she understood, and
agreed that breaking a leg was, indeed, not the ultimate goal of her horsy life. 91 92 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Hmmm, would the healing draughts work on a horse? Possibly. Quite possibly. But would Ahira
object to his experimenting, even if it meant the difference between preserving and having to kill the horse? Certainly; the dwarf
and the horses had something less than a deep and abiding affection for each other. Behind him, Ahira
grunted as he pulled on the reins of his gray gelding. "Move, you filthy
little monster. Move, I said." The small horse towered above the dwarf,
drawing
back its head to the limits of the reins and snorting at Ahira as it gave ground, inch by inch. 'Quite a
horseman, eh?* The mental voice was faint. Quite. Following Ahira,
Slovotsky sat in his usual place on the bench of the flatbed, with blond Kirah close
beside him. A few weeks of
freedom had done Kirah's appearance good; she actually was quite pretty,
although a bit too skinny for KarFs tastes. Deep in quiet
conversation, Walter smiled, and patted her knee. Karl found that vaguely reassuring, and was ashamed of himself for feeling that way. Walter's my friend, dammit. I should be
happy he's found someone, not relieved that I don't have to worry about him and
Andy-Andy anymore; *To the best of my knowledge, Walter has never been accused of
practicing exclusivity.* Ellegon! *If you're
going to trust either or both of them, then do so. If not, don't. But whipping yourself with worry suggests that you don't think you have enough real
problems to worry about. Would you
like to hear my list?* No thanks, Ellegon.
. . , I can always turn to you for a spot of reassurance, eh? * Think nothing of it.* / won't. Behind
Slovotsky and Kirah, Lou Riccetti
napped Settling In 93 under a light blanket, with a sack of grain
for his pillow. The wind carried his snores to Karl's ears. Hmph. Riccetti was supposed
to be keeping an eye on the
bull, who was secured to the flatbed by a length of rope tied to his brass nose
ring. Karl thought about waking Riccetti, then dismissed the idea. No need, the
lumbering beast followed without complaint. From its high seat,
Andy-Andy drove the former slave wagon, little Aeia huddled next to her, the five chicken cages tied down on the flat roof. The bars were
gone from the wagon's windows,
having joined the other rod stock in the back of the flatbed. Trotting along beside
the wagon, the two goats voiced their unflattering opinion of the whole party. Aeia turned to give them a few reassuring words. She
liked the goats, although the smelly creatures didn't return her affection. Aeia was still a
problem; she had yet to make it through a night without waking up crying, not going
back to sleep until Andy-Andy held her for at least an hour. What it came down to
was simple: Aeia was homesick. There
was a solution to that, but Andy-Andy wasn't going to like it; she had
practically adopted the girl. Spread out behind the wagon, Tennetty,
Chton, Ihryk, and Fialt led their horses, occasionally switching the five cows
to make them keep the pace. The cattle were brakes on the whole procession;
they could barely walk fifteen miles on a
good day. Goddam splay-footed beasts— *Stop worrying; the trip is almost over.* Last was
Chak, who insisted on riding his horse through
the charred rubble, swearing at her when she balked. Karl stroked Carrot's neck as they walked up
the hill. "Easy, now." *A carrot works
better than a stick, most of the time.* This time Ellegon's voice was louder,
clearer. 94 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Karl looked up. High overhead, the dragon
circled, a dark speck against the blue sky. True. Which is why I finally got
around to naming my horse Carrot. *A suitable name. She is probably very tasty.* "Ellegon, you
are not eating my horse. Case closed." *Hmph. I would have
thought I deserved some sort of reward for finding a route you can take your wagons over.* The
mindlink grew tighter for a moment, then loosened.
'Lewis and Clark didn't have aerial reconnaissance. Neither did Cortez,
or Pizarro. You may have noticed that you haven't had to turn around and try a different route once over the past three months.* "I noticed.
Honest. And I noticed it the first day, even before you mentioned it. So would you
please—" He cut himself off. Snide comments were not the way to handle a child asking for
praise. You've done one hell of a job, in case I haven't
mentioned that recently. *You haven't.* The crest of the hill lay just a few yards
ahead; the slope steepened. On an impulse, Karl dropped Carrot's reins and ran
up, onto the summit, and over the hill. And into wonder. The valley opened up below him, trees and
grasses spread out in a welcoming green embrace. In the distance, silvery
threads of streams wove their way down from
the far, snow-peaked mountains, tumbling through stands of pine and
maple, finally emptying into the mirror-bright lake that cupped the valley
floor. Half a mile below,
seven deer drank at the lake's edge. The water was still, mirroring the fluffy
clouds and blue sky. A five-point buck looked up at him; then the group
sprinted gracefully into the forest, leaping high over the grasses as they ran. The wind blew across the valley, bathing
him in the warm tang of sunbaked grasses, and the cool scent of pines. He didn't notice Chak walking up. One moment, Karl Settling In 95 was all alone; the next, the little
man stood beside him, Carrot's reins in one hand, the reins of his own gray
mare in
the other. "Like it?" Chak smiled, handing him the reins. Karl didn't answer him. It wasn't necessary. "Ready, Lou?" Riccetti nodded,
smiling inside. Ready? I've been waiting my whole life for a moment like this. Ahira beckoned him to his feet. "You go first." Riccetti rose and
walked to the campfire. He turned to face the others, his back to the crackling
flame. "The two main
considerations in this sort of construction," he said, "are water supply and defense." All the others looked at him, listening intently. Which was nice; Lou liked being the center
of attention. For once. Slovotsky nodded.
"Good point, but what does that do for us?" The fire was hot;
sweating, Riccetti moved away from it, the heat still pressing against his back.
"Form follows function,
Walter," he said. "What we've got to do is figure out what sort of
complex to make, given our present limitations of materials and the lack of
power tools. I wish we had a few dozen tons of concrete mix, . steel girders,
PVC pipe, and such. But we don't." Both Chton and Fialt frowned, while the
other new people stared back blankly;
Riccetti realized that he had lapsed
back into English. Item, he thought, English, teaching of. Discussion: Many
useful concepts are not available in Erendra, absent a great deal of neologism
or circumlocution. Examples: concrete,
suspension bridge, gunpowder, steam engine, railroad. Question: Should
we actually teach English, or settle for
supplementing Erendra vocabulary? 96 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Sprawled on the ground behind the others,
Ellegon raised his head. 'Noted, Louis. I will remind you of this later, when
you have time to consider it.* Don't forget. 'Dragons don't forget, stupid. We leave
that sort of thing to humans.* "My apologies," he said in
Erendra, both to Ellegon and to the
natives. "I was saying that we don't have many different materials
to work with, nor do we have . . . magical tools, other than the
woodknife." Chak spat. "And you should be
grateful for that, instead of complaining that we don't have any other magical
tools. Woodknives are rare, Richetih; takes a master wizard to make one, and it
takes him years. I don't know where Ohrmyst bought—or, more likely,
stole—his. I've traveled far; only heard of a few in existence. Only seen one
other, in Sciforth, and that one heavily
guarded. You couldn't have bought that knife for a wagonload of gold." Cullinane raised a palm. "Stand easy,
Chak. Lou was just commenting, not
criticizing." That seemed to settle the matter for the
little man; Chak listened to Karl the way Riccetti would have listened to Washington Roebling himself. Riccetti went on: "How and what we
build has to be planned with that limitation in mind. We also have to consider
the problem of the water supply." Tennetty shrugged, sending her straight
black hair flipping about her face. She was a slim woman,
with an almost impossibly thin nose,
and a permanent expression of distance on her drawn
face. The daughter of a poor farmer on one of the Shattered Islands, on her
fifteenth birthday she had been sold to a slaver's ship. The ten
intervening years hadn't Settling In 97 treated her kindly, as she passed from owner to owner; it showed in her lined
face. Riccetti found her
profoundly unattractive, even when her mouth was closed. Which was usually, but
nevertheless
all too seldom. "What
problem?" She gestured at the lake, which lay shimmering in the
starlight. "If we build our houses close to the lake, then we have a short walk for water. If we are stupid enough to build them far away, then we
have a long walk for water. What is
so complicated about how far you have to carry a bucket?" Sitting on the other side of Andrea from
little Aeia, Cullinane shook his head, grinning. "I'd really like to have running water, myself. Taste of home, and
all that. You've got a way?" "Yup." Riccetti smiled. "I
took a quick look this afternoon, while the rest of you were lolling around
camp. So far, I've counted seven streams that feed into the lake. I've found
one with a waterfall." He pointed. "About
a quarter-mile that way. The waterfall's small— it's not much taller
than Karl is. But if we set up the compound over part of that stream,
surrounding the waterfall, we can divert it,
and still have a bit of flow to play around with. We'll want a mill, for
one thing . . . and in the future, I might be able to rig up some sort of water
heater." "Hot
showers," Andrea said, sighing. She bent her head toward Aeia's. "Have
you ever had a hot shower?" She shook her head. "What's a shower, Andy?" "But in the short run, we can have
flowing water inside, for washing, cooking,
and for privies." Ahira's forehead furrowed. "How are
you going to build a flush toilet?" Riccetti shrugged. "That's years away. For
now, 98 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN you're going to have to settle for a
constant-flow one, sort of
like an outhouse with some water from the stream running underneath. Open pipes
like the Romans', but we'll use wood instead
of lead." Slovotsky nodded his approval.
"That's not bad. Constant-flow toilet, eh? It's so simple, it'd be hard to
think up, if you didn't already know about
it. I guess you weren't wasting your
time in your engineering courses." Cullinane threw back his head and laughed. The dwarf
glared at him. "What's so funny?" The big man shook his head. "Never
mind." His expression went vague. * Louis, Karl has
asked me to tell you that he remembers lending you his copy of Farnham's Freehold, and that
he's glad he did.* That's nice. *And he also said to
mention that he won't tell anyone that you swiped the notion of constant-flow
toilets from Heinlein. // you build the first one for him and Andrea.* Tell him to go to hell. I'm running the
construction here, and I'll do as I see fit. He waited for Ellegon to replay the message. Cullinane
glared at him for a moment, then relaxed, his hand miming tipping a hat. Good. It was best to
start things off by letting everyone —Cullinane particularly—know who was in charge of the building. "In any case," he went on,
"that's the first part of it. The other
thing is that the waterfall is in a stand of pines. We can save a lot of effort
by building there; even green, pine is good to build with. It's a bit
tricky, but I've read about how to use it." I'd give any digit
you care to name for one-tenth of the library Farnham had. Or even for Robertson's Green Wood Construction. Or the Britannica,
or the Rubber Handbook, or
anything. All that stood
between him and all of those books was about five hundred miles of forest, plains,
mountains and Settling In 99 Waste,
plus the warrens surrounding the Gate Between Worlds. And The
Dragon, guarding the Gate. Ellegon snorted. "You had best learn
to live without those books, Louis. He is still awake. And will be, for much longer than you will live. * Riccetti shuddered. No way was he
ever going near The Dragon again. "So we build there," he said. "Agreed?" "Sounds right to me," Cullinane
nodded. "You were talking about
defense. Some sort of castle?" "No. We don't have the tools or the
manpower for stonework, even if we could
find stone worth quarrying. My
suggestion is that we go for something like a western fort. It'll look a
bit crude, but—" Fialt spat. "I am from the
west. I was born and raised on Salket. We build with stone there; we are
civilized." He was the oldest of the group, a grizzled graybeard of fifty or so. Slovotsky chuckled. "Not your
west—ours. But it sounds like a lot of
work, Lou." "It will be. But it should give us
some defense. If the colony grows a lot, we
won't be able to put all the houses inside,
of course, but it still makes sense to have some sort of fortification
to retreat to, if necessary. We may not need it, but ..." Chak nodded.
"KharPs plan should keep us relatively safe, as long as he doesn't spend too much
time here. But you're right, Richetih: no sense in taking a chance for no payoff." Ahira cocked his
head to one side. "That's easy for you to say—you're going on this first expedition with Karl; little of the sweat will be from your brow. Not
more than a tenday's worth, at best." "Damn, but I like your positive
attitude, Ahira." The little man smiled. "Pointing out another nice
part of Richetih's plan." Riccetti spread his hands. "That's the broad outline. If
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN we do it this way, I'll mark out the boundaries in the morning, and we can get right to work. Should be
able to have three walls of the palisade up within a—" "Palisade?" "The outer wall. We'll put a walkway
around the inside, around the top. As I was
saying, it should be done within two, maybe three tendays. Ahira, you're
still the leader. It's up to you." And
if you don't want to do it my way,
I'd like to hear what idiocy you have in mind. Andrea raised an
eyebrow. "Why just three-quarters of the wall? It seems to me it'd be more efficient to do the whole
thing at one time." "No. The gate will be the hard part;
by leaving that wall for last, we can have
a way of bringing wood in to build
the houses and such. We could do the houses first, but I think we'll save some effort by using the
palisade as the fourth wall for some
of them, and for the grainmill, when we build it. Besides, we'll want to set up
a smithy and make some nails before we do the houses; we can build the palisade walls with just wood and
leather. "And sweat, of course." He
turned to Ahira. "That's my proposal.
There'll be lots of details to work out, but it seems to me this is the best way." "Any objections?" The dwarf
waited silently for a moment. "We'll
do it. Lou, you're in charge of construction. Complete charge; you
don't ask anyone, you tell them, unless you
think you need another opinion. Refer any discipline problems to
me." He tapped his thumb against the
blade of his battleaxe. Cullinane snorted. "That include you?" "Lou, if I give you any trouble, you
can refer it to Karl." *Orme.* "Or Ellegon." The dwarf turned
to Slovotsky. "Now, Walter, what are your thoughts about crops and animals?" Riccetti sat down, barely listening as Slovotsky stood Settling In 101 and began to talk about slash-and-burn agriculture, and where he
wanted to put the first field. For more than four years, Lou Riccetti had
been an engineering student in a world that really didn't want things built.
The days of great construction had passed from his world; the future of
engineering was with piddling little electronic circuits, not big structures,
not great things. There would be no more
Brooklyn Bridges built, no more Hoover Dams. But here,
it was different. A world to conquer. He smiled. I'm going to be building things, he thought, his heart beating audibly in
his chest. It's a small start, but it's a start. He shook his head. This was ridiculous.
Getting all excited about putting together a
bunch of log cabins and some
stockade fencing? And some sort of smithy, come to think of it. That would have to be done early; the
flatbed contained fifty or so pounds of thin nail stock, but no nails.
Then again, nailmaking shouldn't require a full-fledged smithy; a hot fire, a bellows, a hammer, and the smallest of the anvils would do. And— Ridiculous. It had to be done, granted,
but getting excited about it? *I disagree.*
Ellegon lifted his head from his crossed forelegs, curling and uncurling his wings.
*It is not ridiculous, friend Louis. Not if it makes you feel this good. 'Build and enjoy.* The first wall went up much more quickly
than Karl would have believed possible. It wasn't just
because of the woodknife's ability to turn the felling, stripping, and shaping of a tall pine from a tedious
affair into something that took only minutes, helpful
as that was. And it wasn't just Ellegon's great
strength, although that certainly helped, too. 102 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Ellegon would seize
the blunt end of a stripped log in his massive jaws and drag it from where it
fell to where the empty post
hole was. That made harnessing the horses
unnecessary, although Riccetti could and did rig a block, tackle, and
twenty-foot-tall tripod. With that, and with the aid of the mules and the
cannibalized harnesses from the flatbed, Karl, Walter, and Ahira could raise the upper end of a log into its
proper position and lower the flat end into its hole, before packing
dirt around the now-upright log to keep it
steady. And it wasn't just that all of them worked
hard, although they certainly did. Ellegon hauled logs, beginning work when
the sky grew light, not quitting until well after dark. Fialt, Kirah, and Chak took turns with the woodknife,
felling and stripping pines, keeping
a constant supply of twenty-foot
posts coming, as well as stacking the scraps for the cooking fires. Karl, Walter, and Ahira dug the
holes and raised the posts. Andy-Andy and Aeia kept bowls of hot stew
and pitchers of cold water coming from dawn to dusk. Ihryk and Tennetty hunted deer, duck, and rabbit, gathered
wild garlic, onions, chotte, burdock, maikhe, and tacktob for the stewpot,
stretching the supply of dried beef and putting off the time when it would
become necessary to start converting to chickens from egglayers into roasters. What really made it all work was Riccetti. Lou always seemed to
be at Kail's elbow, any time he needed a bit of advice or instruction. At times, he wondered if
there weren't really three or four Lou Riccetti's;
others reported the same. Riccetti was the one
who knew how to lash together a tripod of logs and throw together a wooden block and tackle to
raise and support a pole, or turn a dozen saplings
and a few hundred yards of rope into a double-lock bridge across the deep-bedded stream. He was the one who withheld a portion of
the scrap wood, for Ellegon to roast slowly into wood tar, to be
Settling In 103 later distilled down to creosote, which
would protect the palisade against insects and rot. Riccetti showed them
how to lash the poles together at the top of the wall with wet leather strips, so that as the
leather dried, it shrank and linked the individual poles together solidly. More important, he knew how to apportion
the work so that no bottlenecks developed; Karl, Walter, and Ahira always had
just enough poles to work with, without
worrying about falling behind while unused ones accumulated, or letting
valuable time go by while they waited for
the next. Riccetti was, finally, in his own proper
environment; Karl smiled at the little
swagger his walk had developed. The sounds and smells
of the dying were far away; the days passed quickly, filled with the sweet
smell and un-washable
stickiness of freshly cut pine, the stink of his own sweat, and the deep sleep brought on by hard labor. CHAPTER SEVEN: Moving On Now hollow
fires burn out to black, And lights are
guttering low: Square your shoulders,
lift your pack, And leave your
friends and go. —Alfred Edward Housman It was a clear night. Andy-Andy lying still beside him, Karl
stared up at the dome of stars. Downslope from them,
halfway between them and the palisade wall, little Aeia huddled in her blankets,
asleep at last. It had been a
rocky night for the girl, filled with bad
dreams and loud screams. // there
is a hell, Orhmyst, you are surely there. "Andy," he whispered. "Yes?" He quirked
a smile. She hadn't been sleeping either. "I've
got to leave, for a while." She sucked air through her teeth, then
rolled over on her side, facing him. She
stroked his forehead with gentle fingers. "I know. You're worried
about Pandathaway." "Not worried:
terrified. If I stay here too long, I'm not just endangering myself." He patted her
barely distended belly.
"There's others involved, too." "Like
Karl, Junior?" She grinned at him. "Even if it is a boy, we're not
naming him after me. With a mother as pretty as you, he'll have enough of an 104 Moving On 105 Oedipus problem without saddling him
with his father's name. Besides, it's probably a girl." "It will be a boy, Karl." Her
face grew somber. "We women know about
these things." "Bullshit."
He snorted. "I think we know each other a bit too well for you to give me
that sort of nonsense." "We do know
about these things," she said, shrugging, "and we're right about, oh, fifty percent of the
time." "Funny. Very
funny. But you're changing the subject. Or trying to." "I'm starting to get fat, is that it?
You're going to run off and find some
sixteen-year-old—" "Shh." He put a finger to her
lips. "Shh. Not even in jest.
Please." A long pause. "How long will you be gone?" "Don't know for sure. Six months, at
a minimum. Maybe closer to a year." "When?" she asked, her voice a low whisper. T'were best done quickly. "In a day or two, I think. It won't
take long to pack. I don't know if you've noticed, but Chak's getting itchy." "And so are you." There was more truth in that than he cared
to admit. "No, it's not that. But this vacation has gone on long enough;
it's time to get back to work." She rolled onto her back and stared up at
the sky, her head pillowed on her hands. "Slicing up people. Some work." "Slicing up slavers. Or, if
you want to be more accurate, my work is murdering slavers. But it isn't the words that matter, Andrea. You know that." Please,
Andy, don't ever let the
blood come between us. Please. She sighed deeply, and then closed her
eyes. She lay quietly for so long that Karl
began to wonder if she had fallen back asleep. "Who are you taking with
you?" "Well, Chak, for one. He's seen more
of the Eren regions than any of the rest of
us, and he's pretty handy 106 THE SWORD AND THE
CHAIN with a sword." Besides, he
rankles at taking orders from anyone except me. I'm not leaving a time bomb behind. "I'd like to take Ellegon, but he's
just too conspicuous." And he's also the most deadly being I know. He
stays here, and keeps an eye on my wife and unborn child. *I am honored, of course. But I will miss
you, Karl. Don't do something stupid and get yourself killed. Please?* Just as a favor to you. * Thanks.* "Who else?" she asked, a decided edge to her voice. "Well, I can't take Walter, not this
time; somebody's got to run the farm." And if I did take him along, I'd
never know whether it was because I wanted
him along, or because I didn't trust both of you enough to leave him here. "I think I'll invite Ahira to come along; he'll want to go. He's just as good in a fight as I am—" 'Better.* "—and he's got a
fine strategical sense. His darksight might come in handy; it's even better
than Ellegon's." "How's he going to take your being in charge, Karl?" "Huh? Who said anything about—" "As Walter
would say, think it through. You've always thought he was too conservative, too eager to avoid a fight. So you're going to let him be in charge
when you're going out looking for
trouble?" He snorted.
"We'll work it out. What we're doing is too important to let who's-in-charge
games screw it up. And ..." "And? I don't recall your mentioning my name." He snorted. "Don't be silly." "Silly?" "This isn't a time for reflex
pseudo-feminism. We're going to be gone for
six months, at least. If you think I'm going
to let a woman at term bounce along on the back of a horse, try thinking
again. Case closed; you stay here, where
it's safe." Moving On 107 "Always the
diplomat, Karl." She dismissed the issue with a wave of her hand. "But I guess you're right.
It's just going to be you, Chak, and
Ahira?" "Can't expect
any of the new people to do any good in a fight. The best is Fialt, and he wouldn't
last ten seconds against a real swordsman. On the other hand, he's trying hard to learn. If he wants in, he's got
it. Chton, Kirah, Ihryk, and he are happy here, or I'd escort them somewhere
safe. Tennetty, though ..." "Tennetty
wouldn't be happy anywhere." "Exactly. But
she's hot to kill some slavers. I can't say as I blame her; she can come along if she
wants to. Which she will." "Is that
all?" She frowned. "It sounds like an awfully small group." "It is. But I think it's the best
one, for now." / may as well get it over with. "There's one
more person we're taking along, Andy." "Karl,
you are not taking Aeia." "We're taking
her home." He shrugged. "Might as well swing through Melawei. The hunting should be good; there've been slaving raids all along that
coast." Mainly by sea,
according to Chak; to the best of his knowledge, Ohrmyst had been the
only slaver to try the difficult overland
route to Melawei. Question: How does one take on a slaver's ship? 'Answer: very carefully.
Do you have any more stupid questions?* No. "Nol"
Andy-Andy said, echoing his response to Ellegon. "You can't. She's getting used to being around us;
she'll adjust. I'll take care of her." "We're not her family, Andrea. She's
been through hell. You should know that, better than I do; let's let her grow
up in her own country, with her own people." Andy-Andy sat up, angrily pulling the blankets around 108 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN her. "What good did they do her?
Tell me. Her people let her get caught by slavers, raped. Karl, you can't take
her back to them. I won't let
you." He tried to put his hand on her shoulder,
but she shrugged his arm away. "Shall
we leave it up to her?" he asked. "She's too
young to decide. She needs someone to take care of her." She looked away from him, toward where Aeia slept. "Like you?" "Yess," she
hissed, "like me. Don't you think I'm good enough to take care of her? Don't
you?" He shook
his head. "No, I don't." Her head spun
around. "You bastard." Tears filled her eyes. "Andy, it's not that there's anything
wrong with you. The thing of it is this: She's
a little girl. Somewhere, she has family. And they probably miss her as
much as she misses them." She sneered. "Just as our families
back home will be missing us? You didn't
seem so worried about that." "Different case. For one thing, we're
adults; we have to make our own decisions. For another, with the time
differential between here and home, the fact that we're gone hasn't even been
noticed yet; at home, we've only been gone
a few hours. "But, again, you're dodging the
issue. Think about this: If someone stole little whatever-her-name-is from you,
you'd want her back." He laid a palm on her belly. "Wouldn't you? Or
would you think that some stranger could take better care of her?" She didn't
answer for a long time. Then: "Leave it alone, Karl. You're
right, as usual. Bastard." She daubed at her eyes with a corner of the blanket. "But it's going to be a boy."
Gathering her robes about her, she rose and walked down the slope toward where Aeia lay sleeping. She seated herself
beside Moving On 109 the girl
and took one of Aeia's small hands in both of hers. And sat there, watching her, until the night fled, and the sun sat above the treetops. PART THREE: The Middle Lands CHAPTER EIGHT: Ahrmin Revenge is a dish
that tastes best when eaten cold. —Sicilian proverb The windowless room was dark and musty,
redolent with the smells of aging paper and parchment; the only illumination was a single overhead lamp. In a
dark corner, a tall brass censer burned,
sending vague fingers of smoke feeling
their way into the air. His eyes stung. Ahrmin repressed a
shudder. He never liked being near wizards at all, but it was even worse to confront one on the wizard's own territory. That was one thing
his father had always said: "Stay away from the wizards, son,
whenever you can." In Ahrmin's nineteen years, he had never seen a reason to doubt that advice. He stood motionless in the middle of the
blood-red carpet, not daring to interrupt Wenthall's unblinking study of the crystal ball. Though why the thing
was called a ball was something Ahrmin couldn't understand. The "ball" was a head-sized
crystal model of a human eye, the iris and pupil etched on its front, complete
down to a spoke that projected from the back, to symbolize the cords that connected
the eye to the brain. The fat wizard
gripped the spoke as he held the crystal before him, staring at the back side of the ball as if he were sitting behind a giant's eye, looking out
through it. Finally, he shook his head, sighed deeply,
then carefully set the ball down on a
wooden stand before turning to Ahrmin. "Good. I see you received my
summons." 113
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Yes, sir." Why me? I'm just
barely a journeyman. If you have a need for
my guild, why not send for a master? He didn't say that; Slavers' Guildmaster
Yryn had spent most of .his tenure trying to improve the often uneasy relations
between the Slavers' Guild and the Wizards' Guild, and was known to have little
patience with any apprentice of journeyman
who did anything to offend wizards. If the apprentice or journeyman survived. The rapprochement between
the slavers and the wizards, while tentative, had paid well; it had opened up
both Therranj and Melawei for frequent slaving raids. The Wizards' Guildmaster was thought to be lukewarm about the
loose alliance; Yryn tolerated no
action that might change that indifference
to opposition. Wenthall walked to a water bowl and splashed water, on his
face, drying his black beard with his gray robes. "You recall that there
is a reward out for the one who stole our sewer dragon," he said, seating
himself on a stool, his hands folded over
his bulging belly. "Of
course." Despite himself, Ahrmin voiced it almost as a question. After all, the reward had
gone unclaimed for more than a year.
Undoubtedly, the culprit was dead somewhere, or had fled the Eren regions, past
the range of even Wizards' Guildmaster Lucius' location spells.
"But hunting dragons isn't something I can do, Master Wenthall; I don't
have that kind of experience. Even if there are any small ones left." The wizard's eyes flashed. "Just
listen, fool. I do not want you to hunt a dragon—you and I have further grievances against the one who freed our sewer
dragon. The same one believed
responsible for the deaths of both Blenryth, of my order, and Ohlmin, of
yours." Ohlmin? That had to mean—no; it was impossible. "But Karl Cullinane has to be dead, or must
have fled the region, at least, sir. None of you wizards has been able to locate him." Ahrmin 115 Wenthall rose to his
feet, sighing. He walked oyer to a scrollrack set into the nearest wall. "There is one
other possibility," the wizard said, rummaging through the scrolls,
finally selecting one. He unrolled it; it was a well-worn map of
the entire Eren region. "He could have
been in the one place in the region that is protected from both the erratic
sight of my crystal ball and my more
reliable spells of direction. And a message I've received from Lord
Mehlen of Metreyll suggests that that must be the case. He was ..." The wizard tapped at a spot on
the map. "There. The home tabernacle of the Healing Hand Society.
That is where Cullinane hid. He is not there right now. But he has been.
Protected by the Hand." "You're certain?" "Yes," Wenthall hissed, "I am certain. I
haven't been able to see him with the ball, but there is no doubt that Karl Cullinane is alive, boy. He is alive. Look." Puffing from the exertion, the wizard
reached up to a high shelf and brought down
a chamois-wrapped parcel, almost a foot high. He unwrapped it carefully
before gently setting it down on a table, a
baked-clay statue of a bearded man, holding a long sword. Ahrmin looked closer. The statue was
incredibly detailed, down to individual hairs carved into the head. "Karl Cullinane?" "Karl Cullinane." Wenthall
rewrapped the statue and put it away. Then, from the folds of his robe, he produced a strange device: a hollow glass sphere
the size of his fist, containing a
murky yellow oil. "Look here." Reluctantly moving closer, Ahrmin peered into it. A mummified finger
floated in the sphere's center. The finger had been messily severed from its
owner's hand; a shard of bone
projected from its hacked-off end, and shreds
of skin and tendon waved slowly as it floated. "Hmmm." Walking quickly to a
compass on its stand in the corner of the room, the wizard took a sighting.
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN "He's moved again. Not far—but
south and west. Still south and west. ..." "Your pardon,
Master Wenthall, but I don't understand." For a moment, the
wizard's nostrils flared. "Stupid little—" he stopped himself. "Never
mind. Listen closely. "This device
works like a location spell. After much effort, I have managed to attune it to the
body of Karl Cullinane." As the wizard slowly spun the sphere in the palm of his
age-withered hand, the dismembered finger maintained its position, pointing unerringly
to the southeast. "Too much effort; getting that statue accurate enough for the spell
to work was the most precise, most finicky work I've had to do in ten years.
But never mind that. "As long as
Cullinane remains within range, this will show you in which direction he is. If, as
you turn the ball, the finger fails to point consistently in one direction, there are four
possible explanations. First, he has fled the Eren regions. Second, he is inside the
Hand sanctuary." Wenthall grimaced. "Third, he is otherwise
magically protected.
Or, last," the wizard said, smiling thinly, "he is dead." "Will it tell
me where he is? Not just the direction, but how far?" "Yes."
Wenthall nodded. "But only indirectly." The sphere disappeared in
the folds of his cloak. Two quick strides brought the wizard across the room.
He shuffled through a pile of papers and parchment on his desk and produced a map of
the Eren regions, spreading it out on a low table. "We know,"
he said, picking up a charstick, "that he is in this direction.
But where on this line?" Wenthall shrugged, then drew a solid line that
stretched from Pandathaway into the Middle Lands, through Holtun and Bieme into
Nyphien and beyond. "We can't be certain. And there is no way of knowing, at
any given moment,
whether he is moving or stationary; the device Ahrmin 117 is not as precise as we would wish. That
could be critical. Were he on his way to Aeryk, your task would be easy; were he traveling to
Therranj, it would be more difficult. Your guild is not in the good graces of the western Therranji these days." "True." Ahrmin smiled;
slave-taking raids did have a way of making
one's guild unpopular with the locals. "But I have been tracking his
progress for the past tenday. It seems that he is traveling through the Middle Lands, possibly bound for Ehvenor." "Ehvenor, Master Wenthall? Could he
have dealings in Faerie?" "That seems
unlikely," the wizard said, scowling. "It's too risky for humans.
Particularly normals. But there are other reasons for going to Ehvenor besides
trying to beg passage into Faerie. As you should know, slaver." . "Melawei. He's bound for Melawei." -1 ~r But why? There were
only two reasons for traveling to Melawei: copra and slaves. Neither seemed to apply to Karl Cullinane. "Quite
possibly," Wenthall said. "But possibly not; it's conceivable he has dealings in the Middle
Lands. I suggest you begin by taking passage
to Lundeyll—here." He tapped the map. "Take another sighting,
with both ball and compass. If Cullinane hasn't moved, the two lines will intersect at his location. "Now"—the
wizard raised his finger—"if ever you do lose him, you can use that technique to locate him precisely. "In any case,
from Lundeyll you can take the southern route through the Aershtyls, if he is still in the Middle Lands. There is a land route to Melawei; that
could be his intention. If so, you
should be able to beat him there by ship,
no?" "Certainly, Master Wenthall. The
overland route is said to be very
difficult." "Fine. I will
speak to your guildmaster later today. See him before you leave Pandathaway; he will give you a
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN writing that will allow you to commandeer a raiding ship. If, that
is, Cullinane is bound for Melawei." "Perhaps he'll
take ship to Melawei." / could catch him at sea. If the Flail or Scourge are in
Lundeport . . . "Perhaps." The wizard extended
his hand, the sphere cradled in his palm.
"Treat this device carefully; it is the product of far more time
and effort than I would like to recall. A
finger from a freshly killed maiden elf is difficult to obtain these days." Accepting the
proffered sphere, Ahrmin nodded grimly. "I'll find him, sir, and bring him
back to you," he said.
He started to turn away, but caught himself. No. His father wouldn't have wanted him to
leave it just at that; by profession, slavers were supposed to be cold and bloodless. "The reward still
stands? There will be expenses in this, Master Wenthall. I'll have to
hire a team. And if I commandeer a ship in
Lundeyll, I'll have to pay the seamen's wages. That is the law,
master." - The wizard chuckled thinly.
"Quite your father's son, eh? Very well, the reward is doubled.
Trebled, if you bring him back alive."
The wizard smiled. "I have a use for his skin, but it must be taken
while he lives." Despite himself, Ahrmin shuddered. But he
forced a smile and a nod. "You will
have it, sir. I swear." With a deep bow, he turned and left the
wizard's room. So Karl Cullinane was
alive and well. Probably, Cullinane often snickered over killing Ohlmin. He
wouldn't be snickering soon. yom killed Ohlmin, Karl Cullinane. You shouldn't have killed my father. CHAPTER NINE: Baron Furnael When we
are planning for posterity, we ought to remember
that virtue is not hereditary. —Thomas Paine "Relatively speaking, I'm beginning to like the Middle Lands," Ahira said, looking up at Karl from
the back of his dappled pony. "Bieme in particular." "Relatively speaking," Karl answered, tired. Ahira nodded. "We've seen a few
slaves, but neither slavers nor whips. By
local standards, this isn't bad." "By local standards." Ahira snorted.
"What are you today? A Greek chorus? Like you and Slovotsky in Chem?" Karl
laughed. "I didn't know you knew about that." "Walter told me.
Swore me to silence, until the statute of limitations runs out. Not that it matters
anymore." His smile faded. "What's bothering you?" "A touch of homesickness, I think." "You miss Andrea." "Yes, but . . . actually, I was
thinking about home-home, not the valley-home." Karl loosened his tunic to
scratch at his ribs. "I think I'd trade a finger for a bar of Lifebuoy, or a pound of Kenya double-A coffee, or
a case of toilet paper . . . hell, even for a pizza." "You complain too much. Why let it
get to you? At least we're not camping out
every damn night, for now. The beds may not be Posturepedics, but they are
soft." 119
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN Karl nodded. The
dwarf had a point. In the forty days of traveling since they had left the valley and worked their way into the Middle Lands, they had gone
through some hard times. Not dangerous, particularly; the only
slaver caravan they had run across had been
easy pickings, so much so that Karl didn't consider the encounter a
proper shakedown for Fialt and Tennetty. The slavers hadn't even bothered to set
out a watchman. The late slavers. Karl had been able to send seventeen
former slaves toward the valley, one of them
carrying a letter to Andy-Andy. He hadn't worried that the group might
not find the valley, as long as they passed
nearby. Ellegon would be flying watch at night. Once the dragon spotted
them and flew close enough to read their
minds, they would be met and guided
in. No danger
there, not for anyone. The closest Karl and
the rest had come to real danger was when Fialt accidentally slashed Tennetty
across the belly during a fencing lesson. Two quickly administered healing draughts had taken care of that; a
switch to wooden swords for training purposes ensured that they wouldn't again have to use up more of their small
supply of expensive healing draughts
for that sort of accident. It wasn't the danger that bothered Karl.
It was the drudgery. Moving camp every day had been fun during
the summer when Karl's Scout troop had gone
up to Manitoba to canoe down the
Assiniboine,.but part of the fun of that had been knowing that the primitive
life-style was temporary, that hot showers, clean clothes, fast food, and air conditioning awaited them at the end of
the trip. But that wasn't true here. The endless
grind of stopping to camp, finding
firewood, lighting a fire with flint and steel, cooking, cleaning pots
and pans with dirt clods, pitching their
tents, watering the horses, breaking Baron Furnael 121 camp in the morning—all of it had started to wear on him, bringing
him almost to the breaking point. Perhaps crossing the
border from Nyphien into Bieme hadn't saved his sanity, but sometimes it felt like it. Bieme was possibly the oldest of the
Middle Lands; certainly it was the best
developed. Tilled by drayhorses and
oxen, the farmland produced an abundance of grains and legumes,
one-tenth of the fields lying fallow under strict rotation. The productivity of
the land and its people had brought both wealth and trade to Bieme; grain
sellers and hostlers came from as far away as the Katharhd and Lundeyll to do business there. Few armsmen were evident, and then only
singly, or in small groups. They functioned
primarily as a constabulary, rather than a standing army. While there was no love lost between Therranj and any of the
Middle Lands, an attack on Bieme
would have to go through one of the
surrounding principalities first, giving the Biemei ample time to prepare;
there was no need to have a large nonproductive soldier class standing
by, although all freefarmers were required to produce a well-honed sword for inspection on two different holidays
each year. The best thing, though, was the inns along
the main thoroughfare. By law, each community of five hundred or more along the
Prince's Road had to sponsor a well-kept inn, the high standards maintained
through frequent inspections by the local baron's armsmen— where there was a
local baron—and infrequent but potentially
more penalty-bearing ones by the Prince's. Throughout most of
the Prince's Road, the village inns were no more than a day's ride apart. In the few places where villages were more widely spaced, there
still was an inn, directly supported
by the crown. And the Prince's Inns
were the most luxurious and least expensive of all. "There's a
trick to all of this," Karl said, as he reined in Carrot, forcing her
to keep close to the rest of the group. "Easy, girl." He stroked the rough
hair on her neck. She
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN was still dry, even after half a day's
ride. His only complaint about her was her tendency to go at her own quick pace, her sneering
disdain for the slower pace of the other horses. "A trick?" Karl nodded. "Remember Kiar?" "That inn with
the marble floors? Not quite as lush as the Inn of Quiet Repose, but a nice place." The dwarf nodded. "This sour beer isn't all that good,
but that cook really knew how to use
it as a marinade. Although," he added under his breath, "I guess I do
miss some things from home. I'd kill
for a Genesee, or a Miller. Or even a Schlitz." Karl raised an eyebrow. "Kill?" Ahira shrugged.
"Well, maim. I really do love a good beer." "Don't remember you being much of a
beer drinker back home." Ahira frowned. "I had to be careful
about when I drank. It used to really start
my kidneys going." Karl shot a glance
over his shoulder. That had become a reflex, and one that he didn't intend to
give up, even in the relative safety of the Prince's Road. But there was no
problem. Tennetty, Fialt, and Aeia rode behind, Chak bringing up the rear. The
little man favored him with a
friendly nod and a slight, open-handed
wave. "So?" Karl asked. "Beer does that to everyone." Ahira chuckled.
"You're forgetting." He raised a thick arm and flexed it, the chainmail tightening around his biceps. "I wasn't just anyone. Muscular
dystrophy, remember?" "I know, but—" "What does that
have to do with it? Karl, I couldn't go to the John by myself; couldn't even
lift myself out of my wheelchair
and onto the toilet. Going out for a drink with
the guys wasn't something I could do, unless I had my roommate-slash-attendant with me, to drag me
off to Baron Furnael 123 the bathroom. I used to envy the hell out of the way all the rest of you were so mobile." "You don't anymore." "Well,
no," the dwarf said, unconvincingly. Karl nodded to
himself. There, was something he had that Ahira didn't, and that was the memory of always being sound
of body, of being able to take for granted something
as trivial as going out for a few beers. As if he were reading
his mind, Ahira cocked an eyebrow.
"Let's leave it alone. 'What cannot be cured . . .' You were talking about the inns?" "Right," Karl said.
"There's a trick there. If you notice, a lot of the inns were originally
built by the crown. Back in Kiar, they'd
taken down the Prince's coat of arms, but the outline was still on the
stone. A prince built it, and supported it for a while." "And then?" "People moved
nearby, probably got a good deal from the Prince on the land, and such; the crown
brought in a cleric, probably sponsored a smith or two." "Cute. And then, when the population
was large enough, the Prince gave the territory to a baron, and made the locals support the inn." "Right." Karl nodded. "At
least, that's the way I read it." And,
if it had worked that way, it spoke well for the local form of
government, despite Karl's admitted bias against
feudalism. There was nothing wrong with a bit of economic encouragement.
It was coercion that was the problem with
feudal societies. "Hmm.' Ahira
considered it for a moment. "Possible. And it's not as oppressive around here as
we've seen elsewhere. That why you haven't signaled for a fight?" Karl shook his head.
No, that wasn't it at all. The plan didn't call for them to attack every slaveowner they ran into;
that would quickly result in their being buried under a flood of bodies: Anyone
who either owned a slave, wanted to own a
slave, or had owned a slave would see
them as the enemy.
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN Attacking slavers was
different. Outside of the markets,
slavers were unpopular; locals always knew that in a slaver's eye, everyone was
potential merchandise. "No," he said, "we fight slavers, and in self-defense." "Liberally
construed." Ahira threw back his head and laughed. "Like the way you and Walter decided that attacking Orhmyst was self-defense." "Well, it felt like
self-defense." Karl dismissed the subject with an airy wave. He stood in
the saddle and turned, raising his head. "Chak?" "Yes, Kharl?" "Where are we stopping
tonight?" "Furnael."
Chak dropped his reins to rub his hands together. "Best inn in the Middle Lands. We might even meet Baron Furnael himself." Tennetty
snorted. "What a thrill." "Time for some practice, Fialt,
Tennetty," Karl said, gesturing at them
to follow him out of the common room and
into the courtyard. Chak was ready; he had the bag of practice swords slung over a shoulder. Ahira yawned and stretched. "I'm
going to get some sleep. See you folks in
the room." Aeia put down her rag doll and lifted her
head. "Me, too?" "Well
. . ." "Please, Karl? You didn't let me, last time. Please?" He smiled down at her as he nodded
genially, then gently rubbed his fingers
through her hair. "Sure." Sure, little one, I'll be the gracious father
substitute and teach you a bit more about how to disembowel a rapist. Goddam world. An eleven-year-old girl should be thinking
about dolls and boys and stuff like that. "Let's go-" Wordlessly, Chak
followed, carrying the canvas bag of wooden swords. The
courtyard of the Furnael inn was a large open Baron Furnael 125 square, surrounded by the windowed walls of the inn proper. Slate
flagstones checkered the ground, well-trimmed
clumps of grass separating them. Heavy with fruit, evenly spaced orange
trees dotted the courtyard. Karl unbuckled
his sword and hung it on a low branch, then reached up and pulled down a
couple of oranges, tossing one to Chak before quartering the other with his beltknife. Nothing for the other three; they would
get theirs later, as a reward for a good session. If at all. He ate quickly, not minding that some of
the juice dripped down his chin. The fruit
was cool and sweet. He tossed the peels to Chak, who stashed them under
the equipment bag. "Now," he said, wiping the remaining juice and pulp from his chin, "we're going to
start with a bit of hand-to-hand today." Karl slipped out of his jerkin and
unlaced his sandals, stripping down to breechclout and leggings. It promised to be a
hot session; he slipped out of his leggings, awkwardly balancing on each foot
alternately. Already down to his breechclout, Chak hung
up his sword and nodded. "This keeohokoshinkee stuff of yours?" "Kyokoshinkai. And yes." "Good." Chak nodded his approval. Fialt frowned, rubbing a finger through
his salt-and-pepper beard. "Rather do
swords," he said. Which was, for Fialt, being unusually talkative. Tennetty recoiled in
mock horror—and probably a bit of
real disgust. "Not around me. Not even with a wood sword. Liable to put my eye out while you're trying for a thrust to the kneecap." "Fialt," Chak said, "you'll
do swords with me, later. After Kharl's
done with you." He shot a grin at Karl. "I'll make him sweat a bit. A bit more." Karl nodded. When it came to fencing, Chak
was the better teacher. There was a good
reason. Karl had gained his skills
with a sword as part of the transfer to this world. 126 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN He'd never had to go through the long hours
of learning. There was no
deliberate method to his swordplay; his arm and wrist just did it, as of
their own volition. A gain? Well, yes;
his instantly acquired fencing skills had saved his life on more than one occasion.
But it was a loss, too; he'd
never had the experience of learning, of knowing
how to improve his skills. While he had run into only one swordsman more adept
than himself, there were undoubtedly
others. The loss went beyond his inability to
teach. Without knowing how to learn swordfighting, his skills were frozen at their present level. He would never get
better. Guess
I'll have to live with it. But with his karate
skills, there was the possibility of improvement, enhanced by the innate agility,
balance, and
reflexes of his body on this side. Here, he could easily have won enough in
competition—if they had competitions here—to qualify for a brown belt; back
home, the best he had been able to do was green. "Loosen up,
first," Karl said, breaking into a series of bends and stretches.
The others followed his example; working out without first warming up was an
invitation to wrenched muscles and torn tendons. After his joints and tendons stopped
protesting and settled down to a nice, quiet ache, he straightened.
"Enough. Let's start." Tennetty, Fialt, and Aeia lined up
opposite him, bowing Japanese-style, their eyes always on his. Karl returned their bows. Were the traditional
customs irrelevant here? he wondered, not for the first time. Possibly. Quite
possibly the customs of the Japanese dojo were out of place; probably they had
been silly back home. Probably it would be easier for him to use simple or compound
Erendra names for punches, kicks, blocks, and strikes. But the traditions seemed to have worked back home;
there was no sense in violating custom without a compelling reason. "Sanchin
dachi," he said, swinging his right foot past and slightly in front of his left and planting his feet a
shoulder width apart, toes canted slightly in. Sanchin dachi was the
best practicing stance for strikes and punches,
as well as snap-kicks. Not necessarily the best fighting stance—Karl had
always favored zenkutsu-dachi, a split-legged, forward-leaning
stance—but a natural one that could be assumed without triggering a violent response. "We'll
start with a few seiken." "Chudan-tsuki, sensei?" Chak asked, as he took his position at the
end of the line, next to Tennetty. "Fine. Start with your right
hand." As always, he began by demonstrating. Seiken chudan-tsuki, a
punch to the midsection, began with the nonpunching hand extended outward as
though it had just been used to block, the punching hand pulled back, the fist
inverted, resting at his side, just under
the pectorals. He moved slowly, pulling his left hand
back as he brought his right hand out, turning his wrist so that the back of
his hand faced upward, tensing his entire body just at the moment that the blow
would have made contact, had there been a real opponent. "And now the left." He
demonstrated, then dropped his hands.
"Now ... on my count, seiken chudan-tsuki; groups of four." He moved closer to them. "One—keep
it slow, now; follow the pace. Two—better,
better. Three. Four. Speed it up a bit, now. One, two, three, four. Full
speed, just as if it were for real. One-two-three-four. Keep going." Chak was doing it
properly, as usual; his stance easy, he punched smoothly, his arms moving like greased pistons. Karl passed behind the little man and
moved to help Tennetty. "No, keep your wrist straight," he said, ad- 128 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN justing her hand. "Mmm . . . better. A
bit more tensing of the belly when you strike. Don't rise to the
balls of your feet.
Flat-footed blows have much more power." He moved on to Fialt. Fialt was still throwing the shoulder of his striking arm forward. Standing in
front of him, Karl reached out and grasped his shoulders. "Try it now. Ignore me." With Karl's much longer reach, Fialt's punch wouldn't
land. Fialt punched the air in front of him, pushing his shoulder forward against Karl's hand. "No
good," Karl said. "You've
got to keep the shoulder steady. Chak?" "Not the knives, again?" The little man frowned. "Knives, again. Tennetty, Aeia, keep it
up." Chak walked over to the tree where his clothes and equipment
hung and drew his two beltknives, tossing them
hilt-first to Karl. Karl caught them, then rested the knifepoints gently against Fialt's shoulders.
"Now try it." Fialt
scowled, and punched timidly. "That
was better. At least your shoulders didn't move. But," Karl said,
increasing the pressure of the knives against Fialt's shoulders, "you
didn't have any force behind the blow.
Wouldn't have squashed a bug. Do it right, now." Still a timid punch. "Do it
better or I swear I'll stick you," he said, just as his karate teacher had once said to him.
Karl wondered for a moment if Mr. Katsuwahara had been lying, and dismissed the notion as blasphemous. This time, Fialt struck properly, his
shoulders rocksteady, his body tensing at the moment of impact. "Nice." Karl nodded, handing the
knives back to Chak. He turned toward Aeia, and— Fialt struck, a
perfectly executed seiken chudan-tsuki that landed just below Karl's solar
plexus, knocking him back. Blindly, Karl brought his right arm around
to block Fialt's second blow, then swung his right leg into a fast but gentle roundhouse kick that bowled Fialt
over. Baron Furnael 129 "Very
pretty," a voice called from the balcony overlooking the courtyard.
Karl glanced up. A man stood, looking down at them, his hands spread on the balcony
rail. "Chak. Handle it." Karl jerked
his thumb in the direction of the voice as he stooped to help Fialt up. "Nicely done, Fialt." Fialt's grizzled face broke into a smile. "I did it right?" "Very. You hit me legally, and hit me
hard. If you'd really been aiming here,"—Karl tapped himself on the solar
plexus—"you would've had me." He clapped a hand on Fialt's shoulder.
"Keep it up and we'll make a warrior
of you yet." "Just a man who can protect himself
and his own. That's all I ask." Fialt nodded grimly. "That's
all." "I said, very pretty, sir." "And who are you?" Karl turned. "Zherr, Baron Furnael, sir." He
bowed. "May I join you?" At Karl's nod,
Furnael walked back into the building, reappearing just a few moments later at the
door into the garden, two
armsmen and an old man in gray wizard's robes
at his side. Baron Furnael was a tall man in his early
fifties, perhaps an inch or so over six feet. Despite his age, he seemed to be in good shape: His thick wrists were
heavily muscled, his leggings bulged
with well-developed calves and
thighs, only a small potbelly puffed out the front of his leather tunic. Furnael's face was deeply lined, and
stubble-free enough to suggest that he
shaved himself both carefully and frequently, or else had someone else shave
him. On his upper lip, a pencil-thin mustache was heavily streaked with gray, although his short-cropped
hair was as black as a raven. Karl kept his chuckle
to himself. That bespoke a bit of vanity. But why hadn't Furnael dyed the
mustache, too? A bit of
self-honesty? Or was it just that whatever dye they used here would have stained his lip? 130 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Baron." Karl bowed slightly,
Fialt, Tennetty, and Chak following suit. Aeia glanced up at
him, looking ready to break into tears. Strangers often affected her that way.
Particularly male strangers. Which was understandable. "Easy, little
one." He smiled. "I think it's time for your nap." She nodded and ran
away, her bare feet slapping the flagstones. Furnael smiled. "A pleasant child. Yours?" "No. But in my care. She's a Mel. I'm not." "So I see."
Furnael turned to the armsmen at his right and snapped his fingers. The armsman produced
a bottle of
wine, and uncorked it with his teeth before handing it to Furnael. "A
drink for luck?" Furnael asked, his voice making it clear it was more a command
than a question. He tilted
back the bottle and drank deeply. "Zherr Furnael
wishes you luck, friend." Smiling thinly and wiping his hand on a
purple silk handkerchief he produced from a
sleeve, Furnael handed the bottle to Karl.
"Enjoy." In the Eren regions,
a drink for luck was a custom that was invariably followed by an introduction,
whether the drinkers already knew each other or not. Typically, a drink for luck would
take place between two strangers meeting on a road, the provider of the wine
drinking first to assure the other that it was unpoisoned. The fact that
Furnael had suggested—ordered—a drink for luck in a situation where the
custom wasn't really appropriate was suspicious. The fact that his armsman had an opened
bottle ready was more so. Karl drank deeply.
The rich, fruity wine was icy cold. "Karl Cullinane thanks you, Baron." Furnael's smile
broadened. "So. I was wondering if it was you, in this company; it's said that you
travel with a Hand cleric and
another warrior from a land called Seecaucuze.
Not a Mel child and a Katharhd." Secaucus was Walter's hometown.
So it was only Baron Furnael 131 known that Karl had been traveling with Doria and Walter.
Which suggested that someone had seen the three
of them at the cesspit when Karl had freed Ellegon, or that some spell
had been able to look back, into that time
and place. But how would anyone on this side have known that Walter came
from New Jersey? Slovotsky hadn't mentioned it, as far as Karl knew. Probably Walter had mentioned it to
some local, at some time, and that local had talked to someone else about the
stranger he had met, and someone in Pandathaway had started putting two and two
together. That didn't sound good at all. Too
damn many unknowns. "There has been a price on your head
for more than a year, friend Karl,"
Furnael said. "It seems that Pandathaway wants you." Chak started to edge toward his sword; one
of Furnael's armsmen, hand near the hilt of
his shortsword, moved between the little man and the tree where Chak's falchion hung. Even if Furnael meant them harm, this
wasn't the right time to do something about
it. The odds were poor, with the wizard right there, behind Furnael.
"Stand easy, Chak," Karl said. "Stand easy. That goes for you, too," he said, holding up a palm to
forestall any move by Tennetty or Fialt. "I don't think the Baron
is out to collect the reward." Furnael spread his
hands. "You are wanted in Pandathaway,
friend Karl. This is Bieme. And here we have
no love for the Guilds Council." He gestured at the wizard who stood
behind him. "Sammis, here, once was a guild master, studying daily
in the Great Library. Today, he uses his
death spells to kill corndiggers; he was thrown out of the Wizards'
Guild, forced to flee Pandathaway." "What'd
he do, give out a spell for free?" Furnael cocked his
head to one side, his forehead furrowed. "How did you know?" He
shrugged. "In any case,
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN it is fortunate for you that my
Prince is neither allied with Pandathaway nor particularly hungry for coin," he
said, laying
his hand on the hilt of his sword. "Even if you are as good as they say, we do have the
advantage." "That depends on how you look at it,
Baron." Ahira's voice came from the balcony above. About time. Karl glanced up.
Beside Ahira, little Aeia stood,
the spare crossbow held clumsily in her arms, leveled
at one of FurnaeFs armsmen. Ahira held his own crossbow easily, the
bolt lined up not on Furnael, but on the wizard. "Aeia can't cock the bow, but she can put out a sparrow's eye at sixty
paces." Karl suppressed a
smile. Aeia could probably hit a cow at five paces, if the cow was big enough. The little girl
tried hard, but she had no talent for bowmanship at all. Ahira. went on:
"And I'm not too bad with a crossbow, myself. We're generally peaceable folk. How about you?" As usual, Ahira had picked his potential
target correctly. If the wizard opened his mouth to use a spell, Ahira could
put a bolt through his back before the first words
were fairly out. Karl folded his arms across his chest.
"You were saying, Baron?" Furnael smiled
broadly. "Again, very pretty, sir. I was saying that I must have a word with my chief man-at-arms;
he didn't tell me about the others, just you. And I was also saying that you
simply must be my guests at dinner, at my home. We dine at sundown. And . .
." Furnael let his voice trail off. "And?" "And, as long as you break no law,
harm no one, do not offend my Prince, you are safe here. Within my barony, at
least. You have my word on that, Karl Cullinane." And even if you're eager to try to collect
the reward, you'd rather do it over my dead body than yours. Karl Baron Furnael 133 hesitated. If they had to take on Furnael, there probably
wouldn't be a better time. But he couldn't kill everyone who might
present a threat. "We are honored, Baron. And accept." The baron's smile
made Karl's palm itch for the feel of his saber's sharkskin hilt. Furnael gestured at the nearer of his
armsmen. "Hivar will conduct you to the estate." He turned and walked away, the other armsman and
the wizard at his side. "What was that
all about?" Chak asked, his swordbelt 'back around his waist. Karl shrugged.
"I think the Baron wants to know what we're up to. What I'm up to. Seems that freeing Ellegon has gotten
me some interesting word-of-mouth. It also seems
that word about what we're doing hasn't gotten to Bieme yet.' "So? How do we handle it?" "We'll
see." Karl turned to the others. "Well, what are you all standing
around for? This practice Isn't over. You, there. Hivar, is it? These aren't
Pandathaway's Games. If you
want to stay around, then strip down and join in." Sitting in the
honored-guest position at the foot of the long oaken table, Karl wiped his mouth and
hands with a linen napkin. Just what are you up to, Zherr FurnaelP he thought. Lifting the wedge with both
hands, Karl took another nibble of the sweetberry pie. He ate carefully; the dark filling was bubbly hot. "I must admit to a bit of
embarrassment," Furnael said, pushing
his high-backed chair away from the table. "I've never had a guest
go hungry at my table before. And
two?" He daubed at his mustache and the corners of his mouth with a purple silken napkin, then
dropped the napkin back to his lap
as the white-linened servitor at his side
held out a washing bowl for his use. "I wouldn't have thought it
possible," he said, drying his hands
on a towel, gesturing at the servant to continue 134 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN down the
table to Fialt, Tennetty, Aeai, and Karl. Karl considered another helping of pie,
but decided against it. Overeating any further wasn't the way to cap the best
meal he'd had in months. Whatever your flaws may be, Zherr Furnael, you do
set a fine table. "Normally it
wouldn't be possible, Baron," Karl said. A fresh washbowl was presented to him;
Karl washed the meat juices and berry stains from his fingers. "At least as far as I can imagine." With a slight nod
and a vague frown, Furnael sat back, knitting his fingers over his belly. His
face a study in concern, he cocked his head at Chak and Ahira, who sat side
by side, across from the
others, their silver plates clean and empty
in front of them. "Is there anything you would eat? Anything?" Ahira shook his head.
"My apologies, Baron, but it's a religious matter. It's the fast of St. Rita Moreno, you know. My ancestors would never forgive me if I
let food or water pass my lips
today." Furnael furrowed his forehead. "I
must admit I'm not familiar with your faith, friend Ahira. Which warrens are you from?" The dwarf frowned at the question, as
though surprised at Furnael's prying.
"The Lincoln Tunnels. Far away." Ahira sighed, the picture of
a dwarf far away from home, missing the comfortable familiarity of his own warrens. Furnael opened his
mouth as though to ask just exactly where, and how far away, then visibly
reconsidered. Dismissing the subject with a wave and a shrug, he turned to Chak. "Surely a
Katharhd doesn't have religious objections to my food." Chak glanced at Karl. For once, the little
man didn't seem pleased with him. Chak
didn't relish having had to pass on
the Baron's fare. Platters of juice-dripping roast beef, the slices
crisp, brown, and garlicky around the edges,
purply rare in the middle; spit-roasted potatoes, so hot that they had to be nibbled carefully from the
end of
a knife; tiny loaves of warm,
pan-baked bread, each with a
dollop of sweet, icy butter at its core; bowls of a pungent mixture of chotte and burdock, sauteed together in wine
and fresh garlic—it had been a delightful meal, much better than Karl had had
since Pandathaway. But I don't think we're going to trust you
any too far, Baron Zherr Furnael. You reek of hidden intent. Never did like
people who do that. Furnael
had politely sampled all of the food first;
eating from the same table as the baron probably wasn't risky. But only probably. The cover story, such as it was, had more
than a few holes in it. But for all of them
to trust Furnael's food was too much
of a chance. Best to keep up the pretense. Karl nodded. "My
apologies," Chak said, glancing with apparently real regret at the
silver platters, still well laden with food, that lay invitingly on the table. "But this western
food doesn't agree with me. Haven't been able to stomach what you eat here; I've been living on my morning
meals of oat stew and greens for more tendays than I like to recall." "Oat stew?" Furnael shrugged.
"Well, if that's what you desire ..."
He gestured to one of his servitors, a short,
plump, round-faced woman. "Enna? Would you-" "No,"
Chak said. "Please." The
Baron's face clouded over. "And why not?" Good question. They hadn't worked out what
to say if Furnael was able to provide such a
bizarre and disgusting dish. Ahira spoke up. "With all due
respect, you're not thinking it through, Baron." "Well?" "If all you were able to keep down
was oat stew, how eager would you be to eat more than once a day?" Karl chuckled.
"Or even that often." He looked over at the dwarf. Nice going, Ahira. "Baron?" 136 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Yes?" "It was a wonderful meal and all, but
what's this really all about?" "What
do you mean?" "What I mean is
this: I'm wanted in Pandathaway; there's a large reward on my head. You say
you're not interested in collecting that reward. Fine; I'll accept that." The Baron lifted a
razor-sharp eating knife and considered its bright edge. "Although you
are not convinced of it." Furnael smiled thinly. "Perhaps that's wise under the circumstances;
perhaps not." He tested the edge of the knife against his thumbnail, then
replaced it on the table, the point, perhaps by chance, aligned with Karl's chest. "What I'm not
convinced of," Karl said, "is that you invite everyone who stops in
the Furnael inn into your home. And it'd be impossible to believe that you'd provide this sort of
wonderful fare—" "I thank you, sir." Furnael inclined his head. "—for all
guests of the inn. It seems to me that there has to be something else on your
mind." "Point well
taken, Karl Cullinane. I do have a business proposition for you. If you are as
good with that sword as your reputation suggests." "I doubt I'd be interest—" "Would you at
least listen to it, as a courtesy?" Furnael stood, dropping the napkin on his
chair. He lifted his swordbelt from the rack next to his chair and buckled it on. "Let's take
a short ride together and talk about it privately. These days I get little enough
chance to ride just for the pleasure of it. Enna, see to the needs of our other guests, if you
please." Karl stood and
buckled on his own sword. "Very well." He walked with Furnael toward the
arching doorway. Ahira cleared his throat. "Baron?" Furnael turned, clearly irritated. "Yes, friend Ahira?" The dwarf steepled his hands in front of his chin. "It's Baron Furnael 137 occurred to me that you may have a fallback
position in mind, if Karl turns you down. And, since you are a wise man, that fallback position is undoubtedly
something terribly wise, such as wishing us well, as we go on our way." "And if my, as you put it, fallback
position isn't so wise?" Furnael
gestured vaguely. "As an example only, what if the alternative I
present Karl Cullinane with is my taking
possession of a young girl who is manifestly an escaped slave, and returning her to her proper owners?" "Aided by, no
doubt, your full complement of twenty or so armsmen, some of whom you have stationed outside, as a
precaution." "No
doubt." Furnael smiled. "Baron,
may I tell you a story?" "This hardly seems the occasion." "Please?"
The dwarf smiled thinly. "At least listen, as a courtesy to a guest?
It's a very short story, Baron. And it might amuse you." Furnael gave in, seating himself on the
empty chair next to Ahira. "Since you
insist." "Good. Let me begin it like this.
There once was a slaver named Ohlmin. A master of the blade, Ohlmin won the
swords competition in Pandathaway's Games every
time he entered. With one exception. "One man defeated him. Karl
Cullinane, fighting in his first competition, ever. As you perhaps can
understand, Ohlmin resented that." Karl quelled a smile. That was true, as
far as it went, but Ahira's rendition left
out a few critical facts. For one thing, Ohlmin had been a better
swordsman than Karl; Karl had won only by a
judicious application of a hole in the
rules of the swords competition. Ahira went on: "For that reason and
others, Ohlmin hunted our party down, and caught us in the Waste of Elrood.
Along with a hired wizard, Ohlmin had fifteen slavers
with him, all good with their swords. "Ohlmin
put Karl, Walter Slovotsky, and
me in
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN chains. He spent a bit of time working
Karl over with his fists, as
well. After a number of hours, we managed to break
free." "How?" Furnael raised an
eyebrow. "Slavers' chains are too strong to be broken, even by a
dwarf." Ahira smiled. "Trick of the trade. In
any case, break free we did. I managed to
account for four of the slavers before
a crossbow bolt struck me down. The wizard who was with us killed their
wizard. For the sake of the injured among us, Karl put us all in a wagon and
fled, leaving one of their wagons aflame, and half of the slavers dead." "Most
impressive," Furnael said. "But I already knew that Karl Cullinane
is a great swordsman." "I'm sure you did, Baron." The
dwarf inclined his head. "What you
didn't know is this: Eight of the slavers were alive when we fled. Ohlmin was among them." Ahira sighed. "I wanted to leave it
at that. We were away, and free, and alive. We all hurt a bit. Karl had used the last of our healing draughts to save me.
And Karl wasn't at his best; having your arms chained over your head for
hours leaves your shoulders weak and stiff. I wanted to call it a day, leave
the slavers behind." The Baron cocked his head to one side.
"But Karl Cullinane didn't." The
pallor of his skin belied his calm tone. "No. With another of our party, Karl
went back for Ohlmin and the rest. Two against eight." "I suppose Karl Cullinane and his
companion gave a good account of
themselves." "Karl left
seven of them lying dead on the ground. All save Ohlmin." "But Ohlmin got away." Furnael
started to rise. "Nevertheless, a very impressive feat. I thank you for
telling me, friend Ahira. Now, Karl Cullinane, if you would walk this way?" Ahira laid a hand on the Baron's arm.
"No, Baron, I said that he left seven
of them. He didn't leave Ohlmin; Baron Furnael 139 Karl brought Ohlmin's head back, as a remembrance." The dwarf removed his hand, and smiled amiably.
"Have a nice talk." The night was bright, lit by the
shimmering of the million stars flickering
overhead and the score of smoking torches
along the ramparts of Furnael's keep. Sitting comfortably in Carrot's saddle,
Karl rode beside Furnael. The Baron was mounted on a slightly smaller, snow-white mare whose black marking over
her right eye made her look like an
equine pirate. As they rode slowly
along the narrow dirt road outside the keep, Furnael paused beneath each of the
four guard stations. At each station the noble silently raised a hand to greet the watchman peering out through
an embrasure, leaning lazily against a
jutting stone merlon. Each guard
nodded and waved in response. By the time they reached the Prince's
Road, Karl was tired of Furnael's silence. "Baron?" "Bear with me
awhile longer, Karl Cullinane." With a flick of the reins, he turned his horse east
onto the Prince's Road, Karl following. Soon, the walls of the keep were far
behind; Furnael picked up the pace as they topped a hill, then started down
toward a cluster of low wooden buildings, half a mile away, wisps of smoke
rising from their chimneys and twisting into
the night. "Those are the slave quarters of my own farm,"
Furnael said. On both sides of the road,
fields of chest-high cornstalks waved and whispered to themselves in the light breeze. "I have been keeping
loose security," he said, with a deep sigh. "No passwords; I have a few armsmen, and no soldiers
at all. But that's going to have to change. Everything's going to change." "Things look peaceful enough,
Baron," Karl said. "If you'll
forgive the contradiction." "If I
wouldn't forgive being contradicted, would that
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN make things look one whit less peaceful?" Furnael smiled. "Enough of this formality: if I may
call you Karl, I would be honored if
you would call me Zherr. When we are
by ourselves, that is." At Karl's nod, Furnael smiled, then pursed his lips, shaking his head. "And
it is truly said that looks can be
deceiving. Do you know the Middle Lands
well?" "Not at all." "Except for some problems with the
Therranji, it's been peaceful for most of my life, and unless the Therranji push much harder than they have been,
they're not going to threaten Nyphien, much less Bieme. "It's been
peaceful for a long time. For all of His Highness' reign, for that matter. His
father and mine settled the
boundary disputes with Nyphien to the west; our grandfathers fought Holtun. Most of His Highness' soldiers have long
settled down to their farms. In all the country, it'd be hard to find a score
of Bieme-born men who've been blooded in combat. Displaying a shiny, well-honed sword on Birthday or Midsummer doesn't make a man a warrior." Furnael indicated the
keep behind them with a wave of his hand. "I have forty armsmen. Only Hivar is
native to
Bieme—his father served mine, as did his grandfather. The others are
slephmelrad, too, but originally outland mercenaries. I'd thought we could grow fat
and happy through
my life, and that of my sons. I'd thought that. And I still hope so." "But you don't
believe it anymore?" Karl shook his head. "The reasons don't show,
Baron." "Zherr." "The reasons
don't show, Zherr. I haven't seen any signs of war or any sort of deprivation in
all of Bieme." "Ahh, you see war and deprivation as linked?" "Obviously, Zherr. War causes deprivation." "True. But it
can be the other way around, as well." Furnael pursed his lips. "There is
danger in wealth, even if it's only enough wealth to keep your people well fed, Baron Furnael 141 clothed, with perhaps a bit more to pay the
cleric. What if your neighbor isn't wealthy? "The border wars with Nyphien started
because of a two-year case of dustblight
that hit western Nyphien and part of
Khar. The first year, they paid the Spidersect to abate the blight, but barely recovered half their
corn, less of their wheat, and none of their oats or barley; the second year, there was no money left for the
Spiders, and the Nyphs tried to push
their borders east, into Bieme. "By the third harvest, the war was
fully underway." The Baron shook his
head. "I've heard tales of it. Not a pretty war. Not pretty, at
all." "And that's happening again?" "No, not
exactly. Mmm, hold up a moment." Furnael stopped his horse, then bent to pick a
fist-sized stone from the
road. He threw it onto the road's rough shoulder, then remounted. "A
different direction; a different problem.
Less than a day's ride to the east, both barony Furnael and the
Principality of Bieme end, and Holtun and
the barony of my good friend Vertum Adahan begin. And Vertum Adahan is a good friend, though I've
never crossed his doorstep, or he mine." "Why?" The Baron shook his
head sadly. "There was a blood feud between our families. Depending on
which side you believe, my
great-grandmother was either stolen from her
husband, Baron Adahan, or left him voluntarily. The Baron took another
wife, but Adahan men raided into Furnael throughout the rest of my
great-grandfather's rule, and into my
grandfather's." "Which side do you believe?" Furnael smiled thinly.
"Sir, I will have you know that I am a dutiful great-grandson; of course great-grandmother
left her husband of her own free will to go to my lecherous great-grandfather, and even
insisted that he give her a room in the keep that locked only from the outside, in order to
reassure him that she didn't want to go back to Adahan." He shook his
head. "I'll show you 142 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN her room,
if you'd like. You can decide for yourself. "But, as I was
saying, while the feud died down during my father's time, the old feelings still run
deep; there are family
graveyards on many of my freefarmers' holdings with tombstones that read
'murdered by the swine Adahan.' I'd hoped that in the next generation . .
." He caught himself. "But I talk too much. I hope you'll forgive me,
Karl, but it's so rare that I see anyone who isn't either one of my
slephmelrad, or slaves, or a foreigner trying to grub a few extra wagonloads of
corn for his coin; it's a pleasure to speak freely." "I...
appreciate that, Zherr." Karl didn't believe for a second that Furnael was speaking freely. The Baron was trying to
gain his sympathy. Why? Was it just that Furnael didn't think he could
intimidate Karl into taking on whatever job Furnael had for him? Or was there something more? As they neared the cluster of wooden
shacks, each about twenty feet square, the door of the nearest swung open and a
woman and three children walked out, smiling
and calling out greetings. Though calling them all children might
have been an overstatement; the tallest was
a black-haired boy of sixteen or so, who looked much like a younger
version of Furnael, although he was, like the other two children, dressed in a
farmer's cotton tunic and loose drawstring pantaloons, instead of leather and
wool. He ran up and took the reins of FurnaePs horse in hand, gesturing to
another to do the same for Carrot's. Furnael dismounted,
urging Karl to follow him. "Karl Cullinane, it is my honor to present my
eldest son: Rahff, the future
Baron Furnael. Rahff, this is Karl Cullinane. Yes, son, the Karl
Cullinane." What was the son and
heir of a baron doing in the slave quarters, dressed like a peasant, his face streaked with dirt and
sweat, his hands blistered? Karl didn't ask; when
Furnael was ready, he'd tell Karl whatever he wanted Karl to know.
Baron Furnael 143 Rahff bowed stiffly,
his eyes wide, his jaw sagging. "The outlaw, sir? Really?" An
expression of awe flickered across Rahff s face. Karl was
uncomfortable; he'd never had to deal with a case of hero worship before. "That depends on your definition of outlaw," Karl said. "But
I'm probably the one you're thinking
of." "It is a ... pleasure
to meet you, sir," Rahff said, the formality of his manner in comical contrast to his humble dress and grimy face. The smallest of the
children, a boy a year or so shy of Aeia's age and a few inches short of her
height, ran up and threw his
arms around Furnael, burying his face against
the Baron's waist. With a warm smile, Furnael ran his fingers through the boy's hair. "And this is Rahff s brother,
my son Thomen. Don't be offended at his silence,
Karl; he is always shy around strangers." "Of course,
Baron. I am pleased to meet you, Rahff. And you, Thomen." "Not
'Baron'—Zherr, please," the baron said, picking Thomen up with a
sweep of his arm. "This isn't a formal occasion." "Zherr." The woman walked
over. She looked something like a slightly younger female version of Furnael,
with the same high cheekbones, though she had a more rounded jaw. Her hair was the
same raven black. "Karl
Cullinane," Furnael said, "my cousin, wife, and the mother of my
sons: Beralyn, Lady Furnael." Furnael's voice was more formal now,
carrying in it a hint of distaste. Or anger, perhaps. "Karl Cullinane," she said,
taking his hand in both hers. In the light
streaming through the open door, her hands
were red and swollen; some of the blisters on her fingers had broken open. "I hope you will
forgive me for not greeting you at
our home." "Of course, Lady." He blowed
over her hands. "Of course." What
the hell is a baroness doing here? 144 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN "And," Furnael went on, casting
a quick frown at Beralyn, "the youngster holding your horse is Bren
Adahan, son and heir of Vertum, Baron Adahan, of whom I have spoken."
Furnael set Thomen down and walked over,
clapping a hand to Bren's shoulder. "Good to see you, Bren. Is your tenday
going well?" "Very well,
Baron." Raising an eyebrow to ask for permission, Bren reached up to stroke Carrot's neck the moment Karl nodded. "A fine horse, Karl
Cullinane." He ran sure hands over her withers, patted at her belly
and flank, then gently felt at her left rear hock. All the while, Carrot stood proudly, her
head held a bit higher than normal, her nostrils flared, as though daring Bren
to find any hint or trace of a flaw. "She's
Pandathaway-bred, isn't she? What's her name?" "That's where I bought her. And her
name is Carrot," Karl said. "I take it that you like horses." "Oh, very much." Bren was a
sandy-haired boy of about Rahffs age, with a broad, easy smile. "My father
has a stallion I'd love to see cover her. Has she foaled yet?" "No. She's been a bit too busy to
take time out for that." Like an assassin in the night, longing for
Andy-Andy stabbed at him. God, how I miss you. It was hard to think of
her visibly pregnant, her belly swollen, and know that he wouldn't see her,
wouldn't touch her for months. At best. In the back of his
mind he could almost see her standing in front of him, hands on hips, her head
cocked to one side, a
whimsical smile playing over her lips. So? Who told you this hero business was supposed to be easy? Bren went on:
"If we have time, later, would you listen to some advice? I think breeding
Carrot with a Katharhd pony might produce a—" "Your manners,
Bren," Furnael said, shaking his head, a warm smile making his stern tone
a lie. "You're forcing me
and my guest to stand outside in the cold wind." He Baron Furnael 145 shivered violently, although the breeze from the north was only refreshingly cool. "Would you like
to unsaddle and curry the horses,
and then join us inside?" He turned to Karl. "May I? Please?" "Certainly. No need to tie her;
she'll stay around as long as she knows I'm
inside." "Of
course," Bren said disapprovingly, miffed at being told something so
patently obvious. Furnael led him into the shack. It was
small, but well kept: The stone floor was smooth and clean; the spaces between
the wallboards had been filled with fresh clay by a careful hand. No draft disturbed the fire that blazed merrily
in the stone hearth, with its cast-iron stewpot bubbling as it dangled over the flames. Furnael unbuckled his sword and hung it on
a peg before pulling a stool to the
rough-hewn table that stood in the center of the room, beckoning Karl and the
others to join him. There were only three remaining stools; Karl, Rahff, and Thomen sat, while Beralyn stood
next to her husband, frowning down
at him. Furnael chuckled. "You must forgive
my wife. She doesn't approve of this." "And why should
I?" Beralyn sniffed. "It's nothing but nonsense. My beloved husband," she added, her voice dripping with sarcasm. The Baron threw his
arm around her waist and patted at her hip. "You'll forgive me. As
usual." "Until the next harvest." Rahff frowned; Furnael caught the
expression and turned to the boy. "And
none of that, not in front of our guest.
You will show proper manners, boy." He gestured an apology to Karl.
"This is a family tradition. Before each
harvest, the sons of the Baron spend three tendays in slave quarters, working
the fields as hard as the slaves—" "Harder,
father," little Thomen piped up. "Rahff says we have to show
we're better." "—eating the
same food, wearing the same clothes as do the field slaves. Gives a sense of
proportion. Vertum 146 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN thinks well enough of it that he's sent Bren to join our boys this year. I
think Bren is profiting from it." "Nonsense,"
Beralyn said. "You should listen to your children. When Rahff is the Baron, he
won't put his sons through this." Furnael snorted.
"Which is exactly what I said when I was his age. Karl, feel free to wander around, later; you'll see
that this cabin is no better than any of the others.
We treat both our fealty-servants and slaves well, here." "This cabin is
worse," Beralyn said. "You sent your men down to chip the clay out of the
walls. Again." "As I will, each and every
time you clay the walls for the
boys. If Rahff or Thomen want to do it for themselves, that's fine. I've
tolerated your living with them to cook for
them; don't test my patience further." He shook his head. "Karl, my wife thinks to blackmail me
into giving up the tradition, by living down here when our sons do." "Zherr, you
wanted to talk about some problem?" Karl asked, uncomfortable at finding
himself brought into a family argument. "Indeed." Furnael leaned on the
table, steepling his fingers in front of
his face. "There have been raids into Holtun. A band of outlaws has taken up residence somewhere on
the slopes of Aershtym. Perhaps two, three hundred of them. They ride down at
night, punching through the idiotic line
defense the Holtish—" He cut off as
Bren opened the door. The boy shook his
head sadly. "Please don't stop on my account," he said. "I don't have any delusions about Prince Uldren." Furnael smiled a
thank-you at the boy. "They carry off women and food, killing any who raise a hand
against them.
Behind them, they leave the farms ablaze, cutting the throats of all
the cattle and sheep, like a dog covering with vomit that which he can't eat. It seems they've Baron Furnael 147 found a
large cache of salt, somewhere, and they have lately taken to salting the
ground behind them." He shook his head. "I've talked to
Sammis about it, and there is nothing his magic can do. He could kill the weeds, of course, as he does for the farms in my
barony. But salted land will grow no grain, whether the weeds are left standing or not. "If this goes
on, Holtun will find itself in the midst of a famine. To the west lies the soda
plain; they will have to turn
east. They will have to invade Bieme, just as the Nyphs did in my father's
time. These two friends"—he gestured
at Bren and Rahff—"will find themselves blood enemies. And not just
in theory, but in fact." "And you can't take on the raiders
yourself." Karl nodded. "Holtun wouldn't stand for it." "At the first sign of Biemei soldiers
crossing into Holtun, the war would start.
Already, there have been a few clashes along the border. I know that
this sounds disloyal, but if only the raiders had ventured into Bieme . . .
perhaps Prince Uldren would have swallowed his pride and seen the wisdom in
some sort of alliance." "I doubt it, Baron," Bren shook
his head. "His Highness is, as my
father says, a pompous ass. And one who'd be as likely to grip his sword by the blade as by the hilt. Fancies himself a great general, though." Furnael nodded.
"Karl, I'd like you to stop that. I hope you'll see that we are good people here. And we are people who are willing to pay, and pay well.
Perhaps you could pretend to join the raiders, lead them into an ambush?
Or track them to their lair, take them on yourselves,
chase them into my barony, where we could deal with them? Or
something—anything." Karl closed his eyes. The strategy wasn't
a problem. Not Karl's problem, in any case. Ahira could probably work something out. Still, three hundred
against five was not Karl's idea of 148 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN good odds. Then again, they wouldn't have to
take on all three hundred at
once. But that wasn't the
issue. The question isn't can we, it's should we. And that was harder.
Granted, Zherr Furnael was—or at least appeared to be—a good man for this
world; given, any war between Bieme and Holtun would be bad for everyone concerned,
including the slaves of both sides. But. . . I'm Karl Cullinane, dammit, not
Clark Kent. I can't do everything; I've
already made a promise I'm not sure I can keep; I can't let other things divert me. His conscience
pricked him. How about Aeia? Taking her home didn't constitute carrying the war to the slavers. No. Aeia's case was
different. Melawei was suffering from slave raids; it was reasonable to take her home, since that path would lead to some good
opportunities to strike at the
Slavers' Guild. What would helping Furnael have to do with
ending slavery? Anything? No, there was no connection. /'// have
to turn him down. I— Wait. "There ... is a price, Zherr. A large one." Furnael spread his hands. "We do have money, Karl." "I don't really need money. But, in
return for me and my friends solving your
problem, would you be willing to give
up all your slaves?" Furnael smiled.
"That's a high price, Karl. It'd cost me much time and coin to replace all the slaves in my barony. Perhaps we could consider—" "No. Not
replace. Your payment would be to give up the owning of slaves throughout your
barony. Forever." For a moment, the
Baron's face was a study in puzzlement. Then Furnael sighed. "I ... I thank you for the politeness
of not turning me down directly. But it wasn't necessary; I understand.
You don't want to make our battles
yours." Baron Furnael 149 "Baron, I'm completely serious." "Please. Don't
insult my intelligence." Furnael held up a hand. "Let it be, Karl Cullinane,
let it be." Karl opened his mouth, then closed it. It
wouldn't work. To Furnael, the concept of
slavery was so normal that he
couldn't take at face value any suggestion he give up owning people. It wasn't really offensive to
Furnael, just incomprehensible. But trying to explain further could only be an affront. Furnael's face grew grim. "I'd
thought to try to frighten you into serving
me, you know. Threatening to hold
that little girl—Aeia, is it?—as hostage against your success." He drummed his fingers on the
wood. "You do seem to care
about her welfare." "That
wouldn't leave me any choice, Baron." Furnael nodded. "Then—" "No choice at all. I'd either have to
take on three hundred raiders, relying on
your word to release Aeia if I did, or I'd have to take on you
and your forty or fifty armsmen, none of
whonrseem to have done much recent fighting."
Karl left his hand fall to the hilt of his sword. "That would be an
easy decision, Baron. Granted, my friends
and I would probably all die, but we'd take some of you with us. And how would that leave you in the war that's
coming?" "It was just a thought. But a silly
one." He sighed deeply. "The sort
of warrior I need wouldn't be frightened
into doing something unwillingly." The Baron shook his head as he rose to his feet and walked
to the peg where his sword hung.
"But, as your friend Ahira put it, I have prepared a fallback position. A ruler, even a lowly baron, should always keep an option ready." "Baron, you—" Furnael
lifted the scabbard and drew the sword. Karl leaped away from the table, sending
his stool clattering on the floor. Drawing
his own sword with one fluid motion, he spun around into a crouch. Got
to be 150 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN careful. Can't let the woman or the
children get behind me; they might grab my swordarm, The sword held loosely in his hand,
Furnael drew himself up
straight. "Karl Cullinane," he said, his voice dripping with scorn,
"put up your sword. You are in no danger here, not from me. I swear that
on my life, sir." What the hell was
going on? First Furnael had tried to buy his services, then intimidate him,
then he had gotten ready to
attack Karl. "I ... don't
understand." Karl lowered the point of
his sword. "On
my life, sir," the Baron repeated. To hell with it. I've got to trust
somebody, sometime. Karl slipped his sword back into its scabbard. The Baron turned to Rahff. "Hold out
your hands, boy." Silently, Rahff shook his head. "Do it." The Baron's shout left Karl's ears
ringing. Slowly, Rahff extended his palms. With
exquisite gentleness, Furnael laid the flat
of the blade on the boy's palms, then untied his pouch from his own
waist. Carefully, Furnael tied the leather strands about the middle of the
blade. "There are ten pieces of Pandathaway gold here." White-faced, Beralyn laid a hand on
Furnael's arm. "Don't do this. He's just a boy." Furnael closed his
eyes. "This gives us a chance, just a chance, Bera. If Rahff survives, he may be
strong enough to see the barony through the coming years, through the war. I ... I
don't see any other way. Please, please don't make this any
harder." He opened his eyes and turned back to
Karl, tears streaming down his cheeks.
"Karl Cullinane. I offer my eldest son to you as apprentice, sir,
to learn the way of the sword, bow, and fist. I offer as payment my horse, this
gold, this sword, and the services of my son, for a period of five years." Karl looked down at Rahff. The boy's
whitened face was unreadable.
"Rahff?" Baron Fttrnael 151 "It's
not his choice, Karl. I'm the boy's father." Karl didn't look at
Furnael. "Shh. Rahff? Do you want to be my apprentice?" Clenching his lower lip between his teeth
until the blood flowed, Rahff looked from his mother, to his father, and back
to Karl. Slowly, he walked over and extended the sword and pouch, his arms
shaking. "It's . . . my father's wish, sir." "But is it yours?" Rahff looked from his father, to his
brother, to his mother, to Bren. Hero worship was one thing; agreeing to leave his home and family was another. Bren nodded. "Do it. If you stay,
we'll soon be enemies, be after each
other's blood." "And if I go? Will that make any difference?" "I don't know.
But it will give us five years' grace, five years until I have to kill you, or you have to kill me." Bren
clapped a hand to Rahffs shoulder, gripping tightly. "Five years, at
least." Rahff swallowed.
Then: "Y-yes. Will you accept me as apprentice, Karl Cullinane?" Karl looked at Baron Zherr Furnael with a
new sense of admiration. It took a certain something for a man to see his own
limitations, to accept the likelihood of his own
destruction, while planning to protect at least a part of his family
from the storm of arrows and swords that would
certainly leave him dead. Not necessarily just
part of his family; perhaps Furnael had other plans for Thomen and Lady Beralyn. Apprenticing Rahff to an outlaw was a
cold-blooded act, but that didn't make it wrong. If Rahff survived an
apprenticeship, he might be strong enough to hold the barony, perhaps even all of Bieme, together through the coming year. And what if he dies, Zherr Furnael? We're
heading into danger; what if he's not quick enough or lucky enough to live through it? Karl didn't voice the question. The answer was clear: 152 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN If Rahff couldn't survive a five-year
apprenticeship, then he
wasn't the ruler that the barony needed. Zherr Furnael would either have a worthy
successor, or a dead son. Not a pleasant gamble. But what other choice do they have? Karl accepted the sword and pouch on the
palms of his hands. "I accept you, Rahff, as my apprentice. Spend some
time saying goodbye to your family and friends; we leave in the morning. Oh,
and you can sleep at the inn, if you'd prefer." He untied the pouch from
the sword, then accepted the scabbard from
the Baron. "I'd
rather stay." "You're his
apprentice, boy." Furnael's low voice was almost an animal's snarl. "You
will sleep at the inn." Karl drew himself up straight. "I'll
thank you not to interfere with my apprentice, Baron. I gave him the
choice, not you." He took two copper coins from his pouch and dropped them
on the rough table. "This should cover
his lodging; he'll spend the night here, as he chooses." Slipping the sword
into the scabbard, Karl handed it to the boy. "Take good care of this, Rahff.
You're going to be spending many hard hours learning to use it." And may
God have mercy on your soul. The boy nodded somberly. "But
I think you'll do just fine." A smile peaked through Rahff s tears. And
through Furnael's. PART FOUR: Melawei CHAPTER TEN: To Ehvenor Practice is the best
teacher. —Publilius Syrus As they rode down the shallow slope
toward Ehvenor, the freshwater
sea called the Cirric lay below them and ahead
of them, rippling off across the horizon. Off in the distance, Karl
could see the rainbow sails of a wide-beamed sloop, tacking in toward the harbor. Ten, perhaps twelve small ships huddled
around Ehvenor's docks, as seamen bustled
like ants to load and unload their cargo. Just harborside of the
breakwater, three large ships lay at
anchor, attended by half a dozen small launches that swarmed around them
like pilotfish around a shark. The low stone buildings of Ehvenor cupped
the harbor, flat and ugly. The streets were
narrow, crooked, and strewn with refuse; the town of Ehvenor looked like one large slum. There was only one
exception: A cylindrical building, seemingly three or four stories high, stood
in the center of town like a
rose on a pile of dung. It shone whitely. Karl rubbed his eyes. It was hard to make
out the details of that building; the edges and details fuzzed in his eyes, as though he couldn't focus on it. "Ahira?" The dwarf shook his
head. "It doesn't seem to suit my eyes, either." "You think that's the Faerie holding,
or embassy, or whatever they call it?" 155
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN The dwarf snorted;
the snort was immediately echoed by his pony. "Not likely to be anything
else; I doubt the locals build out of mist and light." Karl
nodded. "I'd like to know how they do that." "Ever hear of magic?" Ahira fell silent. After a reflexive check to see that the
others, riding behind him, were doing fine, Karl patted at Carrot's neck. "I wonder how you're going to take to
being on a ship." Did horses get seasick? And how about the
others? Chak, Tennetty, and Rahff had never been on a boat before. Fialt wouldn't be a problem; he
was a Salke, and apparently everyone on Salket
spent a good deal of time at sea. Ahira wouldn't be a problem,
fortunately. A vomiting dwarf wouldn't be any
fun to be around. And Aeia was a Mel; according to Chak, everyone in Melawei
was practically conceived at sea. Well, at worst, we're going to have four
upchuckers among us. Probably including me. Karl rubbed at his belly. Maybe this
time will be different. God, please let this time be different. His
only other time at sea had been on the Ganness' Pride. The trip from Lundeyll to Pandathaway on the Pride was
not one of Karl's fondest memories;
he had spent the first few minutes throwing up his breakfast, the next
couple of hours vomiting up food he didn't even remember swallowing, and most
of the rest of the trip with the dry heaves. Ahira chuckled. "What is it?" Karl looked down
at the dwarf. "You think seasickness is
funny?" The dwarf shook his head. "No. I
wasn't thinking about seasickness at
all." "Oh. So it's my nervousness about
going on a boat again that's funny?" Ahira scowled. "Your nervousness?
Karl, you don't know what nervousness about being on a boat is." To Ehvenor 157 That was strange. Ahira hadn't shown a
trace of nausea while they'd been aboard the Ganness' Pride. "Iron-guts Ahira, that's what we'll have to
call you. You hid your seasickness
well." "No, I wasn't seasick. There are
other problems than seasickness," the
dwarf said, scowling. "Think it through, Karl." "Well?" "How much do you weigh?" "Huh?"
What did that have to do with anything? "A simple question, actually. How
much do you weigh?" "Mmm, about two-twenty or so, on This
Side. Back home, about—" "How much do I weigh?" "About the same,
I'd guess." A dwarf was built differently than a human. Ahira's body wasn't just
shorter and disproportionately
wider than Karl's; his muscles and bones
were more dense. More dense. "Oh. I hadn't thought about
that." A human's body was, overall, less dense than water. But the dwarf .
. . "If you fell overboard, you'd sink like a stone, chainmail vest or no." "Exactly. I
could easily drown in five, six feet of water. A bit more serious than a spot of
projectile vomiting, no?" "But
what was so funny about that?" Ahira smiled.
"You were the one thinking about boats. I was thinking about towns." "Well?" "Think about it.
What was the first town we ever dealt with on This Side?" "Lundeyll. We just barely got out of
there with our lives." Not all of them
had gotten out alive. Jason Parker had
died in Lundeyll, spending the last few moments of his life kicking on
the end of a spear. Someday, if I can find
the time, I think I'll look up Lordling Lund and feed him his fingers, one
joint at a time. "Exactly.
We left Lundeyll just about ten seconds
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN ahead of the posse. The next town was
Pandathaway. We got out of there a couple days before Ohlmin left, chasing us. We didn't spend any time worth talking
about in a town until you and Walter went
into Metreyll. And look at the time frame there: From the time you
killed Lord Mehlen's armsmen until Metreyll found out must have been ... at least a week, maybe a tenday."
The dwarf held out a stubby finger. "One: ten seconds." Another
finger. "Two: three days." A third finger. "Three: a full
week." Ahira shot a glance at Karl. "Now, think about Bieme, and
Furnael. For once, we left a town without anybody
after us, even though the Baron wasn't pleased about your turning down
that job. I was a bit nervous about that for a couple of weeks, but now that
we're almost in Ehvenor, it's clear that he's not coming after us." "So?"
Karl didn't see the point of it all. "So, it seems
to me it's sort of a progression; looks like we're learning to get along better and better with the locals. If this keeps up, eventually we might
even make friends somewhere, be invited to stay. // this keeps up ..." "Well?" "Well,
yonder—I'm starting to like saying yonder—lies Ehvenor. All we have to do there, all we want to
do there, is book passage to Melawei." "Do you always
have to belabor the obvious before you ask me a favor?" Karl couldn't help returning Ahira's smile. "Try just asking." "Fair enough: While we're in Ehvenor,
try to avoid sticking any locals through
the gizzard." Karl shuddered. You're talking as
though I like bloodshed. He opened his mouth to protest, then closed it. Keep
it light, just keep it light. "That's asking a lot. What'll you do for
me?" Ahira thought about it for a minute.
"Ever hear of positive and negative reinforcement?" To Ehvenor 159 "Of course. Use to be a psych major." "Good. Let's use
both. Negative reinforcement: If you get us into trouble here, I'll bash you with my axe." "And the positive reinforcement?" "If we do get out of Ehvenor without
any bloodshed, I'll give you a lollipop.
Fair enough?" "Fair enough." Karl chuckled a
moment, then sobered. Even though it was hidden by the banter,
Ahira was serious. And he had a point.
If they ran into slavers in Ehvenor, the city wasn't the place to take them on. The locals wouldn't
like it; Karl had no illusions about his group's ability to take on a slaver team and a large detachment of local armsmen. Though the group was shaping up nicely,
come to think of it. Tennetty was getting better and better
with a sword. She didn't have the upper-body strength to parry more than a few
solid thrusts without tiring, but she did have an almost instinctive feel for
the weak points in an opponent's defenses. Rahff was coming
along well, although he didn't seem to have Tennetty's natural bent for swordplay. The boy had to work
at it. But he did work hard. A good kid, although the way Rahff hung on Karl's
every word was quickly getting old. Fialt's swordsmanship
was still lousy, but his hand-to-hand skills had come a long way, and he had
developed a nice feel for both manriki-gusari and staff. Chak was a good man. Not a fancy
swordsman, but a reliable one. With Chak on watch, Karl could sleep peacefully; with Chak bringing up the rear of the
group, Karl could concentrate on
what lay ahead, with only an occasioned glance behind. Chak was . . . solid,
that was it. Even little Aeia's bowmanship was coming along. She
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN wasn't as good as Ahira had told Furnael, of course. But
not too bad, either. Aeia and a cocked crossbow could be a nice hole card in a
fight. Wait a
minute. "Ahira?" "Yes?" "I've
got one question, though. If you don't mind." "Well?" "Where
are you going to get the lollipop?" CHAPTER ELEVEN: Ehvenor Remember that no man loses other life than that which he lives, or lives
any other life than that which he loses. —Marcus Aurelius Him? Karl started. The aging, wide-bellied ketch
tied at the end of the narrow
dock didn't look familiar, but the man in the sailcloth tunic, directing the
loading crew, did. Avoir Ganness, what the hell are you doing here? And if
you're here, where's the Pride? It had to be him.
While sweat-stained sailcloth tunics weren't at all rare around the docks, there
couldn't be a whole lot of short, dark-skinned sailors with waist-length pigtails and
thick, hairy legs who carried themselves with the rolling swagger and easy
confidence of a ship's captain. "Captain Ganness?" Avair Ganness
shouted a quick command at a seaman, then turned. His swarthy face
paled. "You? Not again." He opened his mouth to call to one of
the bowmen at the foot of the dock, then pursed his lips and shrugged, beckoning to a
crewman. "Quickly," he said, "finish loading and prepare to cast
off." "But we don't sail until—" "Smartly, now. We may not have
to, but I want to be able to cast off and up sails in half a score
heartbeats. We may need to show Ehvenor a fast set of heels. Understood?" "Aye,
sir." The sailor shrugged and vaulted over the 161 162 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN splintered railing, calling out to crewmen to halt the loading process and prepare for casting off. Ganness turned back
to Karl, a tragic smile spreading over his face. "What is it now, Karl Cullinane?" He spread his hands. "If you've managed to get
the Ehven as angry as you did Lord Lund, I'd at least like to know why I'm
going to die on this wretched dock." Karl raised a hand. "I'm not wanted
here. Pan-dathaway, yes. But I understand that Ehvenor isn't interested."
As Chak explained it, there was no love lost between Pandathaway, the center of
trade, culture, and magic of the Eren regions, and Ehvenor, dominated by the outpost of Faerie. Ganness nodded, conceding the point.
"True enough. As far as official
Ehvenor goes. But not all Ehvenor is official Ehvenor." He pointed a blunt
finger shoreward. At his motion, a group of filthy, rag-clad men scurried for
the shadow of a warehouse,
all the while gibbering at each other in strained, high-pitched voices.
"Watch your back, Karl Cullinane. Being around faerie too long does
strange things to some humans; drives them crazy. I don't keep bowmen at the
foot of the dock for the pleasure of it; in the past, crazies have fired
boats—with themselves aboard, more often than not. Some of them would slit you open, throat to crotch, just for the fun of
it." Ganness smiled. "Instead of the money." Karl rested his hand on his swordhilt.
"Perhaps you'd like the money?" Ganness sneered. "Me?" He spat
on the dock. "Of course. But while the
notion of carrying your head back to Pandathaway thrills me, the idea of
becoming a side attraction in the Coliseum
doesn't. I don't dare set foot in Pandathaway or Lundeyll, not anymore. Not
since I was fool enough to carry you
from Lundeyll to Pandathaway. The wizards have long memories. I won't
have any further dealings with them, for as long as I live." He laughed ruefully. "And that's a safe claim,
come to think Ehvenor 163 of it. Now," he said, drawing himself up straight,
"what are you doing here?" "I'd heard that a ship called the Warthog
was leaving for Melawei tonight. Is
this it?" "Yes. And she's mine, such as she is." Karl looked the ketch over, from the
gashed bow all the way to the stern, where a pair of seamen worked a bilge
pump, sending a constant stream of brown water over the side and into the harbor. "Not quite the Ganness'
Pride, eh?" "Not quite." "What happened?" "Lund wasn't pleased with my carrying
you from Lundeyll; he hired himself a brace
of pirate ships to hunt her down.
They caught up with me just off Salket. The Pride went down; I
barely escaped with my life. All thanks to you." Canness sighed. "But
you haven't answered my question." "I think I have. I need to buy some
passages to Melawei: seven people and two
horses going, six and two coming
back. Are you willing to carry us?" "The same you
were with before?" Ganness brightened. "Including Doria?" "No, the only one you'd know is Ahira. The dwarf." "Too bad."
Ganness pursed his lips. "I may regret asking this, but are any of the others
good with a sword or bow?" "All of us. You
might be able to use an extra sword or two. There's been a bit of trouble on the
Cirric, I hear." That
was a bald lie. Karl hadn't heard anything of the sort. But, given that slavers were raiding Melawei, it was reasonable
to assume that they might pounce on a few merchantment. And if Ganness was even
considering carrying them, it was certain
that the captain was afraid of just
that. "True
enough." Ganness stood silently for a moment. "Are you sure
that you're not wanted here? I'm not about to let you close another port to me." 164 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Karl patted the hilt
of his saber. "I'm certain. I'll swear it on this, if you'd like." Ganness nodded.
"Fine, then. I can put the horses in the hold, but the only other accommodations
I've got are deck
passage—unless you'd prefer to sleep with your animals?" "No thanks." "Very well,
then. It'll be six gold for each human, five for the dwarf, two for each horse. Each passage, each way. Payable now." He held out his hand. Karl raised an eyebrow. "On this?
That's almost ten platinum. I could almost
buy this ship for that." "No, you
couldn't. I wouldn't sell." He smiled. "Besides, Warthog is faster than
she looks. In some ways, she's better than the Pride was." Karl held back a
laugh. The Ganness' Pride had been a lean, shapely sloop, not a floating
leak. The only way this scow
was better than Ganness' former ship was that it would hurt Ganness less to lose her. "Well, at least she's
here." One hand on his hip,
Ganness held out a palm. "The coin, if you please." Karl hefted the pouch. "I don't have
that much with me." But should they take passage on Ganness' ship? Maybe it would be better to wait for the next one. No. It could be a
long time before another Melawei-bound ship left. And if he turned Ganness down,
the captain might be tempted
to let it be known there was a wanted man around, for whose head Pandathaway
would pay well. The threat was implicit in Ganness' ridiculously high price for passage. Karl opened the pouch
and counted out six gold coins. "You can have this as a deposit; I'll
have the rest for you at the time we sail." "Agreed. And I will see you then." Karl started to turn
away, but Ganness' shout stopped him. Ehvenor • 165 Wait. "Aren't you forgetting something?" Canness asked. "What?" The captain gestured
to Karl's sword. "I think there's still a bit of swearing to be done. On your
sword, if you please. If, that is, you do want passage." Karl hesitated. "Truly,"
Ganness went on, "she is a good ship. Seaworthy and fast." "Of course." Slowly, Karl drew
his sword then balanced it on his palms. / may
as well get this over with. Next thing I know, he'll be telling me she made the
Kessel run in three parsecs. Ahrmin clung to one
of ten rope ladders secured to the dock, restraining a shiver. The Cirric was cold this late at night,
but it and the darkness provided good cover for Ahrmin and his ten men. He had spent several hours considering how
many of the forty men from the Scourge
to take with him. Too small a
group wouldn't be able to take on Cullinane and his friends; too large a
group would be impossible to hide. The element of surprise was always a huge advantage, and Ahrmin believed in having every advantage available. Ten seemed about
right. Enough to overpower Cullinane's group; not too many to hide. It would take sharp
eyes to see their heads and the few inches of rope that had been tacked to the side of the dock. The dock was a thick and sturdy one, rising
more than two heads' height above the smooth black water. Near the ship,
sandals slapped against wood and voices called out orders, as the crew made the
final preparations for the Warthog to sail. Clinging to the
ladder next to Ahrmin's, Jheral nudged him. "Shouldn't you check that ball again?" he whispered. "Or are you afraid of losing
it?" Jheral shook 166 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN his head to clear the water from his
eyes and his long, pointed ears. Ahrmin rewarded him
with a scowl. The damned elf was more trouble than he was worth. Jheral had
been a journeyman
slaver for more than twenty years, and made no secret of his strong distaste
for Ahrmin's promotion to master. Not that Guildmaster Yryn had had any
choice; he couldn't place Ahrmin in
authority over senior journeymen
without promoting him, and this job was clearly too much for Ahrmin and a group of junior journeymen
and apprentices. Probably Jheral and
the others could have taken that. But the guildmaster had gone further, taking
the unusual step of expressing his confidence in Ahrmin in the Writ of Mastery," by way of trying to avoid
any conflicts. Normally that would have settled the matter; Guild-master Yryn was known for being stinting in his
praise. It hadn't settled it;
in fact, Yryn's strategy had backfired, acting as fuel to the journeymen's resentment— Jheral's, in particular. "We could have just waited for them
at sea," Jheral went on, "instead
of floating here like a bunch of silkies." "Be quiet. Do
you want them to hear us?" That suggestion was ridiculous; it just couldn't work.
In a sea battle, it would be impossible to capture Karl Cullinane alive. Stealth was the only
chance. But Jheral's first idea did make sense.
Grudgingly, Ahrmin reached over to the
inflated pig bladder that was tied loosely to the ladder and reached
underneath, pulling on the slim rope to
haul up the fine-mesh net bag containing
the device Wenthall had given him. "Light," he whispered. Jheral drew his knife, cupping his hands
around the blade to prevent the bright glow
from shining through the cracks in
the dock. Thyren, the Scourge's wizard, had refused Ahrmin's request to help them catch Karl I J Ehvenor 167 Cullinane, saying that he had signed on only
to neutralize the Mel wizards
during the slaving raid. But he had agreed
to Glow a knife ... in return for Ahrmin's promise of share of the reward. The finger floated in the yellow oil,
pointing unerringly toward the city, toward Karl Cullinane. Ahrmin
waited, watching the finger. With agonizing
slowness it moved, until it came to rest parallel to the dock. Silently, Ahrmin pushed himself away from
the ladder, pulling the bladder with him, beckoning at Jheral to follow. Like a compass
needle, the finger swung. Karl Cullinane
was nearing the dock; he was somewhere in the
shadows of Ehvenor. Somewhere near. "He's almost here." Ahrmin
tugged on the netting to make certain that it still secured the ball, then
checked the rope fastening the netting to the bladder. The knots were still
tight; he let the ball sink below the surface, then beckoned to the others
bobbing in the dark water. "On my signal, we move," he whispered.
"Remember, we can kill the others, but I want Karl Cullinane alive. And,
Jheral—put that knife away." "For
a moment." Jheral smiled. "For a moment." At the foot of the dock, Karl held up a
hand and climbed down from Carrot's saddle. "Rahff, has Pirate ever been on a boat before?" The boy shook his
head. "No." The white horse snorted and stamped her feet, pulling back against the reins as
Rahff tried to lead her. He stroked at the horse's neck with his right hand as
he held the reins in his left. "And she's getting a bit skittish. I'm
sorry, Karl." "Don't apologize, Rahff. You do just
fine with the horses." Rahff drew
himself up straight, standing proudly. Karl
suppressed a pleased chuckle. A few words of
168 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN mild commendation did wonders for the
boy's posture. Whatever his
virtues, Zherr Furnael had clearly never been
unstinting in his praise. Karl tried to calm
Pirate down, but the horse snorted and snapped at his fingers. It was just as well
that they had sold the other horses, instead of trying to bring them on board.
While Carrot wasn't a problem, Pirate's skittishness could quickly have become contagious. Chak tapped Karl's shoulder. "Let me try." "Go ahead." The little man reached into his sack and
produced a strip of cloth. With a quick motion, he whipped it around Pirate's eyes, fastening it in place as a
blindfold. The blindfold worked; Pirate calmed
instantly, as though someone had thrown a
switch. Fialt hoisted his bag
to his shoulder. "You should keep the horses toward the middle; gives you
a bit of room for error if the animal gets twitchy." Tennetty threw an arm
around Fialt's waist. "Hmm." She smiled. "I guess you are good for
something, clumsy. Something else, that is." Ahira raised an
eyebrow; Karl shook his head. Something else? Apparently both of them had
missed what had been going on between Fialt and Tennetty. "Can't put the two of them on watch
together anymore," Karl whispered. "They'll be paying too much attention to each other to keep a proper lookout.
That's probably been going on for a
while." "Happens."
Ahira nodded. "But don't be too critical, eh? Let he without sin cast the first
stone, and all that." "Right." Karl raised his head. "Let's go. Slowly,
now." As he led Carrot onto
the dock, Aeia skipped ahead, her little feet flying across the wood. She stopped just
a few
yards from the Warthog, nervously eyeing the strangers on board
the ship. Ganness held out a hand. "Welcome
aboard." He raised his head and called
out, "You have the coin?"
Ehoenor 169 "As agreed," Karl called back.
"Go ahead, Aeia. Get on. We'll be there in a moment." After the
slightest of pauses, she walked up the ramp and onto the deck. Karl pulled on Carrot's reins. "Easy,
girl. It'll just be another—" A hand reached out of
the water and fastened itself on Karl's ankle. Another hand stabbed a glowing
knife into his calf. Pain cut through him; he fell, landing
hard on his side, his left arm caught beneath him. A shrill scream forced its way through his lips. Swords and knives in
their hands, eleven men slipped out of the water, surrounding them all in a
circle of steel points and edges. Karl reached for the hilt of his sword,
but the same glowing knife stabbed through
his right wrist, pinning his hand to
the wood. His fingers writhed; his nails clawed at th,e wood. Another hand grasped his hair. "Don't
try to move." An elf s thin face leered
inches from his. "That will only make it hurt more." "We only want Karl Cullinane," a
low voice rasped. "The rest of you can go. Or die." Karl couldn't move his head, and the
reflexive twitching of his right hand sent red-hot currents of pain shooting
through his arm. He could only see Carrot's rump, Fialt, Tennetty, and two
swords, just at the edge of his vision,
menacing them. Fialt raised his hands. "We don't want any trouble—" He slapped at
Carrot's hindquarters, sending the horse galloping down the pier. He snatched
the manriki-gusari from his belt, then leaped out of Karl's vision. Fialt staggered back,
blood fountaining from between his hands as he clutched his chest, while Carrot's pounding hooves set the
dock shaking. "Chak,"
Ahira shouted, "now." Karl struggled to free his left arm as the
elf s fist pounded against his face. 170 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Blood filled Kail's eyes. Blindly flailing
his arm, he managed to fasten his left hand
on the elf s throat. Karl squeezed,
ignoring the pain, ignoring the clatter of steel and the splashes of bodies falling in the water. The ony
thing that mattered was his left hand, and his grip on the elf s throat. Karl squeezed. The blows grew more frantic. Karl squeezed. The flesh of the elfs neck
parted beneath his fingers, bathing his arm
in blood. The blows eased, then stopped. "You can let go
of him now," Ahira said, bending over him. "He's dead. And the rest
are gone." A sudden stab of pain, and the knife was wrenched from Karl's hand. "Rahff, the healing draughts. Quickly, now." Karl shook his head,
clearing some of the blood from his eyes. "No." Pain pounded redly in
his hand and calf, making each word a hideous labor. "First. Get on board. All of us. Take off.
Then." The dwarf pulled him
up, helping Karl balance on his good leg. The dock was slippery with blood.
Three bodies lay face down on the wood. Tennetty knelt in a pool of Fialt's blood.
Her fists drummed a rapid tattoo on his back. "You idiot," she
trilled. "Never were any good against
a sword. Never." She beat
against his back as though trying to pound him back to life, tears streaming down her face. Chak sheathed his
sword and grasped her hands in his. "There's nothing more you can do for him," he said gently. "We have to go." He pulled her
to her feet, then stopped to pick up Fialt's body and throw it over his shoulder. Ganness ran over, two bowmen at his side.
His face was ashen, his lips white. "I
thought you said—" Rahff reached over
and grabbed the front of Ganness' tunic. "You heard Karl. Just shut up.
We'd better get out of here; they may come back." "But—" Ehvenor 171 Rahff
raised his bloody sword. "Shut up." Karl tried to listen, tried to keep his eyes open, but the darkness reached out and claimed him. It was a long swim back up to the light.
The water rocked him, and tried to force itself into his mouth. He gave up and let
himself sink into the darkness, but a hand reached out and grasped his face,
pulling him to the light. "Karl," Ahira said, forcing more
of the sickly-sweet liquid between his lips, "we're safe now. For the time
being." Karl opened his eyes.
He was lying on a narrow bunk, sunlight
streaming through the oversized porthole and splashing onto his chest. The ship
was canted, sailing close to the wind. "Where?" He struggled to get the
words out. "Where are we?" "Ganness'
cabin." The dwarf smiled. "Ganness started to object when we brought you down here,
but he took one look at Rahff and changed
his mind. That's one loyal apprentice, Karl. Good kid." Karl nodded. He
brought his right hand up, in front of his face. The wound from the knife was just a
pinkish scar on the back of his hand,
mirrored on his palm. As he stared at
the scar, it continued to fade. Soon it would be gone. It would be just
as if nothing at all had— No. "Fialt." The dwarf shook his
head. "Nothing we could do for him. Healing draughts can't help a dead man.
But Chak brought
the body on board." He bit his lip. "I ... I thought you'd want to say the words over him,
before we bury him in the Cirric.
Tennetty says that's the way they do
it on Salket." Karl raised himself
on an elbow. "I'd better go see to every—" The dwarf
planted a hand on Karl's chest and pushed 172 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN him back. "Everybody else is fine. I've put Rahff and
Chak on watch; the horses are safe in the hold." A ' crooked smile played
across Ahira's lips. "Although I'd better bring Aeia in. She's been
crying. Thinks you're dead. Rahff and Chak have been telling her you're
unkillable, but I don't think she believes them." "/ sure as hell
don't. How many of the bounty hunters did we kill?" Ahira shrugged. "Three for certain;
another four wounded and pushed into the water. The rest dove and disappeared." "And Ganness. How is he taking all of this?" With a weak smile,
Ahira picked up his battleaxe from where it lay on the floor. "I talked to
him for a while, and he stopped squawking." He lowered the axe and
sighed. "But he got
away, dammit." "He? Who?" "You
didn't notice who was leading that group?" Karl snorted. "I was sort'of busy. What's the mystery?" "The leader looked to be about
eighteen. Dark hair, dark eyes, slim nose. Good with a sword; it took him half
a second to spear Fialt through the chest and return to the on-guard position. Had one hell of a familiar-looking
and very cruel smile. And that voice ..."
The dwarf shuddered. "Didn't he sound like someone we know?" Karl tried to remember the voice. No, he
had been in too much pain to pay attention. But that description—except for the age, that sounded just like—"Ohlmin?
But he's dead." / cut his head off, and held it in my hands. There
were times that violence bothered Karl, but killing that bastard had been a distinct pleasure. Ahira nodded. "But maybe he has
either a son or a younger brother who isn't." Karl elbowed the
dwarf aside as he pushed himself to his feet. His legs were wobbly, but they would support him.
"How would you feel about fixing that?" Ehvenor 173 "At
our first opportunity. In the meantime ..."
"We bury our dead." Karl stood at the rail, Rahff and Aeia next to him. In front of him,
Fialt's body lay shrouded on a plank; the plank was supported at one end by the
starboard rail, supported at
the other by Tennetty, Chak, and Ahira. Karl laid his hand on the rail. "I
never knew Fialt as well as I would have liked to," he said. "Guess
it's because I never took enough time. But
he wasn't an easy man to get to know. Quiet, most of the time. A private
person, our Fialt was. "I never really understood why he
came along. He didn't seem to have the . . . fire in him that Ahira, Tennetty,
and I do. And it wasn't a matter of practicing his profession, as it is for
Chak. Or of learning through doing, as it is
for Rahff. "But that
doesn't tell us much about him. What do we really know about this quiet man? We know
that he was awkward with a
sword, and none too good with his hands.
Although he was learning, and no one ever tried harder. We know that he was a Salke, and a sailor, and a farmer,
and a slave. And, finally, a free man. But that was about all. "About all ..."
Karl gripped the rail, his knuckles whitening. "There were only two times that I had
even a peek through the wall he put up
between himself and the rest of the
world. It seems to me that Fialt wouldn't mind my talking about those
two times. And I hope he'll forgive me being
frank. "The first was
during a lesson. He had done something well, for once—damned if I can remember what, right now—and I'd said something like, 'We'll make a
warrior of you, if you keep this up.' "He turned to
me and shook his head. 'Just a man who can protect himself, his friends, and
his own. That's all I ask.
That's all I ask. . . .' 174 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "The other time
was last night. Fialt must have known that he wasn't good enough to take on a
swordsman by himself; he should have waited for a signal from Ahira. "But he didn't wait. It didn't make sense,
dammit." Karl gripped the body's
stiff, cold shoulder. "You should have waited, Fialt, you should
have. . . ." Karl's eyes misted over;
his voice started to crack. He took a deep breath and forced his body back under control. "I ... guess
that tells us something important about our friend. Both virtue and flaw. I will miss that virtue, that flaw, and Fialt, whose body we now surrender
to the Cirric." He patted the
shoulder and stepped back. Their faces grim, Tennetty, Chak, and
Ahira raised their end of the plank. The
body slipped from the plank and
splashed into the blue water below, falling behind as it sank. Chak drew his
falchion and raised it to his forehead in salute. Ahira unstrapped his battleaxe,
mirroring Chak. Tennetty stared at the ripples, her eyes
red, her face blank. Karl drew his own
sword and balanced it on his palms. "I promise you this, Fialt: You will be avenged." He slipped the sword back in its scabbard. "Maybe I'm wrong, but I like to think
you'd want it just that way." CHAPTER TWELVE: The Guardians
of the Sword I have been here before, But
when or how I cannot tell; I know the grass beyond the door, The sweet keen smell, The sighing sound, the lights around the shore —Dante Gabriel Rossetti Karl stood at the Warthog's bow, holding tight to the
railing as the ketch lumbered slowly across the gently rolling sea toward the small inlet and the lagoon beyond. Overhead,
the jib luffed merrily in the wind; below, water
foamed, splashed, and whispered against the hull. Gentle waves lapped against the sandy
shore. High above, a slim-winged tern circled in the royal blue sky, then
stooped to pluck a small fish from the blue water, bearing its wriggling prey away. Karl rubbed at his belly, once more
enjoying the taut feel of a full stomach. It had taken him time to adapt to being at sea, but his body had made the
adjustment. And in less time than it
had taken before. Only six days of
feeding the fish this time. Hmm. If this goes on, in a few years I'll only be vomiting for the first
few seconds I'm at sea. A vision of himself stepping on board,
immediately vomiting, then smiling and
feeling fine rose up unbidden. He
laughed out loud. 175 176 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Aeia looked up at him, raising one eyebrow
just the way Andy-Andy did. "It's nothing," he said. He
reached into his pouch and drew out a half-dried orange, peeling it with his thumbnail. Popping a section into his mouth, he
waved a hand at the shoreline. "Look familiar?" "Yesss . .
." First she nodded, then she shook her head. "But I don't see my house." Little one, as I understand it, Melawei
stretches out across about two hundred
miles of shoreline, with scads of
inlets, beaches, islands, and lagoons. We're not going to bump into your hut. "Don't worry. It
may take a few days, but we'll find it." Her forehead creased. "Are you sure?" Standing next to her,
Rahff gently elbowed the girl in the shoulder. "Karl promised, didn't
he?" With a derisive snort, Rahff elbowed Aeia again. That had to be stopped, nipped in the bud.
Not that the boy had done anything terrible,
but the point had to be made. "Rahff." "Yes, Karl?" "We don't hit the people we're supposed to protect." Aeia looked up at him. "He didn't hurt me, Karl." "Doesn't
matter. A man whose profession is violence must not commit violence on his own family,
or on his friends.
You and I are supposed to watch out for Aeia, protect her, not hit her, or bully her." Rahff thought it
over for a moment. "How about you and Ahira? You and he threaten to hit
each other all the time." "Think it
through, Rahff. We play at threatening each other; we don't actually hit each
other. See the difference?" "Yes." The boy cocked his head.
"But how about practice? We've all
gotten bruises from you." He rubbed at his side. "Good point. That's instruction, not violence. Anyone The Guardians of the Sword 111 can back out of practice at any time. That
includes you, apprentice. No more training or no more hitting. Understood?" "Understood.
I'll stay with the training." Rahff turned back to the rail. Karl smiled his approval. A good kid;
Rahff took criticism and instruction as a
lesson, not as a blow to his ego. At Ganness' shouted
command, the helmsman brought the
ship about again, maneuvering it between two out-reaching sandspits. The hull
rasped against a sandbar; the ship
shuddered free, and swung into the placid water of the lagoon. Karl shook his head.
No wonder the hull was as watertight as a sieve, if this was the way Ganness treated it. Even given Ganness' explanation that the Mel
would deal with a ship only after it
had grounded itself, there had to be
a simpler way than bouncing the boat across sandbars until it got stuck at low tide in the lagoon. Still, Ganness'
seamanship and his confidence in it was noteworthy; on This Side, there was no moon, and the weaker solar tides made for only a slight
difference between high and low
water. It took guts for Ganness to dare a deliberate grounding; breaking free would be tricky. Karl turned to Ahira, noting that the
dwarfs one-handed grip on a cleat on the
forward mast wasn't quite as casual as Ahira tried to make it seem. A
casual grip didn't leave the knuckles white.
"Any problem?" Ahira
didn't turn around. "No." Karl switched to English. "Hey, it's
me, remember? James, are you okay?" "I'm fine. I just don't like it when
the boat jerks around." Another bump swung Karl around, sent his
hands flying back toward the railing as the ship rocked once, then fell still,
grounded. Aeia and Rahff exchanged indulgent
smiles over Karl's poor sense of balance. 178 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Look, kids, when
you've got a couple hundred pounds of mass to carry around, it isn't as easy to
keep upright as it is for you. But never mind. Let them have a few
private chuckles. He scanned the shore, trying to see if there was anyone or anything in the dense greenery. Nothing.
Canness had said that the locals would meet them, but— "Karl?"
Ahira's voice held a hint of amusement. "Yes?" "Don't turn
around for a second. I've got a question for you." Karl
shrugged. "Sure." "This shoreline looks like Hawaii, no?" "I
was thinking Polynesia." "Hawaii's part
of Polynesia, Karl. And this is the same thing. Not Diamond Head; it looks more like Lahaina. Palm trees,
sandy beaches, almost no rocks, warm, blue water, even though it's fresh and
not salt." "Right." Karl started to turn. "Hold it a
moment," the dwarf snapped. He chuckled. "Now, given all that, when the natives show up, you wouldn't
be surprised if they were paddling dugout canoes—outrigger
types—would you?" "It wouldn't surprise me at all." A similar environment
would tend to produce similar artifacts. The simplest, most convenient road—and hunting ground, for that matter—would be
the sea. If the Mel didn't have the
resources to build large sailing ships,
they would build canoes. And if they didn't have animal skins or birch
bark to build the canoes with, they'd have to make dugouts. Dugout canoes were
inherently more unstable than other sorts—therefore, outriggers. All logical. "Is that what this is? The natives have dugouts?" "It makes sense to you, right?" "Right." "Then turn
around and tell me why their canoes look like miniature versions of Viking
longboats." The Guardians of the
Sword 179 Karl turned. Three canoes floated
in the lagoon's mouth, each five or six yards long, with an outrigger mounted
on the port side, each manned with by oarsmen. And each with a wooden carving of a
dragon's head rising from the prow. After checking on Carrot and Pirate in the
hold, Karl climbed back on deck. He gathered Ahira, Aeia, Chak, Rahff and Tennetty around him, keeping the group
well away from Ganness and the three sarong-clad Mel, who were busy at the bow, haggling over the price of
Melawei copra and Endell steel. The locals spoke Erendra with a curiously
lilting accent, far different from the flat
half-drawl of Metreyll or the
clipped speech of Pandathaway. A familiar accent. . . . "Hey,
Karl?" Ahira looked up at him. "You hear it, too?" "I sure do. You
got any explanation of why these folks talk like the Swedish Chef?" Chak frowned. "It might help,"
he said, scowling, "if you would either teach me this English of
yours, or just keep your conversation in Erendra. At least when I'm around." "Good
idea." The dwarf nodded. "I'll give it a try." Karl gestured an
apology. "We were talking about the accent these Mel have. It sounds familiar.
Like something from home." "Home?" Rahff shook his head. "Not my—" "Our home." Karl waved his hand
aimlessly. "The Other Side. A region
called Scandinavia." That was very strange. Differences between
here and home were to be expected; he had
grown used to them. On the other hand . . . coupled with the
dragon-headed canoes, the familiarity of
the local accent was vaguely frightening. It had to mean something. But what? It
couldn't be just a transplanting, as had happened 180 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN with their group. After all, the Mel didn't look like
Scandinavians, not at all: Their hair was black and straight, their skin dark; they had slight epicanthic folds around their eyes. Chak shook his head. "That doesn't
make sense. I thought you were the only ones
to cross over." "That's
what I thought, too." The largest of the
Mel, a deeply tanned, broad-shouldered man in a purple sarong, walked over. His lined face was grim as he stopped in front of Karl,
planting the butt of his leaf-bladed
spear on the deck in front of him. "Are you from
Arta Myrdhyn?" he asked, his accent still sending chills up and down Karl's
spine. "Has he sent for the sword?" Karl shook his head. "I'm sorry, but
I don't understand." The Mel gave a slight shrug, as though
that was the answer he had expected, but it had disappointed him nonetheless. "Avair Ganness," he said,
"says that you are a man from a land strange to him. He says that
your name is Karl Cullinane, and that you are someone for whom the slavers have
offered a large reward. Is this true?" I'm not sure whether it's the slavers or
the whole Guilds Council that's offering it,
but you're close enough. Karl nodded, gesturing to Chak to take his
hand off the hilt of his sword. This didn't sound like a prelude to an attack. And even if
it was, the Mel still in the boats were too far away; Karl, Tennetty, Chak, and Ahira could easily handle
the three spearmen on board. "Yes. It's true." "And why do they
hunt you?" The Mel's face was flat, unreadable. "Three reasons. First: I freed a
dragon that Pan-dathaway kept in chains.
Second: I lulled slavers and a wizard who hunted me for doing that.
Third: It is my . . . profession to kill
slavers and free slaves." And The Guardians of the Sword 181 there's a fourth reason, it seems. One—at least one— of the slavers has made it a personal matter. He laid a hand on
Aeia's shoulder. "This is Aeia; one of your people. We have brought her here. Home." "I see. And if
slavers were to raid Melawei while you are here?" Before Karl could answer, Chak snickered,
drawing his thumb across his throat,
sucking air wetly through his teeth. Karl nodded. The Mel's face became even grimmer as he
slowly rotated his spear, planting the point deeply in the wood of the deck
until the spear stood by itself. Placing his calloused
hands on Karl's shoulders, he drew himself up straight. "I am Seigar Wohtansen, wizard and warleader of
Clan Wohtan. Will you and your friends do me the honor of guesting with Clan
Wohtan while you are in Melawei?" Karl looked past Seigar Wohtansen's
shoulder to Ganness, who stood openmouthed in amazement. And down to Aeia, whose eyes grew wide. Clearly, this
wasn't the standard way to greet
visitors from other countries. Back when he was minoring in anthro, Karl
had learned something of the vast range of acceptable behavior, and the way it
varied from society to society. But the
notion of host and guest was close to universal. Except for the
Yanamamo, of course, the only culture known
by the anthropologists who studied them as "those bastards." The Mel
didn't seem like a This Side version of Yanamamo. Wohtansen stood silently, waiting for Karl's answer. "I am
honored," Karl said. "And we accept." Wohtansen dropped his hands and ran to the
railing, calling down to the men in the
dugouts. "There are guests of
the clan here, who require help with their animals and baggage. Why do you just sit there?" Aeia let
out a deep breath. 182 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "What is it?" Karl asked.
"Glad to be home?" She shook her head. "No, it's not
that." "Why? Afraid I'd turn him down and
hurt his feelings?" The girl shook her head. "If you'd
turned him down, he would have had to try to kill you." Ahira cleared his throat. "I think
we'd all better be careful with our pleases
and thank-yous. No?" Sitting down his wooden mug on the
grass-strewn floor, Seigar Wohtansen sat
back on his grass mat, leaned on his
elbows, and shook his head. He sighed deeply. "An acceptable meal, guests of my clan?" "Not
acceptable." Karl smiled. "Excellent." The others echoed him as they
reclined oh their mats. The guesthouse of
Clan Wohtan was the largest of the seventeen huts in the village, and the most luxurious. It was a
long, low structure, somewhat like a bamboo version of a quonset hut, the
wrist-thick poles that formed the framework
bent overhead, rising to about six feet at the center. Long, flat leaves
were woven among the closely spaced poles. The light wind dryly whistled through them. There was no fireplace in the hut; the
slightest spark could easily set it aflame.
Their dinner of grilled flatfish and deep-fried balls of coconut milk
had been cooked over the firepit twenty yards in front of the open end of the
guesthouse, the food brought in on plantain leaves. The cook—and a good
one, at that—had been Estalli, the younger of Seigar Wohtansen's wives; she was a slim, attractive girl who
looked to be about sixteen. Now, she knelt attentively beside Wohtansen, the hem of her sarong tucked chastely under her knees while her
naked breasts bobbled above, refilling his mug from a clay jug of fermented coconut juice while Wohtansen's seven
sons and daughters served Karl and the rest. Wohtansen's
other wife, Olyla, a hugely pregnant The Guardians of the Sword 183 woman in her late thirties, presided over the tail end of the meal
from the single piece of furniture in the hut, a cane armchair. Illumination was
provided by seven head-size glowing stones, each suspended in an individual net bag hung from the centerpole that ran lengthwise down the
roof of the hut. The light from three of the stones had begun to fade; Wohtansen had spent much of the meal
reassuring Olyla that his promise to refresh the spell still stood, and that he would do so tomorrow. Her knowing smirk
said that this wasn't the first time he had made that promise. Understandable. Life
in Melawei was lazy and easy; it would always be tempting to put work off to
tomorrow. Karl had another swig
of the coconut juice. It was dry and crisp, like a light Italian wine. But
how did they get it so cold? He shrugged. Well, if Romans could make
ice in the desert, maybe the Mel could
chill a bottle of wine. He looked over at
Aeia, who was sprawled out on her grass mat, sated after the heavy meal, half
asleep. "Good to be home, little one?" She
frowned. "I'm not home yet." Wohtansen smiled reassuringly. "We're
not too far from Clan Erik, little cousin.
No more than two days by sea."
He closed his eyes tightly for a full minute. "If your horses can take just a bit of water, you should be
able to ride straight there. And in
less time. We can start out in the morning." He shrugged.
"I've got to go that way myself. I'll need to arrange for Ganness' copra
to be picked up, and I'll have to visit the cave." Estalli reacted to
the last two words as though she had been slapped. "Seigar—" "Shh. Remember
Arta Myrdhyn's words. 'He will be a stranger from a far land.' I'll have to
take Karl Cullinane there.
And if he's not the one, the sword can protect itself. It has before." That was
the second time Wohtansen had brought up 184 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN this sword. Karl spent a half-second debating with himself whether
asking might offend the Mel. Then: "What
sword is this?" Wohtansen shrugged.
"The sword. I wish Svenna—he was the Clan Speaker—hadn't been taken by the
slavers; he could tell you the story, word by word." He raised his head. "Though Clan Erik still has its
Speaker. Do you want to wait until you can hear it properly?" "To
be honest, I'm itching with curiosity." Not particularly
about this sword, though. What were a group of Mel men doing with Scandinavian
names and Scandinavian accents? And more. The figureheads on
the dugouts looked like the dragons on Viking longboats; they were stylized,
almost rectangular, not
saurian, like Ellegon. The huts were bamboo-and-cane versions of
Viking lodges. That didn't make sense. A climate and
environment similar to Polynesia could have given rise to a culture similar to
the Polynesian culture, complete with loose, wraparound clothing, outrigger
canoes, and a loose and easy life-style
based on the bounty of the sea. But where had the Scandinavian elements come from? It was possible that the dragon-headed
canoes or the accent or the
similarity of some of the names could have been a coincidence, but not
all three. Seigar Wohtansen sat
up, then drained his mug, beckoning
to Estalli for a refill. "Very well. My father's father's
father's . . ." He knit his brow in
concentration as he counted out the generations
by tapping his fingers against his leg. "... father's father's father's father, Wohtan
Redbeard, was called a pirate, although he truly was a just man. He sailed his boat on a sea of salt, as he raided the
villages of the wicked landfolk, taking from them their ill-gotten grain
and gold." As
Wohtansen spoke, the children sat down on the The Guardians of the
Sword 185 mats, listening intently, as if to a
favorite, of ten-repeated bedtime story. "... he and his men would appear from over the
horizon, beach their boat, then ..." One of the little boys leaned over toward
an older sister. "How could they sail
on salt?" he asked, in a quiet whisper. She sneered down at
him, holding herself with the air of superiority possessed by older sisters everywhere. "There
was salt in the water." "That doesn't
make sense. Why would they waste salt by putting it in the water?" he
pressed. "Father says salt is hard enough to find as it is." "They
didn't. It was already there." "How?" "Shh,
Father's talking." "... but
this night was dark, and a storm raged on the sea, sending his ship
leaping into the air, then crashing down into the troughs between the waves. ..." "Why didn't
they just land?" The boy nudged his sister again. She sighed. "Because they were too far out at sea." "Didn't they know that they weren't
supposed to go out of sight of land?" "I guess they forgot." "... and just as he thought that his ship
would founder and sink, the sky cracked open
around him, and the ship found itself
on the quiet waters of the Cirric. ..." "But
how did it get here?" "Weren't you listening?" She
gave him a clout on the head. "The sky
cracked open." He rubbed at the
spot where she had struck him. "I've never seen that." "You
will if you don't be quiet." "... standing at the prow was an old man.
White-bearded, he was, dressed in gray
wizard's robes. Clutched tightly in fingers of light, a sword floated in the air over his head. 186 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN " 'I, Arta
Myrdhyn, have saved your lives and brought you here,' he said, in a tongue they had never before heard, but somehow understood, 'to take this to a
place I will show you.' His voice was
the squeak of a boy whose manhood was
almost upon him, yet his face was lined with age. 'You and your children will watch over it, and keep it for one
whom I will send.' "A man named Bj0rn laughed. 'My
thanks for the sword,' he said. 'But I will
take it for myself.' "As he sprang
across the deck at the wizard, lightning leaped from the wizard's fingers, slaying
Bj0rn instant-ly. ..." The boy looked up at
his sister. "Bj0rn? What kind of name is Bj^rn?" "An unlucky one. And a stupid one. Now, shh." "... brought them to the cave, and left the
sword there, amid the writings that only two
of them could see, and none of them
could read. 'Watch for strangers,' Arta Myrdhyn said. 'One day, a stranger will come for the sword.' " 'But how will
I know him?' my many-times-greatgrandfather asked. "The wizard
shook his head. 'You will not, and neither will your children, or their children. It is not yours to know,
but to watch, and wait. The sword will know. . . .' " "How can a sword know anything?" "It's a magical sword, stupid." "Hmph." "... accepted
them gladly, and offered their daughters
as wives." Wohtansen raised his head. "And so, they settled down to an easier life, raised their
children, and grandchildren, down
the nine generations." He thumped his
hand against his mat. "And here we are." He tapped the jug. "More juice?" Ahira caught Karl's
eye. "What we've had has already gotten to my bladder." He elbowed Karl
in the side. "Oof. Me, too. If you'll excuse us for a moment?" The Guardians of the
Sword 187 "Did you catch all that, Karl?"
Seating himself on a waist-high rock, the
dwarf drummed his heels against the stone. Karl's head swam. It made sense, but it
didn't. All at once. "I don't understand it. Part of it makes sense, but ..." What Wohtansen had said boiled
down to the sort of story a group of conquering
Vikings might tell to their children and grandchildren. "But eight,
nine generations? When were the Vikings? About eleventh century, no?" Ahira nodded. "Something like that.
And with the faster time rate on This Side, if a bunch of eleventh-century Vikings crossed over, they should have
been here for far more than two centuries. Especially since time passes so much more quickly here." Karl nodded. That was what Deighton had
said, and what they had observed. Their
trip from Lundeyll to the Gate Between Worlds had taken a couple of
months on This Side, but when they had used the Gate to return home, only a few
hours had passed. Once, he had sat down with Lou Riccetti to figure it out: For
every hour that passed at home, about four
or five hundred flew by here. "It can't be something as simple as
Deighton lying," Karl said. "No." The dwarf scowled.
"Deighton has lied to us more than once, but not this time. We know he was
telling the truth. This time. The time rate is faster here, relatively." "Maybe
not." Karl shrugged. "Maybe the time differential fluctuates. That'd explain some
things." "Like what?" "Think it through." Karl stamped
his foot. "Wish I'd had the sense to, before." He gestured around
them. "If this side really was four hundred times as old as Earth, that'd
make it about sixteen hundred billion years old, no? It'd be that much more worn; most of the atmosphere 188 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN would have escaped, probably; all the
mountains would have worn themselves down." "Huh?"
Ahira's forehead furrowed. "You're telling me that mountains wear out? Too much
dry-cleaning?" "Give me a
break. Mountains tend to wear down, just like anything else. The Appalachians are older than the Rockies,
which is why they don't rise as high, not anymore. In another couple of
billion years, they'll be the Appalachian
plains, if tectonic forces don't raise a whole new set of mountains.
Entropy." The dwarf pounded his
fist against the rock. "Deighton lied again." "Maybe; maybe not." Karl shook
his head. "So, the time differential fluctuates. But maybe Deighton didn't
know that. After all, the time rate could
have worked just the way he said it did during his whole life. He could
have been telling the truth." "I doubt
it." The dwarf shook his head. "I didn't think you caught it. Remember the wizard's name:
Arta Myrdhyn. Sound familiar?" "Myrdhyn. Well, that kind of sounds
like Merlin." Karl shrugged. "I guess it's possible that Arta Myrdhyn
inspired the legends about Merlin." That wouldn't be surprising; he had
already seen evidence that happenings on
this side had leaked over the boundary between worlds: elves, dwarves, wizards throwing
bolts of lightning, the silkies of the northern Cirric, the notion of
fire-breathing dragons, the cave beneath Bremon that was echoed in the writings
of Isaiah— "No. Or maybe," the dwarf
corrected himself. "But that's not the point. Remember how Wohtansen described the wizard? 'White-bearded ... his
voice was the squeak of a boy whose manhood was almost upon him, yet his face was lined with age.' Doesn't
that sound like someone we
know?" Ohgod. "And the name: Arta—Arthur. Arthur Simp-son Deighton. But he said—" The Guardians of the
Sword 189 "That he had only seen this side, but
never had been able to bring himself across. That's what he said, Kail. Doesn't make it true." Karl shook his head.
"I don't see what this all adds up to." "Me neither." The dwarf
shrugged. "And I've got a hunch we're
not going to for quite a while. If ever. Unless you want to try to slip
past The Dragon, again, then go quiz
Deighton." "I'll
pass, thanks." "Thought so." "I don't see you volunteering." "I'm not."
Ahira flexed his arm, his biceps bulging like a huge knot. "I like it here. No, I think we just keep
thinking about it. Maybe Walter or Andrea or Lou Riccetti will have some idea; maybe Ellegon knows more than he's telling. We'll just have to wait until
we get back to the valley." "Well,
what do we do in the meantime?" Ahira smiled.
"That's easy. We live. Eat. Breathe. Kill slavers. All the usual
stuff." Karl snorted. "Well, let's get back
inside, then. Got a lot to think about." Ahira raised a finger. "There is one
more thing we'd better do." "Yes?" "I think we'd better have a look at
this sword of Woh-tansen's." "Right." CHAPTER THIRTEEN: The Scourge Her beams bemocked the sultry main, Like April hoarfrost
spread; But where the ship's huge shadow lay, The charmed water burnt away A still and
awful red. —Samuel Taylor Coleridge "I still say we should have
taken them while they were at sea," Lensius muttered to Hynryd, his voice pitched
so that Ahrmin could hear
him, but only barely. Lensius shook his
head, his long, greasy ringlets of hair waggling in counterpoint. "And we would have, were I in charge." Hynryd
nodded. "That's what Jheral thought, too." "I know. He—" "Enough." Ahrmin's fingers
tightened on the hilt of his sword. Lensius and Hynryd fell silent. Ahrmin sighed. The fiasco at the dock
hadn't done anything to improve his standing with his thirty-seven remaining men. What had once been only a silent
resentment had become open doubt, sometimes verging on mutiny. But that
didn't matter. Only one thing mattered. So / failed, Karl Cullinane. This first
time. That's not so important; even Father couldn't beat you the first time.
But it isn't the first time that counts, Karl Cullinane. It's the last time. He looked around the Scourge's cramped
forward hold. Of the thirty-odd faces, the only one that didn't bear a frown
was Thyren's; the wizard held himself 190 The Scourge 191 above both the sailors and slavers. In contrast to the grubbiness of the rest, the wizard's gray robes
were clean and unwrinkled, his drawn
face freshly shaved, his thin lips
holding a disdainful smile. "Ahrmin?" Raykh scratched at his
head. "I think we should consider letting this Karl Cullinane go. There's enough gold to be had picking up a few dozen
Mel." He rapped on the bulkhead behind him. "Enough space in
the hold for one hundred and fifty, two hundred, if we pack tightly enough." Ahrmin's irritation
rose. He'd had enough of the tight-pack fanatic. Of all tight-pack fanatics. It had been proved, over and over again,
that there was more money to be made by delivering a smaller number of healthy
slaves than by tight-packing them, chaining them all closely together in the
hold, leaving them to stew in their own wastes during a sea voyage, having to throw away those who didn't survive,
then treat the others with expensive
healing draughts before a sale. Tight-packing was a
particularly stupid way to handle Mel. Mel didn't take easily to their chains;
many would refuse to eat.
Tight-packed, they could lose more than half of the slaves. Even loose-packed,
the trip from Melawei to Pandathaway would kill ten, maybe twenty percent of the cargo, and leave the rest sick as
dogs. Of course, they
could always sell the surviving slaves as-is. But in Pandathaway—or anywhere else along the coast, for that matter—there was little demand
for sickly slaves who had to be either healed or nursed back to health before they would be any use to their new
owners. Tight-packing would kill much
profit. Besides,
tight-packing the women would remove one of the great joys of the profession. Ahrmin snorted. "And what would you
do? It would take several tendays in a good
port to refit the Scourge for tight-pack." Raykh shrugged.
"It seems a bit late to point that out. We could have—" 192 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Thyren cleared his throat; Raykh fell silent. "I believe that was Ahrmin's
point," the wizard said. "We're not in Pandathaway. Nor are we in
Lundeyll, or Port Salke, or even Ehvenor. To
be precise, we're off the coast of Melawei. Even if you wanted to take
the time and money to refit the slavehold, I doubt that the locals would be willing to help you." Fihka spoke up, his
low growl barely carrying over the rush of water. "We could always make them help us." The wizard eyed him
for a moment, then carefully spat in Fihka's face. Fihka reddened, but kept his
white-knuckled fists at his sides, not even daring to raise his hands to wipe
the spittle from his cheek. The others near him turned their faces away, not
wanting to be next. "Fool," Thyren said, smiling
gently. "Who do you think I am? Grandmaster Lucius? Arta Myrdhyn? I can
easily hold off any one of these Mel wizards and his apprentices. I could
probably take on two, perhaps as many as
three. But if I were stupid enough to allow you to anchor the Scourge
offshore for—a tenday, did you say? two?—we would quickly find the ship
surrounded by every Mel wizard and apprentice that could run, paddle, swim, or
crawl. There is a limit to how many spells I can intercept." Thyren rose. "But enough of this
nonsense; I have better things to do than listen to more squabbling." He rose and left, all of the men glaring in unison at
the door as he closed it behind him. You would be able
to dispel more if you didn't insist on keeping other spells in your head, wizard. Like your lightning bolt, or flame spell, Ahrmin thought. But
then you wouldn't be
able to abuse everyone with impunity, would
you? Then it occurred to him that Thyren had,
albeit unknowingly, done him a favor. By
acting as a lightning rod for the
men's discontent, the wizard had given Ahrmin a chance to ingratiate
himself with the others. The Scourge 193 But how? He thought for a
moment, and an idea that had been in the back of his mind suddenly jelled. "Raykh,"
he said. "You should trust me more." Raykh's
head snapped around. "What?" "You assumed that I had no reason for
not taking the Warthog at sea." The other sneered. "I know your
reason. You want to take Cullinane
alive." "And you'd rather take a share of a
much smaller reward? Never mind. There is another reason. One that will fatten all of our pouches, as well. As much
as a tight-pack would if all the
slaves survived. And ..." "And?"
Raykh leaned forward, interested. "And my plan
will ensure that we can come upon Karl Cullinane unaware. It will be tricky, granted; and we have to
assume that Cullinane has business in Melawei that will take him at least a
day's ride away from where they've beached the Warthog. I'll be happy to
share my idea, if you're interested."
Ahrmin lay back on his bunk, cradling his head on his arms. "But my major
concern is Cullinane. If you don't
mind forgoing some extra slaves, some
extra coin . . ." He closed his eyes. "Wait," another voice piped up.
"Don't keep it a secret, Master
Ahrmin." He sat up, making sure that his smile
didn't reach his face. "Master Ahrmin," eh? I like the sound of
that. "Very well." Ahrmin nodded.
"The timing will be tricky, but I'm
sure we can do it." He pulled the glass ball from his pouch,
unwrapped the soft leather sheets that covered
it. Ahrmin cradled the
ball in the palm of his hand. "It all depends on this." The finger floated in the center of the
sphere, bobbing slowly in the yellow oil. From the finger's hacked-off stump,
threads of tendon and shreds of skin waved gently, while the slim fingernail
pointed unerringly toward the north. 194 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Listen
carefully, now. We'll lie offshore, out of sight, until we're sure that Cullinane has gone a
fair distance away, then ..." CHAPTER FOURTEEN: The Cave
of Writings The great brand Made lightnings in the splendor of the moon, And flashing round and round, and whirled in an arch, Shot like a streamer of the northern morn, Seen where the moving isles of winter shock By night, with noises of the northern sea ... —Alfred, Lord Tennyson There are times, Karl thought, when
I like this business a whole lot. He rode Carrot at the edge of the water, sometimes kicking her into a canter, urging
her a short way into the surf. Her hooves
kicked up spray, bathing both of them
in a cool shower. "Stop that, Karl. Get back on the
beach." Aeia laughed, wiping the spray
from her eyes. To his left and a few yards behind, she bounced along on
Pirate's back, her feet barely reaching the
shortened stirrups. She patted Pirate's
white neck. Aeia had grown fond of that horse; it occurred to Karl that she would probably have a harder time saying goodbye to Pirate than
to him. Almost three hundred yards offshore, four
dugouts kept pace with them. The first one
held Tennetty, Chak, Ahira, Seigar,
Wohtansen, and two other Mel paddlers; the other two, each manned by
three Mel, were piled high with trade goods from the Warthog. In a
couple of days, the men of Clan Wohtansen would free the boat 195 196 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN from its sandbar, so that Ganness could sail down to collect his copra. Ahead, a small island
grew closer. Perhaps a quarter-mile
offshore, it was heavily wooded and roughly conical,
rising to a height of almost a hundred feet at its peak. Aeia's eyes grew
wide. "Karl." She pulled Pirate to a stop and stared at the island,
her eyes filling with tears. He guided Carrot over to her side. "What's wrong?" "I remember. My parent's house
is . . ." Her pointing forefinger
wavered, then straightened. "That way. Along that path." Her
arm trembled; she lowered it. He dismounted from
Carrot's saddle and helped Aeia down from Pirate. "Let's walk, shall we?" Taking Pirate's reins in her left hand,
she clasped Karl's right hand as they
walked along the sand. From the top of a
slanting palm tree, a rough tattoo of drumbeats issued, then echoed as they were repeated along the path
into the forest. As the three dugouts
were beached, Karl smiled down at
Aeia. "Let's wait a moment." "But—" she tugged on his hand. "But nothing." He smoothed down
the sides of his sarong. "I may be
dressed in local costume, little one, but I don't think anybody grows
quite this tall or hairy around here. I'd rather your clan finds out that I'm
friendly before we meet them, rather than after I've gotten a spear through my chest." Seigar Wohtansen
spoke a few quiet words to one of his men; the Mel sprinted across the sands and
disappeared into the forest, as Wohtansen and the rest walked over to where Karl and Aeia
stood. They were all
dressed in local costume. Karl laughed at the way Chak's sunburned potbelly protruded over the waist of his sarong, although Rahff wore his with
dignity. On the other hand, Tennetty
actually looked kind of nice in a sarong, if you could ignore the scars along
her belly The Cave of Writings 197 and back. And the way that her right hand never strayed far from
the hilt of her sword. / guess I've been
away from Andy-Andy far too long, if Tennetty's starting to look good. Ahira looked ridiculous. The hem of his
sarong brushed the sand, and it didn't really go with the chain-mail vest that
he wore over a thin under-shirt. Dwarfs weren't built to wear sarongs. But who
except me would tell him that? As always, the dwarf had his battleaxe
with him, strapped across his broad chest. While Ahira really wasn't as touchy
as his scowling face suggested, it was unlikely that anyone would risk finding
that out. Wohtansen tapped
Karl's shoulder. "The Eriksens will be down to pick up their goods in a short while. And, I suspect,
celebrate their surprise." He ran affectionate fingers through Aeia's hair; his face grew somber. "Which
means that you and I had best be getting on to the cave. I know Clan Erik;
likely you won't be able to leave the celebration for days without offending
someone." Aeia's lower lip
trembled; Karl dialed for a reassuring smile, relieved to find that at least some sort of grimace spread across his face. It would be hard leaving Aeia here. Karl
had never had a little sister before. "I guess we'd
better," he said, handing Carrot's reins to Chak. "Keep an eye on everything." "No sweat, kemo
sabe," Chak said in English, his thick accent leaving a lot to be desired. Karl
raised an eyebrow. "Kemo sabe?" Chak nodded, then turned to Ahira. "I
said that properly, no?" "Close."
Ahira shrugged an apology to Karl. "Well, he asked to be taught some English. And so did Rahff." "I can see you started them with the
important stuff first." 198 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Of course." Wohtansen was getting impatient. Karl
turned to accompany him. "Coming, Ahira?" Karl asked. The dwarf shook his head. "You have
to swim to get there. I think you'd better
count me out. But I will want to hear about it, later." "Swim?" Wohtansen nodded.
"You'd better give your sword to one of your friends. You'd have trouble
swimming with it." Karl unbuckled his swordbelt and tossed
the scab-barded sword to Rahff. "Don't lose it, now." "Of course, Karl." His
apprentice nodded gravely. "And ... up
your nose with a rubber nose," he added in English, bowing slightly. Karl laughed. "Ahira, you cut that
out." Karl unstrapped his sandals, then kicked them off, absent-mindedly spraying Ahira with sand. The dwarf chuckled; Karl and Wohtansen
dropped their sarongs on the sand and jogged
away. The water was warm and clear; Karl kept to
Woh-tansen's pace as they swam toward the
island. But it had been a
long time since Karl had been swimming, and a quarter of a mile was more
distance than he was used to;
by the time Wohtansen pulled himself up onto
the flat top of a jutting boulder, then offered Karl a hand up, Karl was
grateful for the help. He mimicked Wohtansen, stretching out on a
rock, resting while the hot sun dried his
skin. His breath came in short
gasps; Karl forced his breathing to slow down. "Any reason we couldn't just take a canoe over?" Wohtansen smiled
tolerantly at Karl's panting. "Yes." He thumped a fist on the boulder.
"Whole island is rocky, like this. No place to beach it. Besides, it's better
not to draw attention to this
place. Just in case." Wohtansen rose to
his feet. "This way." The Cave of Writings 199 The narrow path twisted sharply upward
through the bushes, until they arrived at the summit of the island, a rocky outcropping overlooking the seaward side. A
single palm grew there, projecting
out of a crack in the rock. A sparkling in the leaves caught KaiTs eye; he
glanced up. A glass ball, only
slightly larger than a lightbulb, hung in midair among the palm's fronds, hobbling slightly in the breeze. Wohtansen smiled. "A gift from Arta
Myrdhyn; you can see what it does when we
get below." Below? The Mel brought him
to the ledge and pointed downward.
A few yards from where the waves broke against the rocks almost a hundred feet
below, the water burbled. "There's a
spring that feeds into the Cirric down there. It will help us coming
out, but it does make it difficult to go in. "Listen closely: After I strike the
water, count forty breaths, take as large a breath as you can, then follow me. Dive directly for the rough water, then swim
down, as far as you can. The tunnel
goes deep, very deep. Don't hesitate, just keep swimming down. It will
be difficult for you, but it can be done. "You must keep your eyes open; when
you see light, swim toward it. I'll meet you
and help you the rest of the way. Do
you understand?" At Karl's nod,
Wohtansen walked away from the edge, took a running start, and leaped outward, away from the edge, his
body arching into a classic swan dive, then straightening a scant pulsebeat
before he hit the surface. Wohtansen struck the
dark water cleanly; he vanished, only a small splash marking his passing. Karl took
a deep breath and began counting. One breath. / don't like this, not at
all. But he kept breathing and counting. Ten. Well, at least we know why someone
as young and vital as Wohtansen is the
wizard around here. Not a 200 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN job for an old man; one misstep and he'd
shatter himself on the rocks. Twenty. // / remember right, the cliff
divers in Acapulco dive more than a hundred feet from La Que-brada—if they can
do it; why the hell can't I jump a bit less? Twenty-five. Because
I'm not trained for it, that's why the hell I can't do it. Or why I
shouldn't, if I had a brain in my head. Thirty. But
do I have any choice? Thirty-five.
Not if I want to see this sword. To hell with it. He began
hyperventilating, forcing air in
and out of his lungs. He counted out five quick breaths, added another fifteen
for good measure, eyed the distance from the rocks to the bubbling water, ran,
and dove, his hands forming into fists of their own volition. The air clung to him like a rubber sheet;
the scant three seconds that he fell felt
like a long hour. He hit. The water slammed
into him like a brick wall, knocking the air out of his lungs, as he sank
into the smooth tunnel, scraping his right shoulder against the stone. For a moment, he
considered returning to the surface, giving up for now, trying again later. But he knew
that if he backed away now, he would never regain his nerve. So he swam down,
into the black water, kicking his legs as frantically as he worked his arms. The pressure in his
chest grew; his lungs burned with a cruel fire; his diaphragm ached to draw
anything, anything into his lungs. And just when he
finally thought his head and chest would split wide open, a horizontal channel
appeared beside
him, marked by a flickering light. Karl swam toward the light. A hand grasped his
outstretched arm; Karl went limp and let Wohtansen pull him through the
horizontal tunnel, then up through another vertical one. The Cave of Writings 201 Two yards above him, the surface rippled
invitingly. Desperately, he kicked himself
from Wohtansen's grasp and stuck his head through to the surface. His first breath was the sweetest one he had ever taken. Karl pulled himself
out of the water and lay gasping on the rough stone floor. Seal-like, Wohtansen slipped from the
water, then handed Karl a thick, soft
blanket. "Here. Take a moment to
dry off. It gets cold in here." Following his own advice, the Mel took another blanket from a cane drying
rack. As he dried himself,
Karl looked around. They were in a small, almost spherical room, the stone
floor concave to accommodate the pool in the center, the walls rising to a height of perhaps
five yards. Glowing crystals speckled the walls. Just like the
crystals in the Cave of The Dragon. An icy chill crept along his spine; he rubbed
himself harder, but the chill remained. A long, jagged crack ran along the ceiling
on the far side of the room, letting in shreds of noon sunlight through the
green foliage that grew over the outside of the
wall. That wall couldn't have been more than a
few inches thick; chiseling a doorway
wouldn't have been difficult. Still, it was understandable why the Mel
hadn't created another, more convenient way into the caverns. If this was the source of their magic, it would be best to
keep it hidden. On the far side of
the cavern, a tunnel stood as the only exit other than the pool. Wohtansen helped
Karl to his feet, and they started to walk toward the tunnel. Low enough that Karl had to stoop to walk
through it, the tunnel was only ten feet long,
opening up on another cavern. "You won't be able to see the magical
writing on the far wall, but I think you'll enjoy . . . this." Karl started. On the wall beside him, a
huge picture window looked down on the sea. 202 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Window? How can there be a window? They were inside the island; a window on
that wall would open on rock, not look down
on the Cirric. And it wasn't a painting;
the waves in a painting didn't ripple; the clouds in a painting didn't
move. "That's
just not possible. We're at sea level." Wohtansen smiled. "Remember the Eye
you saw above. Arta Myrdhyn left it there, and this here, so that we would never have to leave this place without
knowing what lies outside." Wohtansen at his
side, Karl walked to the window and ran his fingers over the cool glass. The view spun. "Gently, gently," Wohtansen
said, pulling Karl's arm from the glass. He
put his own fingers on the left side of the glass, and pressed gently for a moment. Like a camera
panning to the left, the picture moved. Now the glass revealed a distant view of the
beach, where perhaps a dozen people stood. "It seems that
some of the Eriksens have arrived on the beach," Wohtansen said. He pressed his fingers to the center
of the window, holding them firmly against the glass. The field of vision
narrowed, zooming in until it could hold only four figures, all of them with
the flat appearance brought on by a
telescope or binoculars. Ahira stood smiling,
while a fiftyish Mel couple, their faces dripping with tears, hugged little
Aeia so hard that Karl
thought they might squeeze the air out of her. Wohtansen removed his hand from the glass,
then lightly touched it on the right side, again removing his hand when the seaside view slid around. "But
this is what it's for." He jerked his head toward the exit tunnel. "Come." They walked into the
tunnel. This one was longer than the other, forty yards of twisting turns. As they neared the tunnel's mouth, the brightness grew. But it
was a different sort, a whiter, purer light.
The Cave of Writings Karl stepped up his
pace. He reached the final bend in the tunnel and stepped out into brightness. "I don't—" the words caught in
his throat; his head spun. Above a rough stone altar, gripped tightly
by ghostly fingers of white light, the sword floated in midair. CHAPTER FIFTEEN: The Sword Once more unto the breach, dear friends, once more; Or close the wall up with our English dead! In peace there's nothing so becomes a man - As modest stillness and humility; But
when the blast of war blows in our ears, Then
imitate the action of the tiger; Stiffen
the sinews, summon up the blood, Disguise fair nature with hard-favored rage; Then lend the eye a terrible aspect. —William Shakespeare Karl's breath caught in his throat. His hands trembled. But why? In and of
itself, the sword didn't look unusual. It was a fairly
ordinary two-handed broadsword, three inches wide at the ricasso, tapering at first
gently, then suddenly, to a needle-pointed tip; a cord-wound grip and long, thick brass
quillons proclaimed it a sword for use, not for dress. The blade was free
of nicks and rust, granted, but Karl had seen many swords just as good. Perhaps a
sword like this was worth sixty, seventy gold. No more. So why was just looking at it like an electric shock? "Part of the spell." Wohtansen
chuckled thinly. "It affects everyone
that way." Karl tore his eyes
away from the sword and the ghostly hand gripping it. He turned to face
Wohtansen. "What . . .
?" The Mel shrugged. "I don't know much more about it 204 The Sword 205 than I've told you. There are two charms on it that I can
see." He tapped the middle of his forehead. "With the inner sight.
One holds it there, waiting." He gestured at the bands of light clutching
the sword. "For the one whom Arta Myrdhyn has intended to have it." "The other?" "A charm of protection. Not for the
sword, for the bearer. It will protect him from magical spells." Karl couldn't keep
his eyes off the sword any longer; he turned back. His palms itching for the cord-wound hilt, he took a step forward. "Wait." Wohtansen's hand fell on
Karl's shoulder. "What do you read on the blade? What does the blade say?" The blade was shiny steel, lacking any
filigreed inscription. "Say? Nothing."
Karl shrugged the hand away. "Nothing? Then
we may as well go; the sword was not left for you." Wohtansen stared intently
into KarFs face. "I'd hoped you were the one," he said sadly, then bit his lip as he shook his head. "But hoping
never did make it so." Karl took another step toward the sword.
It vibrated, setting up a low hum that filled the cavern. As Karl leaned toward
it, the humming grew louder. He reached up and fastened both hands on
the hilt, while the radiance grew brighter, the humming louder. The fingers of
light dazzled his eyes; they gripped the sword
more tightly. His eyes tearing, Karl squinted against
the light and pulled. The vibration rattled
his teeth, but he gripped the hilt tightly and pulled even harder. The
light grew so bright that it made his eyes
ache even through closed eyelids, but the sword didn't move at all. Goddam it, he thought. Here I am, trying to grab a
magical vibrator when I should be home with my wife and child and— The sword gave a fraction of an inch, then
stopped, frozen in place. /rn 206 /THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN / "Karl." Wohtansen's voice was shrill. "It's
never moved before. Pull harder, Karl Cullinane. Harder." He pulled
harder. Nothing. He gripped the hilt
even more tightly, then braced his feet against the stone altar, and pulled on
the sword until his heart pounded in his chest, and the strain threatened to break his
head open. Move,
dammit, move. Nothing. He set his
feet back on the floor and released his grip. The light faded back
to its original dimness; the vibration slowed, then stopped. "I can't do
it." Karl shook his head. Wohtansen tugged at his arm. "A pity," Wohtansen said.
"When it moved, I was certain you were
the one." He pursed his lips,
then shrugged, as he led Karl back through the tunnel, the radiance diminishing behind them. "But it's not the first disappointment
in my life; it won't be the last." Wohtansen waved a hand at the window and
walked to the far wall. "I do have to reimprint some spells; if you'd like, amuse yourself with the Eye while I
study." He seated himself tailor-fashion in front of the wall opposite the glass, folded his hands in his lap,
and began reading the invisible
letters, moving his lips as he studied it. Karl stared intently at the wall. No, it
was just a blank wall to him; since he didn't have the genes that allowed him
to work magic, he couldn't even see the writing. That hardly seemed fair. Then again, damn little was fair; damn
little even made sense. Although some things
were beginning to. Arta Myrdhyn and the sword, for one. Things on this side
were often reflected as legends on the other side, at home. A great broadsword, somehow The Sword 207 involved with the plans of a powerful wizard, held immobile until
the right man appeared to claim it...
that sounded like the story of Excalibur.
The legend had been garbled, granted, but that wasn't unexpected. The Excalibur story had never made sense
to Karl; if whoever could remove Excalibur from the stone were automatically to
become king of England, England would quickly be ruled by the first stoneworker
to happen along and chisel it loose. No spell could
prevent that; magic worked erratically back home, when it worked at all. But what does all this add up to? Deighton had brought a group of Vikings
through to this side, not primarily to guard
the sword, but to guide the right one to the sword, a sword that
protected its bearer against magic. And the right one was
supposed to take it. To use it. To use it for what? Karl shook his head.
He couldn't follow the thread any further. What are you really up to, DeightonP He shrugged. Ahira
was right. It would be a long time, at best, before they knew. Karl turned to the
window that looked out on the sea. He pressed his fingers against the left side
of the glass and spun the
view shoreward. A procession of Mel was engaged in bringing canvas sacks down
the beach and depositing them on the sand just above the high-water mark. The pile was already well over six feet
high. Karl shrugged.
Ganness' copra, no doubt. Too bad for Avair that he couldn't bring it directly to Pandathaway, but would
instead have to sell it in Ehvenor to some Pandathaway-bound merchant. The
dried, unpressed coconut meat would bring a
high price in Pandathaway; after it had been run through presses, what
oil the wizards didn't need would find its
way into gentle soaps and balms, while the remaining meat would end up
in breads and cakes. 208 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN But why were they
bringing it down to the beach now? Ganness and the Warthog weren't due
until tomorrow. Right now,
the Eriksens should be celebrating Aeia's return. Karl spun the view
seaward. Just over the horizon, a black speck grew. A ship. That explained it.
Ganness was on his way a day early, and the Clan Erik coastwatchers had spotted
the Wart-hog.
Undoubtedly, the watchers had sounded the alarm, which had then been canceled when
Wohtansen's men explained that there was a friendly ship en route. Karl opened his
mouth to tell Wohtansen about it, but changed his mind; the Mel was still studying
the wall, his whole body tensed in concentration. Wish I'd asked
how long this was going to take. Idly, he centered the ship on the screen and
pressed his fingers to the center of the glass. The Warthog grew in the screen as
it seemed to sail directly toward Karl. The ship rode high in the water, since
most of its cargo had been unloaded in Clan Wohtan. As it moved closer, Karl
could make out Ganness at the prow. That was unusual;
Ganness generally ran the ship from the main deck, where he was midway between the lookout in the
forward mast and the steersman at the stern. That way, he could lounge in his
chair while still able to hear warnings and
give commands easily. Only when the ship
needed careful handling did he act as either lookout or steersman himself.
Beaching the ship in the lagoon had needed that careful handling; beaching it here should just be a matter of sailing
the Warthog slowly toward shore until it wouldn't go any farther. Ganness' figure grew in the screen.
Trembling, he raised a hand to wipe sweat from his brow. What's Ganness
nervous about? I guess there could be underwater boulders near the shore, but that shouldn't scare him like this. Karl moved his finger to scan the rest of the ship, but The Sword 209 his control wasn't fine enough; the Warthog
scudded out of the Eye's field of view. Damn. He removed his finger from the screen, centered the ship as
soon as the field widened, and zoomed in
carefully, making fingertip corrections to the aim of the Eye. Standing next to Ganness was a young man.
His face was dark and thin, his hair straight. A cruel smile flickered across his lips as he examined a dark
glass ball, slipped it into his pouch, then turned to say something to the men behind him. He looked for all the world like a younger
version of Ohlmin. Karl's heart pounded. "Wohtansen, look." < The Mel wizard scowled at him. "Not
now, please. This is difficult." "Shut up. This is important. That's the slaver who tried to take me on the docks at Ehvenor. He and
his men have taken the Warthog. They're
going to be sailing right up to the damn beach, and the Eriksens won't
know—" "—that they are
slavers." Wohtansen whitened. "We've told them to expect
friends." "Right."
Karl's right hand ached for his sword. Got to figure out exactly what they're going to
do. The slavers had the element of surprise. How would they use
it? They would probably drop anchor or beach
the ship, and let some Eriksen dugouts come
out to meet them, just as if this
were a normal trading session. Then the slavers would kill or capture the Mel in the canoes, and use the canoes to go ashore, their wizard protecting them
all the while from the Mel wizard's
spells. They would work it something like that.
The slavers had clearly gone to some trouble
to gain the advantage of surprise,
and they would make good use of it. "Karl," Wohtansen said, his
voice shaky, "they must have already
raided my clan. Otherwise someone would have chased after us, to warn
us." 210 /
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Be quiet for a moment." That
was true, but there wasn't anything that could be done about it right now. "We've only got one edge. You and I know
what's going on, but they don't know that we know." But how could they use that single
advantage? Karl and Wohtansen couldn't take
on the slavers all by themselves.
"You swim to shore, and quietly warn my people, only my
people. Tell Ahira to get into the treeline with his crossbow; have Chak take
Tennetty and Rahff, and hide themselves
along the path to the village." "But the Eriksens—" Karl shook his head. "If we let them
know, they'll sound the alarm. All that would do is turn this into a standard raid, with Clan Erik taking to the
hills, and the slavers scooping up a
few dozen stragglers. We've got to stop them; that wouldn't do it." The Pandathaway
wizard, he was the key; Karl would have to take the wizard out. "Just keep quiet until you hear
from me. If you raise a fuss, all you'll do is bring their wizard down on your
head. Now, move." "But you can't
take on the wizard, not by yourself. You don't have a chance." "I won't be by myself. Get going." Wohtansen ran toward the tunnel that led
to the entrance pool. Karl didn't wait for
the splash; he turned and sprinted toward the cavern of the sword. He seated himself tailor-fashion on the
cold stone. "Deighton, can you hear
me?" No answer. "I know you put this sword here for a purpose." Still no answer.
Nothing. Held firmly by the fingers of light, the sword hung silently in the air.
"Arta Myrdhyn, talk to
me. Say something." Nothing. He stood and walked
over to the rough stone altar and gently laid his hand on the sword's hilt. As though he The Sword 211 were holding a baby's arm, he pulled on the sword, as gently as he could. It didn't move. He pulled harder, harder; the light
brightened, the sword vibrated. Karl loosened his grip. Force wasn't the
answer. Reason had to be. Why would Arta Myrdhyn create or procure a
sword that rendered its user immune to magical spells? What was such a sword good for? The answer was obvious:
It was good for killing wizards. That
was Arta Myrdhyn's intention. Not all wizards, of
course. Myrdhyn wouldn't go to all that trouble to wipe out his own kind; he wanted a specific wizard killed. So. The sword had been left here for a
purpose, and that purpose was for the right
person to take it, to use to kill an
enemy of Deighton's. That made sense. But why would a
wizard as powerful as Arta Myrdhyn need to do this in such a roundabout way?
Why not just kill the wizard himself? There was only one
answer: Deighton wasn't sure that he could win, not in a fair fight. Unsummoned, a vision
of the Waste welled up. It had been
lush green forest, until a battle between two wizards
had scarred the land forever. And the Shattered
Islands lay across the northern part of the Cirric. Legend had it that they once were one island, one
kingdom. But the name of that island had been
lost. Lost? That didn't make sense. There were
records of everything in the Great Library of Pandathaway; knowledge
couldn't be lost as long as the library stood. Unless . . . Unless the name had been excised. Not just
from paper, but from minds. And who could do that better than the grandmaster
of Wizards' Guild? Hypothesis:
Deighton fought the grandmaster; their 212 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN battle created
the waste and
shattered the island. And while Deighton
wasn't killed, he had lost, and had either created or found the sword, brought
some Vikings across to guard
it, then fled to the Other Side. And, eventually, brought us across. That had to be
connected. If this was truly part of his battle with the grandmaster, Karl and the
rest being sent across had to be some sort of attack on his enemy. Then why hadn't Karl
been able to take the sword? If all that was true, then the sword should have
practically jumped into his hand. All it had done was move a little. Then I can't take
the sword because, for some reason, I'm not the one who is supposed to kill the
grandmaster. But I am
somehow connected with the right one, or the sword wouldn't have twitched. No! Deighton hadn't sent
them across until the night Andy-Andy joined the group. That was what triggered it. "Connected
with? As in 'the father of?" He rested his hand on
the sword's hilt. "And if I were to agree to take this for the purpose of
bringing it back to the valley, giving it to my son when he's ready—" Black shapes
flickered across the silvery blade, forming themselves into thick black letters. Take Me. Karl blinked. The letters were gone. The ghostly fingers faded, then vanished;
the sword clanged on the stone. Quickly, he stopped
to pick it up; the steel was blank, unmarred. "Okay,
Deighton, you've got yourself a deal." There's going to be an accounting between you and
me, one of these days. But, in the meantime, I'd damn well better
work out how I'm going to use this. CHAPTER SIXTEEN: Blood Price The world breaks everyone and afterward
many are strong at the broken places. But
those it cannot break it kills. It kills the very good and the very
gentle and the very brave impartially. If you are none of these you can be sure
that it will kill you, but there will be no
special hurry. —Ernest Hemingway Keeping all of himself except his eyes and
nose below the waterline,
Karl clung with both hands to a half-submerged
boulder. The sword, wrapped tightly in a blanket
from the cavern, was slung across his back with two strips Karl had torn from
another blanket. Hiding in shadow, he
kept motionless as the Warthog passed, no more than two hundred feet away. At the bow, the boy who looked like Ohlmin stood next to
Gan-ness, one arm around the captain's shoulders in false comradery, the
other resting on a scabbarded dagger. All over the ship, thirty, possibly forty
strangers worked in sailcloth tunics, never straying far from their swords and bows. So, that's the way they're playing it. All
of Ganness' crew had been replaced by slavers. Probably the crew was chained below. More likely, they were held
captive in the slavers' own ship. Or, conceivably, they were dead. With excruciating slowness, the Warthog
passed the island. There was no lookout
at the stern; Karl pushed off 213 214 THE SWORD AND THE
CHAIN the boulder and swam after the ship, struggling against the weight
of the sword to keep his head above water. The ship slowed
still further; its huge jib luffed, flapping in the wind, while crewmen doused the mainsail. But they
didn't bring the ship about or drop the anchor; the Warthog drifted in
toward the sandy shore. So that was the plan: The slavers would
ground the ship just as though this were a normal trading session. Then wait
until enough of the men of Clan Erik came down to the beach to load the cargo,
charge shoreward through the shallow water, and attack the unprepared Mel. Let's
see if I can put a few holes in that plan. It would have been nice to have Walter
Slovotsky around; Walter could have figured
out some way to get aboard without
alerting anyone, then taken out half the slavers before anyone realized
there was an intruder among them. Hell, Walter would probably have been able
to steal all their pouches, file their
swords down to blunt harm-lessness, then tie all the slavers' sandal
laces together without being spotted. Karl would have to
confront all of them, take out the wizard quickly, then do his best to hold on until help arrived. And that just
plain sucks. Too much had to go right. It would work just fine, if Karl
could take out the slavers' wizard quickly, if he wasn't too tired to hold off
a score of slavers, if the Eriksens arrived quickly enough. Too damn many ifs. He gave a mental shrug. I'm no Walter
Slovotsky, but let's see if I can do a bit
of Walter-style recon. He reached the stern
of the Warthog and clung desperately to the massive rudder, his breath coming in gasps. His back
and thighs ached terribly; the tendons in his shoulder
felt like hot wires. Swimming with the sword on his back had taken more out of him than he had thought. Blood Price 215 The rudder was
slippery, overgrown with some sort of slimy green fungus. The ship's railing
and deck loomed a full ten
feet over his head. It might as well have been a mile. There was nothing to grip; even rested, he Wouldn't be able to pull himself up by his fingernails. But halfway up the
blunt stern was Ganness' cabin. In the Warthog's long-ago better days, the captain's cabin had been a light, airy place, the light and air
provided by a large sliding porthole
made up of glass squares. Or was it a window? Didn't something have to
be round to be called a porthole? The glass had long
since broken, and the window was covered by boards, but the window sash might
still slide, if he could get
a grip on it without stabbing himself on the points of the rusted nails that
held the boards in place. Panting from the
exertion, Karl pulled himself up onto the rudder and rose shakily to his feet, balancing precariously, his hands resting on the splintered
wood of the windowsill. He tried
to slide the boarded-up window to one side. It didn't move. Years and years of the
wood swelling and contracting in the hot
sun and cool spray had welded the
window in place. If he pushed harder, he'd likely lose his
footing and splash back into the water. Either that, or his hands would slip and open themselves up on the nails. The nails—of course! His balance growing
even more hazardous, he reached over his shoulder and unslung the sword, then unwrapped it, dropping the
blanket and strips of cloth into the water.
He held the sword hilt-up. Careful, now. And I'd better pray that
there's nobody inside the cabin. Using the pommel like a hammer, he tapped lightly against the
point of a nail, flattening it. It didn't
make much sound; no one on the Warthog would be able to hear it over the whispering of the
wind and the quiet murmur of the
waves. 216 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN His free hand held
flat against the wood to dampen the vibration, he hit the flattened nail harder,
driving it back through the wood. The second nail took less time; the third,
only a few seconds. Soon, he pried the board away, dropped it
carefully into the cabin, and went to work on the second board. Within a few
minutes, he had cleared an opening large enough
to accommodate his head and shoulders. The slavers were
using the cabin as a storeroom; it was piled high with muslin sacks, rough wool
blankets, cases of winebottles, and chains. Karl slid
the sword into the cabin and followed it in. For a moment, he lay gasping on the floor.
No time. Can't afford this. He rose to his hands and knees, then crawled
to the cabin's door, putting his ear to the rough wood. No sound. Good; that meant that the slavers were all on deck. Using a rough blanket to towel himself off, he took a quick
look around the room. Over in a corner was his own rucksack. He opened it and
drew out his spare sandals and breechclout, quickly donning them before picking
up the sword. / always feel better when I'm dressed, and a fight is no time to worry about splinters. But there was no armor in the room. That
was bad; tired as he was, he could easily
miss a parry. This was one time that
he would have liked to have his boiled-leather armor, no matter how
uncomfortable it was over bare skin. As he moved again
toward the door, a familiar-looking brass bottle under a bunk caught his eye. Propping the sword against the bunk, he stooped to examine the
bottle, and found that there were eight other, similar ones, all marked
with the sign of the Healing Hand. Healing draughts. Thank God. He uncorked a bottle and drank deeply, then splashed the rest of the
bottle on his face and shoulders. The sweet, cool liquid washed Blood Price 217 away his muscle aches and exhaustion as though they never had been. Reclaiming the sword, he straightened. Good.
My chances of getting out of this alive have
just gone way up. He tucked another bottle of healing draughts under
his arm. It might come in handy. Next to the stacked bottles of healing
draughts were five other brass bottles.
These were plain, unengraved. He unstoppered one
and sniffed. Lamp oil. Not necessarily any use, but— I'm still stalling, he thought, suddenly aware that the dampness on his palms hadn't been caused by
either the splashed healing draughts or the water of the Cirric. I'd better get to it. Both of them
standing aft of the forward mast, Ahrmin smiled genially at Thyren. The wizard looked silly in a sailcloth tunic, but Ahrmin wasn't about to tell
him that. "Have you spotted
their wizard yet?" Ahrmin asked, as he stooped to check Ganness' bonds and gag,
then rolled the captain
through the open hatch, enjoying the thump and
muffled groan as Ganness landed in the hold. Thyren smirked. "Wizards." "Wizards?" Thyren closed his
eyes. His forehead furrowed. "There's
one on the beach." He opened his eyes. "And another, some distance
away, beyond the treeline." "Are you sure?" "Yes. My inner sight sees their
glow." He raised a palm. "But they can't see me; my own glow is
damped. They won't be able to see it until
it's too late. I have done this
before, you know." "Good."
Ahrmin turned to glare at Lensius and Fihka. Lensius was fondling a hooknet, while Fihka had taken his bolas from the rack beneath the mainmast.
"Put those down," he hissed. "We don't show any
weapons until we're ready." 218 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "And
when will that be?" Lensius muttered. "When enough of
them gather on the beach." A simple plan, but a good one: The crossbows would
kill twenty or thirty of the Mel men, cutting the locals' ability to defend themselves down to almost nothing. That,
and the element of surprise, would make it easy to gather up scores of women and children. The nice part of it
was that once Thyren had killed the Mel wizards and Ahrmin's men had gotten down to work, Ahrmin would
be able to take Thyren and a few others out
in search of Karl Cullinane, leaving the rest of his men to the boring task of chasing down the Mel. Thyren waved a hand
at Ahrmin's pouch. "Best to see where Cullinane is." Ahrmin shrugged. The last sighting he had
taken, before they had steered around the tiny island, had shown that Cullinane
was in the direction of the Mel village.
Since he wasn't on the beach, he was probably up at the village. Resting comfortably, I hope. It will be
the last time you will ever be comfortable, Karl Cullinane. I've put away four bottles of healing draughts, so that I
can keep you alive on our trip back to Pandathaway, while I amuse myself with you. I have to deliver you
unmarked to Wenthall, but that doesn't mean I can't spend hours cutting
you open, then healing you up. "Take a sighting," Thyren
repeated. "If he's within range, I'll put him to sleep before I deal with
the Mel wizards. That way, he won't have the chance to run." Ahrmin sneered. "Run? And abandon his
friends? Leave slavers alive behind
him?" He turned to Lensius, "Now,
if you please." Lensius smiled, and
beckoned to the milling throng on deck. With merry whoops, all except five of
the slavers vaulted over the
side and charged toward the beach. Thyren
caught Ahrmin's arm. "Take a sighting." Ahrmin
shrugged and reached for his pouch. "Since aiooa Price 219 you insist . . ."He pulled the
glass sphere from his pouch and
unwrapped the soft leathers that covered it. "Although we don't have to—" His breath caught in
his throat. Bobbing in the yellow oil, the dismembered finger pointed straight
down. "GannessI" Karl hissed, pulling the other away from the light streaming down through the hatch. When
both of them were safely in shadow,
Karl shook the captain's shoulder
with one hand while he wielded the sword with the other, slicing through
the ropes that tied Ganness' hands behind
his back. His face ashen, Ganness shook his head.
His eyes cleared. "Cullinane, they want you." "Shh. Drink
this." Karl unstoppered the bottle of healing draughts, then forced the mouth of the bottle between Ganness' lips. Immediately, color started
to return to Ganness' face. "You'd better get out of here. Things are going to get very nasty in just—" "Greetings, Karl Cullinane." A familiar face leaned out over the edge
of the hatch. "Please don't move a muscle." Four crossbowmen looked
down at him, their bows cocked, the bolts
pointing directly toward his heart. "I've
been waiting to meet you. If you'll be kind enough to stay where you
are, I'll be down in a moment." There was no doubt in Karl's mind that
Ahira was right: The face was Ohlmin's, only younger, smoother. Perhaps the eyes were a bit sharper, maybe the
smile was a trifle more cruel, but that was all. Another man joined
the five above. "Don't be foolish. Let me put him to sleep. Then you can chain
him at your leisure." The boy shrugged. "Very well." The other raised his hands and began to
mutter harsh words that were forgotten as
soon as they were heard. Ganness' eyes sagged shut, but Karl only
felt a momentary faintness. 220 THE SWORD AND THE
CHAIN He held
the sword tighter, while the wizard paled. "It's not working," the wizard shrilled. "Something's Interfering with—" Karl didn't wait for the wizard to finish;
he dove for the companionway, bolts
thudding into the deck behind him. He ducked through a door, and looked
around, while feet pounded on the deck
above him. There was no way out.
They would have the aft hatch covered before he could get to it. The captain's cabin,
the way I came in. He ran to the cabin, slammed the door behind him, and
threw the bolt. On the other side of the door, voices
shouted, feet thudded. / can dive out through there, and—no. If the slavers' wizard hadn't already taken out
Wohtansen, he would be doing that at any moment. There just wasn't time to get off the ship and then warn Wohtansen
to get away. I'll have to take them out quickly, then
get to the wizard. It's either that or make them come to me. His eye fell on the bottles of lamp oil
next to the healing draughts. I've got to try it. As hard blows shook the door, he uncorked
all except one of the bottles of oil, then slathered
their contents around the room, soaking himself with the lamp oil in the process. He lunged for his knapsack, jerked it
open, then extracted a piece of flint before dropping the knapsack and
opening a bottle of healing draughts. The pounding grew louder. Another few seconds and they'll be inside,
A quick, hefty swig of the sweet liquid for luck, then he
poured the rest of the bottle over his head, careful to keep both sword
and flint dry. He made sure that the healing draughts covered him from head to
toe, then tossed the empty bottle aside before opening another, putting it to
his lips, and draining it. He uncorked the last bottle of lamp oil
and held it in his left hand. A quick
thrust to the oil-wetted wood stuck Blood Price 221 the sword into the wall beside the door. He
coated most of the sword with the oil, then dropped the empty bottle to the floor. He retrieved another bottle of healing
draughts, and waited, while the slavers
pounded against the door. The wood held solid,
but the bolt began to give, protesting the punishment with the squeal of metal
strained beyond
its limits. As the door crashed inward, Karl took a
deep breath and stroked the flint along the
sword's length. One spark caught the oil. The cabin
burst into flame. Fire seared him; his skin crackled in the
flames, the pain taking his breath away. But he healed instantly, only to be burned again. The fire burned brighter, hotter. As the
flames seared his eyeballs, Karl screamed,
jamming his eyelids shut. He smashed a bearded face with the bottle
of healing draughts, then jerked the sword
from the wall and swung one-handed,
slicing through a slaver's neck. A lancing pain shot
through his belly accompanied by the cool slickness of a steel blade; Karl fell
back, batting the blade away.
He switched grips and threw the sword like a javelin, driving it into a
slaver's chest to its brass quillons. Another hand fastened
on his bottle of healing draughts. No. The bottle was Karl's only chance to come out of this
alive. He bit the other's hand, his teeth rending muscle and tendons, a rush of
salty blood filling his mouth. The pain stopped as
his wound healed, but the fire still roared, still burned him. Karl reached out with his free hand and
caught hold of a slaver's ear. While the slaver screamed, Karl brought his hand down and his knee up, the man's face shattering against his knee like a
bagful of eggs. Screams still filled his ears, but now they were only his 222 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN screams. Karl staggered through the shattered
door and into
the companionway beyond, his whole body on fire. His right hand fumbled at the bottle's
cork, but he couldn't control his fingers. He brought the cork to his mouth, clamped his teeth on it, and jerked it
loose. As he drank the sweet healing draughts, he
inhaled some of the fluid. Doubled over in a
coughing spasm, he splashed the
healing draughts over his body, making sure to get some into his eyes. The pain receded. He opened his eyes. At
first, his vision was cloudy; it was as if he had opened his eyes underwater. Then his vision
cleared. He poured some of the healing draughts onto the smoldering spots of his
breechclout, feeling the burns on his thighs and buttocks subside. The pain was gone.
Tossing the empty bottle aside, he let out his breath, then sucked in sweet,
fresh air. Behind him, the fire was spreading beyond the cabin. Through the wall of flame he
could see unmoving bodies, scattered across the room, crackling in the flame. Beside him in the companionway, a dead
slaver sat against a bulkhead, propped up by the sword stuck through his chest,
unseeing eyes staring up as Karl jerked the
sword from the body. The stench of burning flesh filled his
nostrils. He gagged, stumbling back through
the companionway. Ganness lay unmoving on the deck. "Ganness." Karl slapped Ganness'
face lightly, then harder. "Wake up." Ganness' eyelids fluttered, then snapped
open. He grabbed at Karl's arm. "Ganness, the ship's burning. Get
over the side. Quickly, now." "My ship—" "Your life—move." Karl jerked Ganness to his feet, then
pushed him toward the companionway. "Get out through the rear hatch; I've
got to get to the wizard." Karl ran
to the forward ladder, then climbed it, his Blood Price 223 feet touching every other rung. He broke through into daylight. On the
beach, a battle raged. No time for this. Where's— At the bow of the Warthog, the
wizard stood, wind whipping through his
hair, rippling his tunic, as he raised his hands over his head,
murmuring words that Karl couldn't make
out. Lightning crackled
from the wizard's fingers, the sun-bright bolts shooting shoreward. "Wizard!
Try me!" The wizard turned,
his sweaty face going ashen as his eyes widened. "Karl Cullinane. Wait." He raised
his hands. "Please don't. We can
talk—" Karl took a step forward. The wizard murmured
another spell. Again, lightning crackled from his fingertips, streaking
across the few feet that
separated Karl and the wizard. Inches from Kail's
chest, the lightning shattered into a stream of sparks that flowed around him,
never touching him. Karl took another step. "The sword—it's the sword of Arta Myrdhyn." "A sword made to kill wizards." And another step. Again, the wizard threw up his hands. "Wait.
I surrender to you. There's much I can do for you, Karl Cullinane, much I
can tell you. Wait, please." Karl stopped three
feet away and lowered the point of the sword. The wizard relaxed momentarily, a relieved
smile spreading across his face. Karl returned the smile, then slashed. Once. The smile was still
on both of their faces as the wizard's head rolled across the deck and splashed
overboard, leaving his body
behind to twitch in a pool of blood for a moment,
and then lie still. On the beach, the battle stopped. Slavers and Mel alike 224 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN staggered, then dropped to their knees, and to their bellies, unconscious. Except for one man.
Seigar Wohtansen stood at the waterline and lowered his arms. The sand around
him was
dotted with smoldering black patches. He sprinted across
the sand to the nearest Mel man and kicked him awake, holding a hand across the
man's mouth
to prevent him from crying out. "Quickly, before they wake." Roughly, the Mel woke
another of his fellows, and then another,
until all the Mel men stood among the
sleeping bodies of the slavers. And slowly,
cold-bloodedly, they picked up swords and knives, cutting the slavers' throats as
they slept. Karl shuddered, but
the roar of the fire behind him suggested that the Warthog wasn't the
place to be right now; he levered himself over the side and dropped into the water, wading
toward shore. As he reached the
beach, Wohtansen ran up. "This way—some got by us. Going up toward the
village." They ran up the
path, under the overhanging branches. "Just put them all to sleep," Karl
said, panting as he ran. Wohtansen shook his
head. "Can't. All out of ... spells." Scattered across the
trail ahead, the pieces of several dead slavers lay, already covered with a
blanket of flies. Karl nodded to himself as he leaped over a part of a leg. Looked like Ahira's
handiwork; nothing but a battleaxe could dismember someone so thoroughly. That boded well. A break in the trees
loomed ahead. Through it, Karl could see the tops of Mel lodges. Karl picked up the pace, leaving Wohtansen behind. The lodges of the
village were set in a wide circle, surrounding a grassy common area, cleared
patches with grids and stones for cooking fires on the near side, water vats on the far side. Blood Price 225 Thirty or forty bodies littered the green.
Slavers and Mel men, women, and children lay
across the grass, some dead, some
moaning from their wounds. But the battle wasn't over. Tennetty
parried a slaver's thrust, then lunged in
perfect extension, spitting him on her sword. She jerked the sword out
and turned to help Chak with his opponent. A few yards away from Tennetty and Chak,
Ahira ducked under his enemy's swing, then
swung his battle-axe. The axe didn't slow as it cut through the slaver's
torso. But Rahff was in trouble. Karl ran toward
the boy, hoping he'd make it in time, knowing that he wouldn't. Rahff stood between Aeia and a tall,
long-haired swordsman. The boy's bloody left
arm hung uselessly; a long, bloody gash ran from elbow to shoulder. The swordsman beat Rahffs blade aside and slashed. Rahff screamed. His belly opened like an overripe fruit. Karl was only a few
yards away; he dropped the sword and leaped, his arms outstretched. As the slaver pulled back his sword for a
final thrust, Karl landed on him, bowling
him over. Before the slaver could
bring his sword into play, Karl grabbed the man's head and twisted, neckbones snapping like pencils. He pounded the slaver's face with his
fists, not knowing if the man was already dead, not caring. "Karl." The dwarfs face was
inches away from his. Ahira gripped Karl's hands. "Rahffs alive. He
needs help." Karl turned. The boy lay sprawled on the
grass, his head cradled on Aeia's lap, his hands clawing at his wounds, trying to hold his belly closed. "Tennetty," Karl snapped. "Find my horse—healing draughts in the saddlebags." "On my way," she called back,
her voice already fading in the distance. Rahffs arm
was badly gashed; a long, deep cut ran 226 THE
SWOflD AND THE CHAIN from the elbow almost to the
shoulder. His whole left side and much of the ground underneath it was soaked with dark blood. Rahff smiled weakly,
trying to raise his head. "Karl, you're alive," he said, his voice
weak. "I told them you would be." "Shh. Just lie
there." Karl ripped a strip of cloth from his breechclout and slipped it around
the upper part of Rahff s left arm. He tied a quick slipknot, then pulled it as tight as he
could. That would keep him from bleeding to death from that wound. But what about the
belly? There was nothing he
could do. Direct pressure would just spread the boy's intestines all over the
meadow; there was no way to clamp all the bleeding veins and arteries shut. Just a few minutes. That's all he needs.
Just a few minutes. Tennetty
would be back with the healing draughts and then— "Chak, Wohtansen's somewhere around.
He should know where the Eriksens keep
their healing draughts." Without a
word, Chak ran off. Rahff coughed; a
blood-flecked foam spewed from his lips. "Aeia's fine, Karl. I took care
of her. Just as you said we were supposed to." "Shut up,
apprentice." Karl forced a smile to his face. "If you'll just keep
still for a moment, Tennetty or Chak will be back with a bottle, and we'll fix you right up." "I did right, didn't I? She's fine,
isn't she?" He looked up at Karl as though Aeia weren't there. "She's
just fine, Rahff. Shh." Ahira laid a hand on Karl's shoulder.
"The boy was overmatched. That slaver went for Aeia, and Rahff couldn't
wait for me to finish off mine." "How the hell did they get by
you?" Karl snarled. "I told Wohtansen to tell you to hide on the
path." Ahira shrugged. "Just too many of
them. Six of them engaged Chak, Tennetty, and me, while the others ran past. By
the time we killed ours off and got up to the Blood Price 227 village . . ." He shook his head.
"They went crazy, Karl. Most
of them didn't bother trying to capture anyone, they just started hacking.
Mainly trying to wound the Mel, it seemed. I guess they figured we'd be so busy
treating the injured that we wouldn't have time to chase after them. A lot of them got away, Karl. After
they had their fill of killing." Their fill of
killing. They're going to learn what a fill of killing is. "Just take it
easy, Rahff. Just another moment or two." Rahff s hand gripped
Karl's. "I'm not going to die, am I?" " 'Course not." Hurry up, Tennetty,
Chak. Hurry. He doesn't have much time. "Ahira, find the Eriksen wizard. Maybe he knows—" The dwarf shook his
head. "Pile of cinders; the slavers' wizard got a flame spell through to him." Rahffs breathing was becoming more
shallow. Karl laid a finger on the boy's
good wrist. His pulse was rapid, thready. Come on, Tennetty. At a cry of pain,
Karl looked up. Coming around from behind a hut, Chak ran toward him, an uncorked brass bottle cradled in his arms. White-lipped, he
knelt beside Karl, pouring the liquid into the boy's open belly. The healing draughts pooled amid the blood
and the gore. It's not working. Karl slipped a hand behind Rahffs head,
prying the jaw open with his other hand so Chak could pour healing draughts into the boy's mouth. It puddled in Rahffs mouth. The overflow
ran down the boy's cheek and onto Aeia's
lap. Chak lowered the
bottle. "He's dead, Karl. It won't do him any good." "Keep pouring." Gripping Rahffs arm tightly, Karl couldn't
feel a pulse. He slipped a finger to the boy's throat. 228 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN Nothing. Karl spread the
fingers of his left hand across Rahff s chest, and pounded the back of that hand
with his fist, all the while cursing himself for never having taken a CPR course. Live, damn you, live. "I said to keep pouring. Drip some on
his arm." He put his mouth over the boy's, pinched Rahff s nostrils with his left hand, and breathed in. And
again, and again, and again . . . He became aware that Ahira was shaking
him. "Let him go, Karl. Let him go. He's dead." The dwarf gathered
Karl's hands in his and pulled him away. The boy's head fell back, limp. Glazed,
vacant eyes stared blankly up at Karl.
Slowly, Chak knelt down and closed
Rahff s eyes. A drop fell on Rahffs face, then another.
Aeia wept soundlessly, her tears running down her cheeks and falling onto Rahff. Karl rose and led
Aeia away from the body. At Chak's low moan, he noticed for the first time that
the little man was clutching the side of his waist. A bloodstain the size of a dinner plate
spread out across Chak's sarong. "Drink
some," Karl said quietly, motioning toward the bottle. "Then give the rest to the wounded.
And give them whatever Tennetty comes back
with, if it's needed." "Fine." Chak raised the bottle
to his lips, then poured some of the
healing draughts into his own wound. The wound closed
immediately. Visibly getting stronger,
Chak gripped his falchion. "Can I kill Woh-tansen, or do you want
to?" Karl
jerked around. "What?" "I'd better show you. Take that
sword. You'll be wanting it." Karl walked over to
where the sword lay and stooped to pick it up. "Aeia, go find Tennetty." "No.
I want to stay with you." She clung to him, her Blood Price 229 tears wet
against his side. "But what about Rahff?" Ahira
sighed. "I'll take care of him." "There's ... no
rush, Aeia." He blinked back the tears. "It doesn't hurt him
anymore." He turned to Chak. "Take
me to Wohtansen." Behind a hut, Wohtansen was ministering to
a wounded woman, pouring healing draughts down her throat and into a deep gash
in her belly. "Tell
me," Karl said. Chak spat. "He found two bottles
of the stuff, but he couldn't be bothered
to bring one for Rahff. I had to pry it
from his fingers." Karl stood over
Wohtansen and spoke quietly. "Stand up, you bastard." Wohtansen didn't glance up. "I'll
speak to you in a moment." Karl reached out a hand and lifted
Wohtansen by the hair, dropping the sword so that he could slap the Mel's face with his free hand. In the back of his mind he realized that
hitting a clan wizard and war leader might possibly trigger an attack by the
remaining Mel; certainly it would make Karl persona non grata throughout
Melawei. But he
didn't care. "Why didn't you bring it over there?
We could have saved him," he shouted, punctuating every word with a slap.
"Why didn't you—" He caught himself, letting Wohtansen's limp form drop to the ground. Chak felt at Wohtansen's neck. "He's
still alive." Laying the edge of his blade against the Mel's neck, he
looked up at Karl. "Should I fix that?" "You leave him
alone!" The Mel woman shrilled up at Karl. "That boy was a stranger. Not one of ours." Aeia launched herself at the woman,
pounding her little fists into the woman's
face until Karl pulled her off. "Come
on, Aeia, let's go." They gathered on the
beach, half a mile away from the 230 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN sands where the bodies lay. Off in the
distance, the Wort-hog still
burned, sending sparks and cinders shooting hundreds
of feet into the night sky. A few yards from where they sat, Rahffs
body lay, wrapped in a blanket. / won't have him
buried in Melawei soil. I won't have his body polluted that way. Rahff would be buried
in the Cirric.
Not here. Karl looked from
face to face. All were grim, although Tennetty's expression was a mix of
satisfaction and frustration.
Karl could understand the first; after all, she'd gotten her quota of slavers.
But the frustration? "Tennetty?
What is it?" She shook her head,
her straight hair whipping around her face. "I can't find him. The one
that killed Fialt. I've looked at all the bodies, but. . ." She pounded her
fist on the sand. "He
got away." "No, he didn't." Karl waved a
hand at the burning wreck. "The one who killed Fialt was the leader,
right? Black hair, thin smile—" In light from the
burning ship, a smile flickered across her sweat-shiny face. "You killed
him?" "Yes. He and some of his friends
trapped me in Gan-ness" cabin. So they
thought." She looked at him
for a long moment, her face blank, unreadable. Then: "Thank you, Karl." She gripped his hand in both of hers for just a moment, then
dropped his hand and turned away. She walked a few yards, then stopped,
watching the burning wreck. Aeia stared down at a spot in front of
her, picking up sand and letting it dribble through her fingers. Soundlessly,
she rose, walked over to the pile of driftwood where Carrot and Pirate stood
hitched, and stroked Carrot's face. The horse snorted, then nuzzled her. Karl walked over and
stood beside her. "You're going to miss Carrot, eh?" "No." Carrot lowered her head.
Aeia put her cheek against the horse's neck. "I can't. I can't stay
here." Blood Price 231 He stroked her shoulder. "They didn't
understand about Rahff. They didn't know he
was your friend." His words sounded false, even in his own ears.
But he couldn't try to push her into
leaving home. "No. They just didn't care. I ..." her voice trailed off into sobs.
Aeia turned and threw her arms around Karl, burying
her face against him. Tears wet his side. "Go talk it
over with your parents, with your people. If you want to come with us, you can." He ran his fingers
through her hair. "You know that." "No. I won't
talk with them. They let Rahff die. I want to go with you." "Think
it over." "But—" He pried her arms away. "Just think
it over." He turned and walked back to the others. Ganness sprawled on the sand, visibly
relieved to be alive. In a while, he'd once
again start regretting the loss of
his ship. But it wouldn't hurt him as much as losing the Ganness' Pride had. Chak had been through all this before.
Just another day in the life of a soldier
of fortune. Sure. "Ahira?" The dwarf
looked up at him, not saying a word. "What
the hell do we do?" Ahira shrugged.
"I think it's time we go home. At least for now." "I
know. It's just that I wish . . ." "But you wish
this victory had been bloodless, at least for our side. And you wish that Wohtansen had had as much concern for one of us as for one of his own.
And you wish that the world were a
fine and simple place, where every problem you can't solve with your
head you can solve with one simple blow from
your sword. Right?" Ahira shook his
head. "Doesn't work that way, Karl." Ahira pushed the hilt of his battleaxe into the sand and scooped up handfuls to scour the congealed blood
from its 232 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN head. "Just doesn't work that way.
You're trying to start a revolution; one that will shake this whole damn world, turn it upside down.
Didn't Thoreau say something about revolutions not being hatched in a
soft-boiled egg? "Before we're
done, rivers of blood will flow. And not just the blood of slavers, either. A
lot of good people are going to die, and die horribly. That's a fact, Karl.
Yes?" Karl nodded. "Yes." Ahira sat silently for so long that Karl
thought the dwarf was finished. Just as Karl was
about to speak, Ahira shook his head. "Karl, what it really comes down to
is whether you think the end
justifies the means." Ahira chuckled. "Sounds hideous, doesn't it?" "It does, at that." Still, Ahira
was right. The world was not full of nice,
clean, easy choices. And wishing that it
was would never make it so. The battleaxe now
clean, the dwarf rose to his feet and strapped the axe to his chest. He flexed his hands,
then finger-combed his hair. "You asked where we go from here. I think we take off and walk back
toward Clan Wohtan. Ganness says the slavers' ship is there, with only a
skeleton guard. We'll take the ship, kill the slavers, and free the Mel and Ganness' crew. Then we can give Ganness the
ship—" "We
do owe him a ship." "Two, actually.
We'll have him drop us off as close to the Pandathaway-Metreyll road as he can.
We buy a few more horses, and
ride back to the valley." Chak joined them. "Except for losing
Rahff, we haven't done too badly here. The
wizards lost one of their own; maybe
they won't be so eager to send guild members along on slaving raids into Melawei." To hell with that.
Who cares if—He caught himself. So the Mel weren't all nice people. Did that make it okay to
clap collars around their necks? Aeia clutched at his hand. "I'm
coming with you. I won't stay here." Blood Price 233 Tennetty pulled her away. "Nobody
will make you stay here." She patted
the hilt of her sword. "I swear it." "But what do we do about Rahff?" Aeia shrilled. There wasn't any answer to that. Killing
Wohtansen wouldn't change it. Rahff was
dead, and he'd stay dead. Like Jason
Parker, like Fialt. And probably like me, before this is all
over. He stopped and
picked up his own sword, belting it around his
waist. He gripped the sharkskin hilt for a moment. It felt good,
comfortable, familiar in his hand. "Ganness, you sure that the slavers don't have another wizard with them?" "Yes." Ganness nodded. "But
why do you care? You have the sword." Karl ,didn't answer. He lifted the
sword of Arta Myrdhyn, holding it with both hands. The bright steel caught the flicker of the Warthog's flames. Once more, dark shapes moved across the
blade, forming sharp letters. Keep me, they
said. No. Karl walked to the edge of the beach, then
into the Cirric until the water rose to his
knees. He held the sword over his head, the hilt
clenched in both hands. Okay, Deighton, you've got me to do your dirty work for you. I'll probably die with my
blood pouring out of me, as Rahff did. "But
not my son, Arta Myrdhyn. Not my son." He swung the sword over his head three
times, then threw it with every ounce of strength he had left. It tumbled end over end through the air;
Karl turned back toward the beach, not
caring where the sword fell. Ahira's
eyes were wide. "Look at that." Karl turned back.
Ghostly fingers of light reached out of the water and caught the sword, then
pulled it underwater. A quick glimmering, and the sword was gone. For now. It doesn't matter if you keep the sword
here for him. Karl shook his head. Not my son. "Okay, people, let's get 234 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN going. We've got some traveling to do before
we reach Clan Wohtan." Chak nodded. "A couple days'
travel, a quick fight, a day or so getting the pirate ship ready for sea, a tenday
at sea, and quite a few more
tenday's ride, and then we're home." Tennetty shrugged. "Sounds easy to me." PART FIVE: Home CHAPTER SEVENTEEN: Jason Home is where one starts from. As we grow older The
world becomes stranger, the pattern more complicated Of dead
and living. Not the intense moment Isolated, with no before and after, But a
lifetime burning in every moment . . . —T. S. Eliot Tennetty kicked Pirate into a canter, coming even with Karl, then slowing her horse down to a walk. Carrot whinnied, lifting her feet a bit
higher as Karl rode her through the tall
grasses. "Easy, Carrot." He patted her
neck, then glared at Tennetty. "Don't do that—she likes to be out in
front." She shrugged. It was
possible that Tennetty could have cared less about something than she did about what Carrot wanted
or didn't want, but only barely. "How long?" Fine. On this
trip,-I didn't have Slovotsky asking "Are we there yet?" all the damn
time. Instead, I've got Tennetty asking "How long is it going to
be?" Three times in the morning, four in the afternoon, twice when we're sitting around the campfire in the evening. I
could set my watch by her. If I had a watch. It had taken a couple of weeks on the
newly named Ganness' Revenge to arrive at the little fishing village of Hindeyll,
then weeks of travel on the Pandathaway- 237 238 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Metreyll road to get to the Waste,
another month to skirt the Waste and cross into the outskirts of Therranj. Of course, we could have cut out some time
if we hadn't jumped those slavers near
Wehnest. Backtracking to chase them down must have cost us a week. At
least. Not a bad raid,
though; it had added a sackful of coin, three horses, and another member to
their party. Peill was a nice
addition to the group; Karl had never met anyone with such a talent for tracking as the elf. He turned to see the
tall elf riding next to Ahira's pony, Chak and Aeia on the dwarfs other side, while Ahira continued the English lesson. Guess this stuff about elves and dwarves
not getting along doesn't apply when the dwarf is the one who shatters the elf's chains. Peill's skills with a longbow could come
in handy, particularly if he could teach
others to use it. The trouble with
the crossbows was that their rate of fire was just too damn low,
although they did have the advantage of greater
accuracy. But from ambush, a few good longbowmen
might be able to finish off a group of
slavers before they even knew that they were under attack. Then again, it would be hard for a
longbowman to conceal himself; a crossbowman
could shoot while prone, or from a perch in a tree. . . . Well, it was
something to think about, anyway. Maybe talk over with Chak. But I can do that
later. We're almost home, and we all deserve a vacation. "I asked you, 'How long?' "
Tennetty glared at him. "If you're
going deaf, you can damn well count me out of the next trip." Perhaps twenty miles across the plain, the
ground sloped upward into an area of blackened, burned ground. Beyond that, the
valley lay. "I
figure we'll get there sometime tomorrow." It was
almost over. For now. But only for now. Jason 239 Karl sighed. I'm never going to be done
with blood. Not until the day I die. 'Then again, if you
don't learn to keep your eyes open while you're feeling sorry for yourself, that could be anytime now.* "Ellegonl" He scanned the sky.
Nothing but clouds, and a few birds to the east. Where are you? * Try behind you.* Karl turned in the saddle; above and
behind him, a familiar shape dropped out of
the blue sky. *I usually come this way on the returning
leg of my patrol,* the dragon said. Both Carrot and Pirate snorted and held
their ground as the dragon landed; the
other horses galloped away in different directions, their riders vainly
trying to control the animals' panic. Tennetty swore as she struggled with
Pirate's reins. "Easy, now. Easy, damn you. The idiot dragon's just trying
to scare you, not eat you." *Good to see you too, Tennetty.* "Try
giving a little warning next time." "Cut the crap, both of you," Karl snapped. "Ellegon, how is Andy-Andy? And the baby?" A gout of fire roared into the sky. *Took
you long enough to ask. * Don't
play games with me, Ellegon. *Both your wife and son are fine. * My son. Karl shook his head.
// ever anyone wished for a daughter . . . "You stay away
from my son, Deighton," he whispered. "Just leave him alone." Across the plain, Aeia and Chak had reined
their horses down to a canter, while
Ahira's and Peill's mounts still
galloped away. "Just as well," Tennetty said.
"Might teach them all something about
keeping their animals under control." She patted at Pirate's neck, then held out a hand to Karl. "Give
me your reins." "Huh?" 240 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN She jerked a thumb at
the dragon. "I think you might be able to persuade Ellegon to give you a
ride the rest of the way home. I'll gather the others together and bring them all in sometime
tomorrow." It was tempting, but
. . . "I'd better stay." The group was Karl's responsibility, until they
got home. He could relax then. *Idiot.* "Idiot,"
Tennetty echoed. She rolled her eyes, looking toward heaven for reassurance.
"Ellegon, explain to Karl how his wife would feel about his being gone a day
longer than
necessary." *Well ... I
don't think Andrea would exactly appreciate
it. She's been a bit worried; she was hoping you'd be back by now. * "You sure things are safe around here?" *I was just finishing
my patrol, Karl.* The dragon pawed at the grass. 'Though you could be right, come to think of it. I smell
a nest of rabbits somewhere around here; maybe your whole party will get eaten
if you're not here to protect them. If it will make you happy, I'll be willing to fly back
and baby-sit Ahira and the rest after I drop you off at home.* "The reins,
please." Tennetty snapped her fingers. "Get moving." He laughed. "You
win." He jumped from Carrot's saddle, tossing the reins to Tennetty.
"See you tomorrow," he said, climbing up to Ellegon's back. The dragon's wings
began to beat, moving faster and faster until they were only a blur, whipping
so much grass
and dust into the air that Karl had to close his eyes. Ellegon leaped skyward. *I've got strict
instructions about where to set you down,* he said, as the ground dropped away
beneath them. As they passed over
Chak and Aeia, Karl returned their waves. EllegonP *Be quiet for a while; I'm going to put on some speed. * Jason 241 His wings began to work even faster, the wind drawing tears out of Kail's
eyes. Karl put his head to
the dragon's rough hide and held on. * Almost home. * The rush of wind slowed. Karl raised his
head. They were flying over what had been a burned rise leading to the valley. It had become even more green; soon, the evidence that a fire
had once burned would be gone. The valley spread
out below. When Karl had left, the encampment had been one wooden wall, a stone fireplace, and two wagons. There had been some changes. More than
thirty log cabins spread out along the
shore of the lake, several of them with split-rail corrals for horses and
cattle. Children scampered around a wooden dock
that jutted out from the shore, pausing momentarily in their play to wave to
Ellegon as the dragon passed overhead. Where there had been only forest, there
now were fields, stalks of corn, and seas of wheat waving in the breeze. The fortifications had been completed;
they now enclosed a group of five houses,
one with a slow-turning waterwheel. Ellegon dove toward the bare-dirt
courtyard, braking with his wings. Mill? *Yes. Riccetti has done well, no?* No. 'You've all done well. Deftly avoiding the
network of hollowed half-logs that piped water to the five houses, the dragon
landed inside the walls. Karl dismounted. 'Welcome home.* To his right, a familiar face peeked out
of an open-sided cabin whose chimney puffed smoke into the air. Walter Slovotsky, wearing a leather apron and
carrying a smith's hammer, ran into the courtyard, dropping the hammer
as he ran. 242 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Karl." Slovotsky stuck out a
hand, drew it back, shaking his head. "To hell with it." He threw his
arms around Karl. "Dammit, you're breaking my
back," Karl said, untangling himself. Slovotsky chuckled.
"Fat chance." He turned. "Kirahl They're—" He
caught himself. "Is everyone—?" "We lost Fialt, but the rest of us
are fine." Except for Rahff. I wish he'd gotten the chance to— 'Later, Karl, later. Homecoming is
supposed to be a happiness. * You know a lot about happiness? *I'm
learning, Karl. Walter, take him to her.* Slovotsky led Karl
toward a cabin on the far side of the courtyard, talking nonstop as they walked.
"I wish we'd known you were getting back today. Lou's taken a party to the far side of
the valley. He found a cave full of bats a couple of months ago, and we're finally
getting them all cleared out." "Bats?" Karl removed his hand
from the hilt of his sword. "Some sort
of trouble?" "No." Slovotsky laughed.
"Just garden-variety fruit bats. They can give you a nasty bite, but
Thellaren— he's our cleric—can fix you right
up." "Cleric?" "Spidersect. Showed up one day, half
starved; seems he had some trouble with the
Therranji. Does one hell of a
business, although Andy and I had to reason with him about rates. The bastard was charging—" "Then why clear out the bats?" Slovotsky smiled knowingly. "Think
about it. What are bats good at
making?" "Baby bats, and bat sh—" Of
course. Karl raised a hand. "Never mind. I take it you've found some
sulfur, too." "You got it. No
willows around here. But oak seems to work okay." Take the
crystals of saltpeter from underneath any Jason 243 well-aged pile of excrement, add sulfur and powdered charcoal in
the right proportions, and voila!—gunpowder. Well, it was probably a
bit trickier than that, but not much. Maybe I'm not going to be needing longbows, after all. "It was Riccetti's idea. He
remembered reading that Cortez used bat
guano to make gunpowder." "I
didn't know Lou was a historian." "Only when it comes to making
things." Slovotsky nodded. "He's
already made some gunpowder—stinks to high
heaven when it burns—and I'm working on a flintlock right now." Slovotsky caught
himself as they stopped in front of the cabin's door. "Later; we'll have plenty of time. She's in
there, Karl." Slovotsky waved as he jogged off. "I'd better go see Kirah. We've been fattening a
calf." Karl opened the door and walked in. The cabin was well
kept, from the burnished wood of the floor to the ceiling timbers, hung with
unlit oil lamps. A beaded
curtain covered a doorway on the opposite wall. On the right-hand
wall, a rough table stood beneath a mottled glass window. On the left-hand wall, a pot of stew burbled merrily in the stone fireplace. Two huge wooden
chairs stood side by side in front of the fireplace, both with blankets padding
their seats. The arms of one
chair was stained with nicks and sweat marks;
the other looked new, unused. He unbuckled his
sword and hung it over the back of the newer chair. "Who is
it?" She pushed through the curtain, a wicker basket filled with clothes in her arms.
Her eyes grew wide. "Hi." "Hello." He wanted to reach
out, to run to her, but he couldn't. There was an almost palpable distance between them. The months of
separation had changed her, changed both of
them. 244 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN Worry lines had
begun to form around her eyes. Her hair was tangled, matted down. It wasn't just that she looked more
than a few months older. Her smile was strained. He could see her looking at the
changes in his face, not sure that she liked what she saw. There had been a time when Karl took the
world lightly, even while he took it
seriously. A time when he could push
the darkness away, when he could dismiss it, if only for a while, not merely
pretend that it didn't exist. There
had been a time when Karl had been basically a gentle man, sometimes forced into doing violent things, but always, deep inside, untouched by the
violence. That time was gone. Forever. It could never
be the same between them. The thought cut at him like a knife. "Andy, I—"
He fumbled blindly for the words. For the right words, the ones that would make
everything right between them. He couldn't find them. Maybe they didn't even exist. "No," she shrilled. She
threw the basket aside and ran to him. As he gathered her
into his arms and buried his face in her hair, he knew that he was both right
and wrong. Yes, there had been changes. No, things could never be the same. But they could be better. After a while, he
took a loose sleeve of her robe, wiped first at his own eyes, and then at hers. She looked up at
him, her eyes still tearing, still red. "Karl?" "Yes?" He ran his fingers through her hair. "If," she
said as she rested her face against his chest, "if you ever give
me another look like that, I swear I'll hit you. Don't you—" "Shh." 'Stupid humans.* Ellegon's
massive head peeked Jason 245 through
the open door. He snorted, sending ashes from the
fireplace swirling around the room. Karl raised his head. What is it
now? *You
always have to make things more complicated than
necessary, don't you?* "What are you getting at?" *Tell her you love her, idiot.* She pushed away from
him and smiled. "Yeah. Tell me you love me, idiot." She grabbed his hand. "But later. I've got someone for you to meet." She pulled him through the beaded curtain
and into the bedroom. Under the murky window, a cradle lay. It
was a plain wood box, mounted on two wooden
rockers. He peered inside. "Don't wake him," she whispered.
"It's a pain to get him back to
sleep." The baby, wrapped in a gray cotton diaper,
slept peacefully on the soft blankets. Karl
reached out a hand and gently
touched the child's soft cheek. Still asleep, the baby turned his head to nuzzle Karl's fingers. Karl
pulled his hand back. "He's so ...
small." "That's your opinion."
She snorted. "He sure as hell didn't
feel that way when I was flat on my back in labor. But he'll grow." "How old is he?" "Just under two months."
Andy-Andy slipped an arm around Karl's waist. "I named him Jason, after
Jason Parker. I hope that's okay; we didn't decide on a name before you left,
so ..." "The
name's fine." "I did good?" "Andy,
he's beautiful." *He takes after his mother. Fortunately.* CHAPTER EIGHTEEN: The Flickering Candle . . . the bravest
are surely those who have the clearest vision of what is before them, glory and
danger alike, and yet
notwithstanding go out to meet it. —Thucydides Walter Slovotsky walked quietly
around the bonfire and tapped
him on the shoulder. "Karl, take a walk with me," he said, his voice slurred. He snagged a bottle from one of the merrymakers, bowing an exaggerated
apology. Andy-Andy leaned over
and whispered in KarFs ear, "He's drunk again." "I noticed. Has this been happening a lot?" "Yes." She
nodded. "Ever since Kirah started to show. But I don't think it's just the expectant father jitters. Maybe you should go see what's wrong. I haven't
been able to get him to talk about it. Neither has Kirah." She cast a glance across the clearing. "And I'd
better go check on the baby." He chuckled.
"Between Ellegon and Aeia, I'm sure he's okay." Ellegon had told him that there were bears and pumas up in the mountains. Probably the animals
would continue to avoid the village. But if they didn't,
Ellegon could always fit an odd bear or puma into his diet. "Still
. . ." "Okay. See you later." "Not too much later, I hope. Kirah's going to keep Aeia 246 The Flickering Candle 247 and Jason tonight. No interruptions." Her eyes smiled a promise at him. Karl rose and followed Walter off into the
dark, leaving the bonfire behind them. The welcome-home party was in its
twelfth or thirteenth hour, but it hadn't let up. Some of the revelers kept the
music going with their flutes and drums; others loitered around the cooking fire, slicing off sizzling pieces of
roast calf from the slowly turning
spit. Tennetty, Chak, Peill, and Ahira looked
road-weary, having arrived only that
morning. Still, the four of them held
court, a few dozen meters from the fire, standing in a circle of fifty listeners, taking turns
relating the story of Karl Cullinane
on the Warthog. Six of the listeners drew Karl's
attention. A group of battle-scarred men,
they listened raptly, occasionally interrupting Tennetty or Chak to
press for more details. Karl had been introduced to them, but had forgotten
their names. But he hadn't forgotten the fact that they were former mercenaries, now engaged in the profession of taking on
slavers. Which means, he thought, that the whole world doesn't rest on my shoulders anymore. And it also means
I'm becoming a legend, he thought, and smiled. Probably have more volunteers than I can use, next
time. He sobered. That possibility might have its pluses, but it sure as hell had its minuses. As they walked,
Slovotsky passed him the clay bottle; Karl took another swig of the tannic wine that already had his head spinning. The fire and sound far enough behind them,
Karl seated himself on a projecting root of
an old oak, gesturing at Slovotsky
to join him. "What's bothering you?" "Me?"
Slovotsky snorted. He tilted back the bottle and drank deeply. "Nothing's bothering me, Karl. Not a
damn thing." Slovotsky was silent for a while. Then: "How soon are you planning on going out
again?" "Eager to get rid of me?" 248 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "How
about an answer?" "Mmm, I don't want to leave
too soon. Maybe six months or so. I suspect
it'll take Pandathaway a while to put another team together. If they
don't just write off killing me as a lost
cause." Karl folded his
hands behind his head and leaned back against the bulk of the trees. "Besides, I think that the Slavers' Guild is going to be a bit too busy to go
looking for me." He closed his
eyes. "How many people have we got
here?" "Just over two hundred, as of
the last census. Seems to grow every day, practically. But it's not going to get
any easier: The size of the
slavers' caravans keeps growing. They're running scared, Karl. Which isn't
good; I'd rather have them fat and self-satisfied." Karl shrugged. "So we'll take bigger raiding parties." If this scheme of Riccetti's to make
some rifles panned out, he might not need a much larger team. Granted, the manufacture of cartridges was probably
decades away, but even a few flintlocks and blunderbusses would give them a huge edge. "Think
it through, Karl. Think it through." He opened his eyes
to see Slovotsky shaking his head. Karl grabbed his arm. "What the hell is
bothering you?" "Take a look at the silo?" "No,
but what does that have to do with anything?" "It has to do with everything. We're
getting a damn fine yield for the acreage. Better than any of the locals have ever seen. And this is just the first real
harvest. Wait until next year." "This is doom?" "Yup. Free
societies ..." Walter
interrupted himself to down the last of the wine. He flipped the bottle end
over end, then caught it by the neck, setting it carefully on the ground.
"Free societies produce. You should see how hard these poor bastards work, once they understand that what
they grow or make is theirs." "Didn't Riccetti say something about taxes?"
The Flickering Candle 249 "Sure."
Slovotsky shrugged. "Two percent of production or income, payable to the town treasurer— that's me, for now. We've been using it to sponsor
public works like the mill, pay Riccetti and your wife for running the
school, grubstake new arrivals. Matter of fact, I'm going to have to assess
what you've brought back. Quite a bit of gold and platinum, no?" "A bit. Just net, right?" Idly,
he wondered what the tax on the sword of
Arta Myrdhyn would have been. "Net. No tax on what you make and
spend outside. Only what you bring back, or make here. Keeps things simpler.
But can we leave all that for tomorrow?" "Sure. But would you just come out
and tell me what the hell has got you
running scared?" "Running scared
is right." Slovotsky snorted. "You still don't see it, do you? Free societies
produce more than slave societies. Always
have, always will. Right?" "Right. So?" "So, that means
we're going to continue to flourish and grow. So, eventually we're going to
attract some notice. So, when
we do, some bright baron or prince or lord is going
to work out that we just might overflow this valley and spread out, and
eventually, challenge his power." He shook his head. "So . . .
how long do you think that the slave
societies are going to let us get away with it? A year, almost
certainly. Five, probably; ten, possibly; twenty, maybe. But not forever, Karl.
Not forever." Dammit, but that made sense. The only
reason they had gone unmolested so far was
the small size and remote location of
their colony. "So," Walter went on,
"we're in a race. We have to grow
large enough, strong enough, quick enough, so that we can take on all
comers. Or . . ." "Or? You've got an alternative?" "Or your kid and mine grow up as
orphans. If they're lucky. We're going to
have to keep our wives pregnant all the time, rescue and arm as many
slaves as we can, and work our butts off to
have a chance at winning the race. 250 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Any chance at all." Slovotsky
smiled in the dark. "Let me ask you again: How soon are you planning on
going out again?" Karl sighed. "Give me ten days."
Dammit. "I need to spend some
time with Andy." Slovotsky echoed his sigh. "Take
twenty. I'd better break in a new treasurer, and I've got some smithing to finish before we go." "We?" "We. Slovotsk/s Law Number
Forty-three: Thou shalt put thy money where is thy mouth.' " He rose and
held out a hand. "Count me in." Karl accepted the
hand and let Walter pull him to his feet. "So what do we do now, Karl?" "We?" Karl shrugged. "We
don't do anything now. I'm going to let my wife drag me off to our bedroom.
You're going to finish getting drunk tonight, because you're going back into training tomorrow." He threw an arm around Slovotsky's shoulder. "And after
that. . ."he let his voice trail off. The words escaped him. Ellegon? Can you hear me? *No, not at all. Not one—* Please. Give me the words. *No, Karl.
You don't need me for that. You already know
the words. * But I don't. *Try.* "We . . . survive, Walter. We . . ." Gentle fingers stroked Karl's mind. "... we
protect ourselves, our families, our friends, and our own." Fialt had said that, and Fialt was right. But there was something more. "We keep the
flame of freedom burning, because
that is why we all are here." "Fair enough." *I told you that you knew the words.* And you're always right, eh? * Of course.* CHAPTER NINETEEN: The Hunter I am in
blood, Stepped
in so far, that, should I wade no more, Returning were as tedious as go o'er. —William Shakespeare He lived like a jackal, sleeping
during the day in a hollow under
a palm tree, feeding at night at the garbage pits behind the village, always running for cover at the slightest sound. He never tried for his own kills; anything
that could betray his presence had to be avoided. There were just too many of them. All of his burns and
cuts had long since healed, but the scars remained. The bottle of healing draughts he had managed to
drink while the fire burned around his bleeding
body had kept him alive, although only barely; it had not brought him
back to unmarked health. He waited, feeding and gathering his
strength for the hard trip over the mountains. That was the route he would have to take. The sea was closed to him;
even were another raiding ship to
come this way, they would hardly recognize
him as one of their own. But he always kept his pouch with him. And every once in a
while, Ahrmin would unwrap the glass sphere and watch the dismembered finger floating in the yellowish oil,
pointing unerringly to the north and east. And smile. 251
Introduction It started as a game. Just a quiet,
pleasant evening for seven college
students. Karl Cullinane, Jason Parker, James
Michael Finnegan, Doria Perlstein, Walter
Slovotsky, Andrea Andropolous, and Lou Riccetti sat down for an evening
of fantasy gaming. It was going to be fun. That's all it was supposed to be. But then gamemaster
Professor Arthur Deighton somehow
transferred them to the Other Side. Without warning, they found themselves in
the world they thought existed only in
their imaginations, in the bodies of the characters they had been
pretending to be. Short, skinny Karl
Cullinane became a tall, well-muscled warrior; crippled James Michael
Finnegan became the powerful dwarf, Ahira Bandylegs. All seven of them changed into different people with unusual
talents. Suddenly it wasn't a game anymore. Jason Parker was the
first to die. He spent the last few moments of his life kicking on the end of a
spear. The others survived, but now they weren't
playing, they were fighting to stay alive,
to escape the wrath and weapons of warriors and wizards, slavers and lords. They had to find the
Gate Between Worlds and return home. They had to, and
they did—but in the doing, they lost far too much. Ahira died at the Gate. Doria went catatonic.
Nothing could be done about that at home. But, back on the Other Side, the
Matriarch of the Healing Hand Society could bring Ahira back to life, could
cure Dona's shattered mind. So they returned to the Other Side. And,
yes, the Matriarch was willing to help
them, just this once. But nothing is ever
free. There were prices to pay, and promises to make. Promises that would be
kept. No matter
what the cost. CHAPTER ONE: Profession "Where we do go from here?"
Karl Cullinane asked, sitting next to Andrea Andropolous on the largest of the
flat stones surrounding the
ashes of supper's campfire. He squinted at
the setting sun as he sipped his coffee. Andy-Andy smiled. Karl always liked that
smile; it brightened up what had been an
already bright day. "Do you mean that metaphorically?" she
asked, tossing her head to clear the wisps
of hair from her face. Extending a slim, tanned forefinger, she stroked his
thigh. "Or are you asking where the
two of us can slip off to, to get some privacy?"
She looked up at him, her head cocked to one side. "I would have thought
that last night would have been enough
for a while. Let's wait until dark, shall we?" He laughed. "That wasn't what I
meant—I was talking about how long we're going to stay here on the preserve. The Hand Society isn't going to let us
live here forever." And I was also wondering how the hell we're going to keep our promise to the Matriarch. "But. . ."He took her hand. "As long as you've brought the
subject up, I wouldn't mind—" A firm, reedy voice sounded in Karl's
head: *This is ridiculous. * Lying on the grass
twenty yards away, Ellegon opened his eyes. Then, raising his head from his
crossed forelegs, the dragon
glared at the two of them. *Can't you think about anything but sexual
intercourse? I know you're only humans, but
must you always be in heat?* Curling and uncurling
his leathery wings, he rose to all fours, sending a flock of birds fleeing from
their perches 17 18 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN in a nearby elm and into chittering flight. Ellegon was small, as dragons go: He measured barely the
length of a Greyhound bus from the grayish-green tip of his pointed tail to the saucer-sized nostrils of his saurian
snout. His cavernous mouth closed, then opened,
releasing wisps of smoke and steam. *I would think that people who were
recently college students could have other subjects on their minds. Now and
then, at least.* Ellegon, Karl thought. You're not being
reasonable. I— *No, never mind. Pay
no attention. Don't bother with me. I'm only a dragon, after all.* The dragon
turned and lumbered away. "Ellegon,"
Karl called out. "Come back here." The dragon
didn't seem to hear. Karl shrugged. "I wish he'd be a bit less—" "—of a pain in
the butt," Walter Slovotsky finished, as he walked up. "But it's your own fault, you
know." He was a big man, although not quite as tall, broad-shouldered, or well muscled as Karl. Here, at
least. Back home, Walter had been a half a foot taller than Karl, and much
stronger. But Karl had been changed in the transfer between worlds, receiving
added height and muscle, as well as skills
that he hadn't possessed at home. There had been changes, but not everything
had changed; Walter still could figure things out faster than Karl could, most
of the time. And that still rankled. "What
do you mean?" Karl asked, irritated. "Tell you in a
moment; I need some coffee." Picking up a rag to protect his hand from the heat of the battered coffeepot's handle, Slovotsky poured himself a
cupful. He seemed oblivious to the
chilly wind that blew across the meadow, despite the fact that he was
shirtless, as usual, dressed only in blousy white pantaloons and
sandals, a tangle of knives and straps at
his hip. With his free hand,
Slovotsky rubbed at the corners of his eyes. Their slight epicanthic folds gave
him a vaguely oriental
appearance, although his features were clearly Profession 19 Slavic, and his black hair was slightly
curly. "You're just asking for a hard time, Karl. There's no reason for it.
He's jealous,
that's all." "Jealous?"
Andy-Andy arched an eyebrow. "Of me? Why? I wouldn't think—" *True.* "—that dragons
would get jealous," she finished, as if she hadn't been interrupted. Perhaps
she hadn't been; Ellegon could easily have turned her out. Karl turned to see
the tip of Ellegon's tail vanish as the dragon disappeared into a stand of trees on
the far side of the meadow. Don't eavesdrop. You want to join the
conversation? Fine. Come on back and chat.
Otherwise, keep out of it. No answer. Walter shrugged, the
corners of his mouth turning upward
in an amused grin. "It's just a matter of attention from Karl. Which
you're getting, and he's not." He jerked a thumb toward Lou Riccetti, who
sat propped against the base of a tall elm, his arms crossed over his blue workshirt, lost in thought.
"Slovotsky's Law Number Thirty-seven: Some people need less
attention than others." He shrugged. "Some want more. It all depends on—" "Ohgod." Perched in a high
branch of a dying oak, Ahira the dwarf shook his head. "Everyone, get
your weapons; Lou, you take my crossbow. Karl, on your horse. Move. There's a bunch of riders galloping toward the
preserve—I think we're about to be attacked." As he spoke, Ahira
was already climbing clumsily but quickly down the tree, supporting himself by
the pressure of his blunt fingers against the rough bark, not bothering to look for branches
to hold on to. Karl dropped his cup
as he jumped to his feet. With a quick, reflexive pat at his swordhilt, he ran across the meadow to where his chestnut mare stood, idly
grazing in the ankle-high grasses. Unless Ahira was jumping at shadows, there probably 20 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN wasn't time to saddle her. He took
the bridle down from the
branch where it hung and quickly slid the bit between her teeth as he slipped the crownpiece over her poll and
tightened it behind her ears. Reins in his left hand, he grasped her rough mane in his right and eased himself to her back,
swinging his right leg over and seating himself firmly. He flicked the reins
and dug in his heels. What the hell is going on? he thought. *I can see
it a bit better, and—* Make it
quick. We're about to be attacked. *No, we are not. This is what is
going on.* Ellegon opened his mind. Craning his long
neck to see over a rocky outcropping, Ellegon stared out over the Waste of Elrood. Off in the distance,
five shapes moved quickly across its cracked, dusty
surface. He concentrated on
them; they zoomed into view. All five were filthy humans, mounted on horses. Quite possibly tasty horses. Three of the humans rode together as they
pursued a fourth, a half-naked, skinny one, wearing a metal collar with a
dangling length of chain. The fifth rider, dressed like the other pursuers in matching green tunic and leggings,
galloped in toward the quarry from a different direction. Thanks, Ellegon, Karl thought. The fifth one probably took a different route than his friends; he's
trying to cut the slave off before he reaches the tabernacle grounds. *He will. His horse is much fresher than
the other four. * "Andrea!"
Ahira shouted. "Get up to the bluff. Hide in the bushes, and when they get
close enough, hit as many as you can with your sleep spell. We'll sort it out
later. Right
now, I just want to—" Profession 21 "No," Karl
said, reining in his horse next to the dwarf. "They're not after us. It's four soldiers, chasing an
escaped slave. They're not going to come close to the clearing. Andy, how far
can you reach with your sleep spell?" She waved her hands
helplessly. "Two, three hundred feet. At best." Ellegon, do any of
them have bows? You didn't notice before, and I couldn't tell. "Two
of them do. Karl, we've got to talk about—* Save it for later. He turned to Andrea. "No good. They'd
cut you down before you got in range. Ellegon and I'll take care of it." Get
airborne, and give me a hand. Karl had the only horse among the five of
them; depending on how far away the hunters
and their quarry were, he might have to hold the fort all by himself for
several minutes before the others could
arrive. Karl had a great
respect for his own fighting skills, but a single man successfully taking on four or more was a longshot, no matter how handy that one man was
with a sword. But with Ellegon overhead, there probably wouldn't be a
fight at all; few people would risk being roasted
in dragonfire. *No. * What? *I thought I made that clear. No, I will not get airborne. They have bows. I'm scared.* That was bizarre.
Ellegon's scales were as hard as fine steel; he was almost immune to any
nonmagical threat. But there was no
time to discuss that. "Ellegon's out— I'll slow them up. Catch up with me
as soon as you can." Andrea reached out and grabbed at his
leggings. "Wait. I've got a—" "No
time, didn't you hear me? escaped slave. Stay out of it; I don't want to have to
worry about your getting hurt." He jerked his leggings out of her grasp. Ignoring
Ahira's shouts from behind, he kicked his 22 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN horse into a canter. Galloping her down the
incline to the He cantered down the slope toward a break
in the trees. Beyond it, touched with the
red light of the setting sun, the Waste of Elrood lay in harsh, bright
flatness. Long ago, what now was the Waste had been covered with lush greenery like the wooded sanctuary
surrounding the tabernacle of the
Healing Hand. A thousand years ago, a death duel between two wizards had
ended that; now a vast ocean of sun-cracked
earth spread across the horizon. A quarter of a mile ahead, a dustcloud
roiled. At its head the lone rider, keeping
a bare hundred-yard lead on three others, dodged his horse to avoid the
fourth rider coming from the side. Four on one. I hate
four on one. But that was the way it
had to be, at least for a while; it would take Walter, Ahira, and Riccetti a good five minutes to catch up. Karl would be hard pressed to hold off four warriors
for that length of time. A five-minute swordfight would be an eternity. *Then again,* the dragon's voice sounded
dimly in Karl's head, *you might just be
able to talk to them.* Bets? He dug in his heels. As he neared the quarry, the man swerved
his horse away. A half-naked, skinny wretch
with a badly scarred face, rivulets of sweat running down his dust-caked
chest, he jerked on the reins with his cuffed hands, the dangling links of chain tinkling in bizarre merriment. "N'var!"
Karl called out in Erendra. Don't run. "T'rar ammalli." I'm
a friend. No good. The man obviously figured that
Karl was with the others; his clothing was similar to theirs. To him, it must
have looked like a trap, as though yet another
horseman had appeared to cut him off just a few hundred yards away from the sanctuary of the tabernacle Profession 23 grounds. A low moan escaped his lips
as he cut perpendicularly across Karl's path. As though he had waited for just this
chance, the fourth pursuer let fly a whirling leather strap, weighted at both ends. Twisting through the air, it spun
across the intervening yards and
tangled itself in the rear legs of the quarry's horse. Whinnying in pain
and fear, the horse tumbled to the ground, sending the rider flying. He tumbled
head over heels on the rough ground, and then fell
silent. There wasn't time to see to the fallen
man. If he was dead, there wasn't anything to do. Injured, he probably could
keep for a while; Slovotsky, Ahira, and Riccetti would be along with the bottle of healing draughts. Reaching across his
waist, Karl drew his saber. "Easy, now," he whispered to his horse, while he settled the reins in his left fist. "Just stand
easy." He waited for the four
soldiers. As their horses pranced to a panting halt,
he took a quick inventory of their weapons.
All four were swordsmen, wearing the wide-bladed shortsword popular in the
Eren regions. Karl could probably handle that, on horseback. His ruddy mare was a large and powerful
animal; likely he could dance her
around that tired assortment of lathering
geldings while his saber's greater reach took its toll. But the two at the rear of the group had
crossbows strapped to their saddles. That could be bad. Very bad. But. . . crossbows? If they had them, why
hadn't they used them? *Stupid. Dead . . . isn't worth . . .
much.* Ellegon's voice was dim now that
Karl was on the very edge of the dragon's
range; worse, the flow of words had developed gaps when Ellegon wasn't
concentrating. Right, he thought,
wondering if the dragon could hear him. He faced the four men. "Ryvath
ed," he said, letting the
guttural Erendra r roll off his tongue. It stops here. 24 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN The leader, a burly, bearded swordsman,
answered him in the same language. "This is none of your concern," he said, moving his horse closer to
Karl's. "The slave is the
property of Lord Mehlen of Metreyll, whose armsmen we are—laws regarding
abandoned property do not apply." Karl could just
barely hear Ellegon. *Stall. Just stall.* He couldn't stall for long. The younger of
the two bowmen had
unstrapped his crossbow and was fumbling for one of the bolts
in the wooden quiver strapped to the cantle of his saddle. But it was at least worth a try.
"You," he said in Erendra, "if you touch that bowstring, I'll
take it away from you and wrap it around
your throat." The largest of the four was almost a head shorter than Karl;
perhaps he could intimidate them for a few minutes, until the odds evened up. The bowman, a blond youth who looked to be
in his late teens, sneered. "I doubt that," he said. But his fingers stopped their search for a bolt. Good. Just a few more minutes. "Now, we can talk," he said, lowering the point of his sword. He listened for sounds from behind him.
Damn, nothing but the clattering of hooves
as the quarry's horse got to its feet. The escaped slave was, at best,
feigning unconsciousness. At best .
. . To hell with it. "He is not a
slave. Not anymore. He is under
my protection." It was only fair to give them a chance; Karl had made a
promise to the Matriarch, but he could
hardly fulfill it by killing everyone in this world who tolerated—or
even supported—the ownership of people. It wouldn't work, even if Karl was
willing to wade through a sea of blood. Dammit. There had been a time
when the most violent thing Karl could remember doing was blocking too hard during a karate
lesson. Profession 25 But there have been some changes made. "You're not going to take
him." The leader snorted.
"Who are you?" He raised an eyebrow. "You don't look like a daughter of the Hand. You're ugly as most of them, granted, but—"
He cut himself off with a shrug. "What do you suggest we do? We have chased him a long way—" "Turn around and
ride away," Karl said. "We will just leave it at that." The leader smiled, his right hand snaking
across his body toward the hilt of his sword. "I doubt—" His words turned into a bubbling gasp as
the point of Karl's saber sliced through his
throat. One down. Karl kicked his horse over to
the next swordsman, a pock-faced beardless
one, who had already drawn his sword. There was no time to
waste; he had to take this one out and get to the bowmen quickly. As the other slashed down at him,
Karl parried, then thrust at the man's swordarm. No-Beard was ready
for that; with a twitch of his arm, he beat Karl's sword aside, then tried for a backhanded slash to Karl's neck. Karl ducked under
the swing and used the opening to thrust through to his opponent's chest, the flat of his blade
parallel to the ground. The point slid through the leather tunic as if through cheesecloth. Karl jerked his saber
out. Wine-dark blood fountained, covering his sword from its tip to its basket hilt and beyond,
staining Karl's hand and wrist. He had gotten through to either the aorta or
the heart. It didn't much matter which;
No-Beard would be dead in seconds. Karl spun his horse around to face the
others. Like mirror images, the two bowmen
turned their horses and galloped in
opposite directions. He hesitated for a moment.
At close quarters, he could take
both. But with just a few yards between them, one 26 THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN of the bowmen could drill him through
while he killed the other. There was no choice.
He would have to take out one, and worry about the other later. The bowman to the
left wheeled his horse about. Two tugs at his saddlestraps unlimbered his
crossbow; he reached down to his
waist for a three-pronged beltclaw. Forty yards of broken ground separated
Karl from him. Karl dug in his heels and kicked his
horse into a gallop. If he could
get to the bowman quickly enough... Thirty yards. Bracing the butt of the crossbow in a notch in his saddle, the bowman slipped
the claw over the bowstring and
pulled it back, locking the string into place. The beltclaw
fell from his fingers. Twenty yards. With trembling hands, the bowman drew a foot-long feathered bolt from his quiver,
slipped it into the crossbow's groove, and nocked it with a practiced movement of his thumb. Ten. He raised the bow to
his shoulder and took aim, four fingers curled around the crossbow's long trigger. With an
upward slash, Karl knocked the crossbow aside,
the bolt discharging harmlessly overhead. As the bowman reached for the dagger at his belt, Karl speared him through the chest. The sword stuck. Damn. Karl had been in too much of a hurry; he hadn't made sure that the flat of his blade was
parallel to the ground—the damn sword had wedged itself in between two ribs. As Karl tried to jerk it loose,
the blood-slickened hilt twisted out
of his fingers. The limp body of the
bowman slipped from the saddle, carrying Karl's sword with it. He swore,
and— Agony blossomed like
a fiery flower in the middle of Karl's back. His legs went numb and lifeless. As he started to slip from his mare's back, he tried to
hold on to her mane, but a spasm jerked the rough hairs from his fingers. he landed on his side on the hard ground, his
body Profession 27 twisted. From the corner of his eye, he glimpsed the fletching of the
crossbow bolt that projected from his back. He felt
nothing, nothing at all from the waist down. My
spine. Ellegon, help me. Please. No answer. Nothing. Through a red cloud
of pain, he saw the other bowman still his horse's jittery prancing and reload
his crossbow, taking the time to aim carefully. It was the blond boy he had
threatened before. Beyond him, Ahira, Walter, and Riccetti ran across the sun-baked plain,
weapons carried high. But there was no way that they could reach the bowman in
time. The point of the
bolt drew his eyes. Shiny though rust-specked steel, glistening in the ruddy light
of the setting sun. It bore
down on him; the bowstring— —snapped, sending the bolt looping
end over end in the still air. A long red
weal drew itself across the boy's leg; as he lowered his hands to protect
himself from his invisible attacker, he was jerked out of the saddle. He collapsed in a
heap as Walter Slovotsky ran up and took up a position standing over the boy, one knife in each hand. "Go take care of Karl,"
Slovotsky addressed the air. "I'll see to this . . . trash." A staggered line of dust puffs drew itself
across the ground toward where Karl lay. "Easy," Andy-Andy's voice murmured. "Lou has the bottle of
healing draughts. It won't hurt much longer." Gentle, invisible fingers cradled his head. Quietly, she spoke
harsh, awkward syllables that could only be heard and forgotten while Karl watched Lou Riccetti puff
and pant his way across the plain, an ornately
inlaid brass bottle cradled in his arms. And then, as her
dismissal of the invisibility spell began to take effect, the outline of her head appeared, superimposing itself over his view of Riccetti. 28 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN The image solidified: first the brown
eyes, faintly misted with tears. Then, the slightly too-long, slightly bent nose, the high-boned cheeks, and the full
mouth, all framed with the long brown hair that was now touched with red
highlights in the light of the setting sun. Karl had always found Andy-Andy beautiful, but never more so than now. "Andy, my legs—" "You stupid shit."
She slipped an arm under his shoulder and clumsily flipped him over onto his
belly. "Quick, give it here." A cork popped. A wrenching pain forced a scream from his
mouth as the bolt was drawn from his back.
But, horridly, the pain still
vanished in mid-back. He was paralyzed. No. Please God, no. He tried to
talk, but his mouth was as dry as the
Waste. And then a liquid coolness washed the pain
away. It vanished, as though it had never been. "Twitch
your toes, Karl," she commanded. He
tried to. And they moved. He was all there; he felt everything, everything
from the top of his aching head all the way
down to where his right great toe throbbed. Probably sprained it when
I fell. "Thanks." He tried to get his arms underneath him, to push himself to his feet. "That will be enough of that,"
Andy-Andy said. "We're running
short of the healing potion. I had to give you most of it to take care of the hole in
your back. We can't afford to have you swallow any more
just to take care of the shock to
your system. So you just lie there. I've got to go see to the
man that got knocked off his horse." "Don't bother," Ahira said, his
voice a low rasp. "Must've
snapped his neck in the fall. He's dead. Damn." *But,* Ellegon's
voice sounded in Karl's head, *he died free. You gave him that gift. * Wonderful. Tears welled up. He
hadn't done anything right.
He should have listened to Andy-Andy: If he had Profession 29 only waited a few moments, she could
have cast her spell of invisibility on him; the escaped slave would never
have been scared into turning
aside; the bola would have missed. And Karl
would never have been shot, not while he
was invisible. It could have all been done so easily, if only he had waited. And, now, it's all
a waste. *No. It was not.* That's
easy for you to say. Coward. *Listen to me, Karl. He was too far away; I couldn't hear much of his mind as he tried to escape; I
don't even know his name. But I did hear one thing, when he saw you, and mistook you for one of the pursuers. I
heard him thinking, "No—I'd rather die than go back."* And if
I'd waited— *He still would have
died, sometime soon. Perhaps ten years from now, perhaps fifty. No time at all; you humans are so ... ephemeral. But he might not have died
free. Always remember that he died a free man.* And was that so much? *He thought so. What right have you to dispute it?* The dragon's mental voice became gentle. *You've
had a difficult time. Go to sleep now. Lou will rig a travois, and we'll
bring you back up to camp.* But— *Sleep.* Weariness welled up and washed him in a
cool, dark wave. Ahira looked down at the bound form of the
blond bowman and swore softly under his breath. "What the hell are we going to do with this?" The youth didn't
answer; he just stared listlessly at the ground. The dwarf rested his hands on the hilt of
his double-bladed battleaxe. The axe was the simple answer, and probably the
best one. But possibly not. In any case, there
was enough time for a leisurely decision whether or 30 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN not to kill the bowman; with his hands tied
to the roots of an old oak,
he wasn't going anywhere. Walter stooped to
check the knots. "It'll hold him. Do you want me to have Ellegon keep an
eye open?" Ellegon. That was another matter. If that
damned dragon of Karl's hadn't turned coward suddenly— *Two points. I belong
to myself, not to Karl Cullinane, or anyone else. Secondly, I did not suddenly "turn
coward," dwarf. I am a coward, James Michael Finnegan. I have been, for
more than three hundred years.* Don't
call me that. My name is Ahira, *Now it is. And what scares you the most?* "What does that have to do with
anything?" *I will show you, if
you insist. But I suggest you save it for later, Ahira. For the time being, let it
rest that there is one thing that frightens me just as much as the thought of being
crippled James Michael Finnegan frightens you. * Slovotsky chuckled.
"I'd take him at his word, were I you, little friend. You weren't around when
he gave Karl a taste of what
being chained in Pandathaway's cesspit felt
like. Check with Karl before you let him show you." He raised his
head and addressed the air. "Ellegon? Do me
a favor and tune us out; I want a private conversation with the
dwarf." *Very well.* The dragon's mental voice went silent. Slovotsky shook his
head. "Not that I trust him to keep out of our heads. It's just that since he's agreed to, he probably
won't let the cat out of the bag to Karl. Cullinane's going to be a problem." Ahira looked over to
the far side of the meadow. Under a pile of blankets, Karl Cullinane lay
sleeping in the twilight. A
few yards away, Andrea and Lou Riccetti sat talking
quietly. "Cullinane's
going to be a problem," Ahira echoed, as he and Slovotsky walked to the
far edge of the clearing, away from the bound bowman. "Big deal." Slovotsky cocked his head. "You don't think so?" "Cullinane's
the least of my worries, Walter. We've Profession 31 got bigger ones." Ahira jerked his head
at the bound form of the blond bowman. "Like what we're going to do with William Tell here. Or how long we can stay
on the preserve before the Healing Hand
Society kicks us out." He shrugged. "Right now, I'm more
worried about Riccetti. I told him to take
my crossbow. All he ended up doing
was bringing along the healing draughts for after. Not exactly a big
help. If we'd really needed him in the fight, we would all have been in deep
trouble." Ahira pounded his fist against a tree, sending chips of bark flying off into the night. "Don't get so bent out of shape about
Riccetti; you're missing the big problem." Slovotsky laid a hand on his shoulder. "But take it easy. Try and deal
with one thing at a time, as you used to when you were writing computer
programs—just one step, one problem at a time. "Take Riccetti. So what if he wasn't
any good in a fight? Can't blame him. The
rest of us have the abilities we gained in the transfer. I've got this."
With a smooth, flowing motion,
he pulled one of his four throwing knives from the tangle of straps at his hip, caught the tip of the blade
between thumb and forefinger, and threw it at a nearby tree. It quivered as it sank into the trunk five and a half feet above the ground. Slovotsky patted at his hip. "And
while I'm not in Karl's league, if we can
get a sword for me, I could use it reasonably
well. Not to mention my thieving skills." He walked over and pulled the
knife from the tree, taking a moment to clean it on a fold of his blousy
pantaloons before replacing it in its sheath. "You've got your strength,
your darksight, and your skills with crossbow and
battleaxe. Karl's damn good with his sword; Andy-Andy has her spells." "But Riccetti's got nothing."
Lou Riccetti had been a wizard; he had given
up his magic as his part of the payment to the Matriarch of the Healing
Hand Society for bringing Ahira back to
life.
32 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Which means that I'd
be an ungrateful ass if I gave him hell for not getting involved in the fight. If it wasn't for me— No. That wouldn't
do; recriminations wouldn't be any help! The question, as usual, was what to do
next. "Any ideas on what we do with Riccetti?" A shrug. "We hand that problem to
Karl. Let him work it out; he knows more about weapons and martial arts than both
of us put together. For all I know, he might
be able to turn Lou into a decent swordsman, if the two of them work at
it." Slovotsky seated himself on a waist-high boulder. "Leave that
one alone for the time being. As you pointed out, we've got bigger problems
staring us in the face. Like what we're going to do with the bowman there. If we let him go, we're just
asking for trouble. On the other hand, slicing his throat in cold blood doesn't exactly thrill me." "I don't think it matters whether or
not it thrills you. Not if—and I say if—we have to do it. He'll keep for
a while. . . . You were saying I missed the
big problem?" "Yup."
Slovotsky nodded. "Have you taken an inventory of our supplies lately? It's not just that we're down to our last pound of coffee and last fifth of
Johnny Walker—if we don't get some food, and soon, we're going to be
eating bark in a little while." "Good point.
Make a list tonight, and we'll talk it over in the morning, all five—" *Six.* "—all six of
us." He spun around, startled at the interruption. "I thought you agreed to let us talk
privately." *Sorry.* The dragon's mental voice held no
trace whatsoever of sincerity. Tell me, do you give Karl as much trouble
as you do me? *More. I like him better.* Slovotsky threw back
his head and laughed. "I told you he'd eavesdrop." His face grew somber. "But I'm still
worried about Karl. What the hell are we going to do Profession 33 about him? He could easily have gotten
himself killed today, dashing
off like that. And in case you weren't paying
attention, the Matriarch said that she won't help us anymore. Any further deaths are as final as
. . ." He furrowed his brow as he searched for an analogy. "A temporary rate hike from the phone
company?" Ahira suggested. "Right." "As for
Karl," Ahira said, shrugging, "I've got to try to get him to show a
bit of restraint. He has this thing about freeing slaves—and it's already put a
price on our heads. We can't
have him just rushing off and slashing away every
time he sees someone in a collar." Not that Ahira had
any complaint about Karl's feelings; as James Michael Finnegan, Ahira had
been raised in a world where
slavery was generally considered a wrong.
Or, at least, the prerogative of governments, not individuals. But slavery had been
the way of things in this world for millennia; they couldn't change things overnight, no matter what
Karl had promised the Matriarch, as his part
of the payment for Ahira's revivification. *You can
be sure that Karl won't be restrained, Ahira.*
Oh? And why is that? *Mmmm, just call it professional pride.* Walter Slovotsky
nodded. "The dragon's got a point." He rubbed the back of his hand over his eyes and yawned. Ahira clapped
Slovotsky on the arm. "It's been a long day. Ellegon, you keep an eye peeled on the Waste; Walter, I'll take first watch. Go get some sleep;
I'll wake you in a couple of hours. We'll worry about all this tomorrow." "At Tara?" Slovotsky didn't wait
for an answer; he walked off, whistling the theme from Gone with the Wind. CHAPTER TWO: "That Isn't Much, Is It?" We should be careful
to get out of an experience only the wisdom that is in it—and stop there; lest
we be like the cat that sits down on a hot stove lid. She will never sit on a hot stove
lid again—and that is well; but also she will never sit down on a cold one
anymore. —Mark Twain Back when he was in
school, pursuing one of his many majors, Karl Cullinane had avoided the sunrise religiously; he
saw the dawn only accidentally, unintentionally,
through cigarette-smoke-tearing, caffeine-aching eyes after a night spent among a pile of books and papers,
throwing together a last-minute term paper, or cramming for a final exam. Whenever he could, he
arranged his classes—the ones he didn't intend to skip regularly; the others didn't
matter—to
let him sleep as late as he could. Often he rose at the crack of noon. Back then, he could sleep through anything. Seems there've been
some changes, he thought, sitting tailor-fashion beside Andy-Andy's sleeping form, blankets
piled around him as protection against the dawn chill. The sun rose across
the Waste, touching the sky with pink and orange fingers. When he looked at the Waste through half-closed eyes, it was almost beautiful. 34 That Isn't Much, Is It? 35 *I see you're
awake,* the reedy voice sounded in his head. *Finally.* "I'm
awake," he whispered, rubbing at the middle of his back. No pain; none at all. It wasn't
pain that kept him awake. When a distant breeze had wakened him, Karl had been afraid to let himself fall asleep
again; his sleep had been filled with visions of himself as half a person, chopped off at the middle of his stomach.
And nightmares of wading through
unending pools of blood and gore. "Just leave me
alone, Ellegon." He lay back, pillowing his head on his hands. The dragon had deserted him yesterday; Karl felt no inclination to talk to him
now. * You're being very
immature about this, * the dragon said petulantly. "Leave me alone." "What is it,
Karl?" Andy-Andy whispered, her breath warm in his ear. "Nothing. Go back to sleep." He
closed his eyes. "That's what I'm going
to do." *But I have to talk to you.* No. Andy-Andy cuddled
closer, her long brown hair covering his face with airy, silken threads. Karl
put his arms around her and held her to him. He drew in his breath
to sigh, then spent several long seconds trying to spit out her hair without
waking her. God, how I hate mornings. He opened his eyes. Then again . . . Andy-Andy lay sleeping, the blanket's
ragged hem gathered around her neck, her
features even more lovely in repose. Her long lashes, the olive tone of her
skin, the slight bend in her slightly
too-long nose—an inventory of parts
didn't do her justice. Then again, maybe I'm prejudiced. He reached out a hand to pull the blankets down— *And, then again, maybe you should give
both your hormones and your mammary fixation
a rest, and talk to 36 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN me. You don't understand. Maybe I should make you understand. * Don't. Ellegon's mindlink
could carry more than the dragon's phantom voice or images; it could also transmit
feelings,
experiences. And not just pleasant feelings, either. *Will you listen to me, then?* Carefully brushing her hair away, Karl
sighed. Just give me a minute. He untangled himself from Andy-Andy's sprawling limbs and slipped out of the
blankets, taking a moment to slip his
breechclout on, step into his sandals, and strap their laces around his calves.
He eyed his leggings and tunic, debating with early-morning laziness whether or not to put them on now. Later.
After coffee. Absently, he picked up his scabbarded
saber and slipped the belt over his left shoulder, resting his right hand for
just a moment on its sharkskin hilt. Karl had a tendency to lose things, one way or another, but here, in this world, losing his sword could quickly mean
losing his life. Near the downhill edge of the clearing,
Riccetti and Slovotsky slept under their blankets, their snores barely reaching Karl's ears. Beyond them, on a flat stone next to the
smoldering remains of last night's fire, Ahira sat, drinking a cup of coffee,
keeping watch over the sleeping form of the captive bowman. His head turned,
and he lifted an aluminum Sierra cup in a silent invitation. Nodding gratefully, Karl walked down the
gently sloping clearing, the morning dew clutching at his feet with damp,
chilly fingers. That felt good, in a strange way; the clammy cold was a
physical confirmation that his legs weren't
numb. He glanced at the ashes
of the fire as he seated himself on a flat rock, silently accepting a hot cup
of coffee from Ahira. He shook his head. Ahira shouldn't have been so care- That Isn't Much, Is It? 37 less with the fire. Maybe, by adding enough tinder and kindling, they could tease the embers back into a
roaring fire, but maybe not. And
they had only a couple of books of matches left. Once those were gone, the only
way they would have to light fires would be with flint and steel. Which was a pain, no matter how easy his old Boy
Scout manual had made it look. *I imagine it is. But if I were you, I
wouldn't worry about it. Consider for a moment the fact that the fire is dead,
but the coffee is hot.* Beyond a stand of trees, a gout of orange flame roared skyward. * Think it through. * Another blast of fire cut through the
lightening sky. Karl sipped his
coffee. It was just the way he liked it: too sweet for most people to stomach, with
just a touch of creamer.
"Ellegon? Just take it easy on me, please? I don't think all that well in
the morning." Ahira chuckled. "Who does?" He
sobered. "Sleep well?" "No." He looked down at his
right hand. Somebody had washed the blood from it while he slept, but there were
dry, reddish-brown flecks under his nails and in the hairs on the back of his
hand. "Had a few bad dreams." "I
can't feel too sorry for you; I was up all night." "Slovotsky didn't relieve you?" The dwarf shrugged
his improbably broad shoulders. "I didn't wake him. He's going to need
his sleep. You, too —you've
got a long trip ahead of you. We're short of almost every kind of supply, and
somebody's going to have to go into Metreyll
and do some shopping." He furrowed
his heavy brows, peering up at Karl. "And scouting—we've got to
figure out what to do when the armsmen are
missed. To do that, we've got to know what the situation is, in Metreyll.
Yes?" "Not really. We really have a way to
fix things so we don't get blamed: We leave
the dead men where they are, and put a sword in the hand of the dead
slave." / wish I 38 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN knew your name. I'm sorry, whoever you
are, but you don't have any further use for that body. As a decoy, it might help to save our lives. "If anyone comes
around to investigate, he'll have to decide that the slave had turned to fight, driving one off, killing the
other three; their horses just wandered
away." Ahira snorted.
"You do wake up slow—the locals are going to think that an unarmed,
half-starved slave killed three swordsmen?" "As long as
there aren't any other suspects around, they will. Either that, or they'll have to
decide that somebody, for no apparent reason, came from God knows where to the slave's
defense." "Hmm.
That doesn't sound likely." "No, it
doesn't. Happens to be true, that's all. Occam's Razor, Ahira. Most people use it all
the time, even if they can't
tell you what it is." Karl drank some more coffee. "Got another
idea?" "No." "Then
let's give mine a try." "Agreed." The dwarf nodded.
"Andrea, Riccetti, and I will take care of it. We'll keep their horses,
yes?" "Yes." Not
that the poor assortment of fleabags would be of much use. "But there's something
you're missing," Karl said. "We're low on healing draughts. Someone
has to go over to the
tabernacle and see if we can pry some loose.
Besides, I want to see how Doria's doing." Ahira nodded.
"I'll give it a try. Tomorrow. Although . . . the Matriarch did say we're on our own. No more help.
And that could mean—" "That they won't give us any.
Not that they won't sell us some. We do have the coin Walter and I took
off Ohlmin—" *Only because I brought it here. You
abandoned it near the Gate Between Worlds.* Karl ignored the dragon and spoke to
Ahira. "We should be able to meet their price." That Isn't Much, Is It? 39 "You hope. I'll
check it out. And see how Doria is. If I can. You get the Metreyll
shopping trip." "Agreed." Karl stood. "I'd
better go saddle up my horse and get
going." "No."
Ahira shook her head. "Not until dark. You're taking Walter with
you." "I know," Karl said, irritated,
"that you don't know much about horses, but putting two men our size on one isn't good for a horse, even when there's no
hot sun beating down. And we can't
take one of the new horses; they might be recognized. So I'd better ride
in alone, just me and my horse. I like her.
She did good, yesterday." *Meaning
that I didn't.* Exactly. Ahira scowled. "First of all, you're
not taking your horse; Ellegon's going to
fly both of you over tonight, and drop
you off outside Metreyll. I want Walter to go along, to keep an eye on you. You've got a tendency to
get into trouble." He swigged the last of his coffee, then set the
aluminum cup down gently on a flat stone. "As far as Ellegon goes, Karl, I
wish you'd learn to be a bit more patient with the people you care about. "I had a long talk with Ellegon last
night. He had his reasons. Dammit, Karl, that dragon may be more than three
centuries old, but by dragon standards, he's still a baby. You don't expect a
child to do the right thing, not when he's
scared out of his wits." "And what the
hell did he have to be scared about? All those soldiers had were bows and swords. Nothing for him to be
afraid of." *There was so. I'll show you.* "Don't." Karl stood. "Stay
out of my mind." Ellegon had opened his mind to Karl before, letting Karl
feel what it had been like to be chained in a Pandathaway sewer for three centuries. A dragon's mind
couldn't edit out familiar smells the way a human's could. Three 40 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN centuries of stench. . . . "Maybe you
had a good reason. Just tell
me, for God's sake." *Very well, then—* "No." Ahira shook his head slowly. He lowered
his voice. "Karl has to learn not to make snap judgments, Ellegon. It could get any number of us killed.
Show him. Now." Don't— Ellegon
opened his mind . . . . . . and flew. That
was the secret, after all: Alone, his wings weren't strong enough to lift
him; he had to reach inside
and let his inner strength add itself to the lifting power of his fast-beating wings. Slowly, he gained altitude, as he circled
around the craggy vastness of Heiphon's reaches until the ledge where he had been born was far beneath him, the
hardened shards of his shell only vague white flecks, barely discernible. Ellegon worked his
wings more rapidly, until the wind whistled by him. He began to tire, and let the frantic beating of
his wings subside until they barely kept him flying. Then it occurred to him
that if his wings weren't sufficient, possibly they were superfluous; perhaps
his inner strength alone could support him in the air. -So Ellegon curled his
wings inward, and lifted even more with his inner strength. And dropped through the sky like a stone. In a panic, he spread his wings against
the onrush of air and worked them, scooping air from in front and above, whisking it behind and below. For a moment, it
seemed as though his frenzied effort had no effect, but then the craggy peak
slowed its menacing
approach, stopped, and began to fall away. Another lesson
learned, he thought. It seemed that his inner strength couldn't support him all
by itself, either. It would have been nice if there were someone to tell him that, instead of letting him learn by
trial and error. That Isn't Much, Is It? 41 But that is the way
it is for dragons. We have to learn for ourselves. It didn't occur to him to wonder how he knew that, or how he knew
that he was a dragon. A mile below him, a gap in the clouds
loomed invitingly. He eased the frantic
beating of his wings until he started to lose altitude and dropped
slowly through the gap, letting the cottony
floor of clouds become a gray ceiling. Below him, lush greenery spread from
horizon to horizon, broken only by the
brown-and-gray mass of the mountain called Heiphon, a blue expanse of water to
the south, and a dirty brown tracing that wormed its way across the grassland, through the forest. What was that brown
line? It cut across the forest and dirtied the tops of the rolling hills,
sullying the greenery. It had to be unnatural, as though someone or something
had deliberately chosen to make the land ugly. He couldn't understand that. Why would
anyone spend time on the ground soiling the
greenery, when one could fly above
it and enjoy it? Ridiculous. He eased back with his inner
strength, spreading his wings as he glided in for a closer look. There was
something moving on the dirt line. . . . There. A strange sort of
creature, indeed. Six legs and two heads; one head long and brown and sleek, the other pasty flesh only
partly hidden by greasy fur. No, he was wrong. It
was two creatures, not one. Both four-legged, although the smaller one's forelegs were stunted. If
it got down on all fours, its backside would stick
up in the air. No wonder it chose to ride on the back of the other; even
a creature as ugly as that would not want
to look more foolish than necessary. But why did the larger one carry it?
Perhaps the smaller was the larval form, and the larger its parent. He flew closer, and as he did, their minds
opened before him. Ellegon began to understand. The smaller creature was a Rheden Monsterhunter; at
least, that was what its small mind said. And the larger had no choice 42 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN about carrying it; it was compelled to, under threat of leather and steel. Another absurdity.
No matter; Ellegon would end the silliness, by eating them both. As he stooped, the Rheden Monsterhunter's
head snapped up. It reached for a strange contraption: two sticks, one bent,
the other straight. That was a bow and arrow,
but what was dragonbane? The Rheden Monsterhunter pulled back the
arrow, and then released it. The stick flew toward Ellegon. He didn't bother flaming it, and there was
no point in dodging it. He was a dragon, after all; surely this puny stick
couldn't hurt him. Its oily head sank
into his chest, just below the juncture of his long neck. A point of white-hot pain expanded across his torso. Ellegon fell. He crashed through the treetops, branches
snapping under his weight, not slowing his
fall. The ground rushed up and struck him; his whole body burned with a
cold, cruel fire that faded only slowly to
black. When he awoke, a
golden cage surrounded his face; a golden collar clamped tightly around his
neck. He lay on his side on the hard ground, his legs all chained together. Tentatively, he tried to flame the chains,
using just a wisp of the fire of his inner
strength. He screamed as his neck burned. Safely beyond his reach, the Rheden
Monsterhunter stood smiling. "It'll take me some days to rig a cart for
you, dragon. But it will be worth it; they'll pay a fine price for you in
Pandathaway." Karl shook his head, trying to clear it.
So, that was why Ellegon hadn't helped him.
It wasn't really cowardice. It was sheer, unreasoning terror.
Definitely unreasoning; if Ellegon had looked into the bowmen's minds, he would have seen that none of their
arrows were tipped with extract of
dragonbane. Dragons were nearly That Isn't Much, Is It? 43 extinct in the Eren regions; the cultivation of dragonbane was a dying
skill. But he couldn't. As
a young dragon—no, as a child— he had been so badly hurt by that crossbow
bolt that the thought of
facing another dragonbane-tipped arrow chased
all rationality from his mind. The pain of the bolt cleaving through his chest . . . *Yes. It hurt. * Karl looked down at his own chest. A
wicked round weal over his heart stared back
at him like a red eye. *Karl, I'm . . . sorry. I was just so scared.* It hadn't been fair to expect the dragon
to leap to his aid. Ellegon wasn't an
adult, not really. Applying adult standards to him was wrong. The dragon was a
curious mix of infant and ancient: By dragon standards, three and a half
centuries of age put Ellegon barely out of babyhood,
but Ellegon had spent almost all of that time chained in a cesspool in Pandathaway. How do you handle a
child who's frightened? Not by shutting him out of your life; that was
clear. Maybe there wasn't a
hard-and-fast rule, but the answer had to start with listening. Karl nodded. So I'll start listening
now. "It's okay, Ellegon. My fault; I should have known you had your reasons. Are you sure that you're willing to fly
us into— near Metreyll, once it gets dark?'" *I'll try,
Karl. I'll try to do better, next time. I will.* He sighed. "See that you do," he said out loud, while his mind murmured, / know you
will. Ahira
stared up at him, his heavy brow furrowed. The dwarf sat
silently for a moment. "I've written down a shopping list, some of the things we're going to need. All of us had better go over it." "No problem.
Something else on your mind?" Ahira nodded. "What are we going to do about Riccetti?
He's practically helpless in a fight, and I'm willing to bet that we're going to go through more than a couple before this is all over." 44 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Sorry, but
there's no easy solution to that one. As soon as I get back, I'll start him on
swordsmanship. But I can't make a swordsman out of him overnight. At best,
it'll be months before he
develops any kind of proficiency. Mmm . . . he's not left-handed, is he?" "No. Why?" He sighed. "It doesn't matter, then.
Lefties have an edge in swordplay, just as
they do in tennis, back home. The
rest of us aren't used to having the blade come from the other side.
It's—" He stopped himself. Of course. An opponent's unfamiliarity
was a huge advantage; it had helped a
Japanese police society disarm numerous samurai at the end of Japan's feudal
era. But the name of the weapon they
carried—what the hell was it called? It hovered just at the edge of his mind. A
length of chain, weighted down at both
ends— *Manriki-gusari. * Thanks.
But how did you know? *I read
minds, fool.* Ahira laughed. "Get some breakfast.
And take it easy for the rest of the day; you'd better be on your toes in Metreyll. Karl?" "Yes?" "I want your word on something. No
fighting unless it's in self-defense." "Fine." Self-defense was a loose
term, one that could be applied to almost any situation by a sufficiently flexible
mind. "That sounds reasonable." *Hypocrite.* Huh? *You have nightmares about wading through
blood, and then the next day you try to wiggle out of Ahira's suggestion that you not shed more unless you
really have to.* Ellegon— "Excuse me," the dwarf said.
"I wasn't finished. You've been known
to have a liberal imagination; Walter decides what constitutes self-defense, not you." That Isn't Much, Is It? 45 "Understood." "Do I
have your word?" "You're not leaving me a lot of
leeway." Karl sighed. "Yes." "Good." Ahira spread his hands.
"Just stay out of trouble. That's all I'm asking. That isn't much, is
it?" *That, friend Ahira, depends.* CHAPTER THREE: Metreyll I was never attached to that great sect, Whose doctrine is, that each one should select Out of the crowd a mistress or a friend, And all
the rest, though fair and wise, commend To cold
oblivion, though 'tis in the code Of modern morals, and the beaten road Which those poor slaves with weary footsteps tread Who
travel to their home among the dead By the
broad highway of the world, and so With one chained friend, perhaps a jealous foe, The dreariest and the longest journey go. —Percy Bysshe Shelley The preserve was miles behind. Half a mile
below, the Waste of Elrood lay in the starlight, a solid expanse of baked, cracked earth, the blankness
relieved only by an occasional stone
outcropping. Shivering only partly from the cold, Karl
clung to Ellegon's back. The cool night air
whistled by, whipping through his
hair. He looked down and
shuddered. Even if the Waste had not held bad memories, it would still have been unpleasant; a landscape like something out of the
pictures the Apollo astronauts had
brought back, with none of the charm of accomplishment those pictures
carried with them. Behind him, Walter Slovotsky chuckled. "I wouldn't 46 Metreyll 47 worry about it, Karl," he called out, his voice barely
carrying over the rush of wind. "It's an advantage—as long as we're at the preserve, anyone who wants
to give us trouble would have to
cross forty miles of the Waste to do
it." *He has a point, Karl. And, powerful as
they are, I'm willing to bet that the Hand clerics are grateful for that protection. * That was probably true. And it pointed up
one of the troubles in this world: Anytime
you had anything, be it a piece of land, a horse, a sword—even your own
life— you always had to consider the
possibility that someone would try to take it away from you. Just because he wanted it. *And is that so different from your
world?* For a moment, Karl's head felt as
though it were being stroked by
gentle fingers—from inside. Then: *Or don't you consciously recall the
Sudetenland, Lithuania, Wounded Knee, or—* Enough. You made your point. Just leave it at that, eh? But, dammit, there was
a difference. Back home, there was at least an acknowledgment that the strong preying on the weak
was wrong. It was reflected in laws, customs,
and folktales, from fables about Robin Hood to the legends of Wyatt Earp. He chuckled. Well, it was the legend that
counted, anyway. Back when he was majoring in American history, Karl had found
several accounts that suggested that the Earp brothers were just another gang
of hoods, as bad as the Clantons they had gunned down—from ambush—at the O.K. Corral. The Earps had managed
to wangle themselves badges, that was all. And when you think about it, quite
probably Robin Hood robbed the rich to give
to himself. Which made sense; in
the holdup business, robbing the poor had to be easier than robbing the rich—but it was bound to be financially unrewarding.
48 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN *That's why they
call them "the poor," Karl. If it was rewarding to rob them, they
probably would be known as "the rich." * Funny. *Only to
those with a sense of humor.* The boundary of the Waste loomed ahead, a
knife-sharp break between the scarred ground
and the forested land beyond. In the starlight, the huge oaks would
normally have seemed to be threatening hulks, but by comparison with the Waste,
their dark masses were somehow contorting. You don't have to go any farther. Set us
down anywhere near here. *Just a short way.* Ellegon's flight
slowed. *Let me put you a bit closer; this way, you won't have so far to walk.* Why the sudden concern for my sore feet? *l have my reasons,* the
dragon responded, with a bit of
a mental sniff. *But since you're so eager to be on foot . . .* The dragon circled a clearing among the
tall trees, then braked to a safe, if bumpy, landing. Karl vaulted from Ellegon's back, landing
lightly on the rocky ground. Reflexively,
he slipped his right hand to his swordhilt as he peered into the night. Nothing. Just trees in the dark, and a
mostly overgrown path leading, he hoped, toward Metreyll. Walter climbed down
to stand beside him. "My guess is that we're about five miles out," he
said, helping Karl to slip
his arms into the straps of a rucksack. "We could camp here and walk into town in the morning, I
guess," Walter said, frowning. He brightened. "Or maybe we
should just walk in now." Karl slipped his thumbs under the
rucksack's straps. "Do I get two
guesses which you'd rather do?" *Be safe. Take three.* "Well?"
Slovotsky jerked a thumb toward a path. "Why not?" Ellegon, you'd better get going. But do me Metreyll 49 a favor: Circle overhead, and see if the path leads to
the Metreyll road. *I didn't set you down here by accident,
fool. Of course it does.* As Karl and Walter moved away, the
dragon's wings began moving, .beating until
they were only a blur in the darkness, sending dust and leaves swirling
into the air. Ellegon sprang skyward and
slipped away into the night, his outline momentarily visible against the
glimmer of the overhead stars. *Be careful,* he said, his mental voice barely audible. And then he was gone. "Let's
walk," Karl said. They walked in silence for a few minutes,
carefully picking their way along the dirt path through the trees. Finally, Walter spoke. "I've
got a suggestion, if you don't mind." "Yes?" "Look, this is just a supply
trip." Slovotsky patted at the leather pouch dangling from his belt.
"Right?" "You have a keen
eye for the obvious." Karl shrugged. "What's your point?" "Hmm, let me put
it this way: I'm not going to take the chance of lifting anything. Granted, as long as we're based in the sanctuary, we've got a nice buffer
zone between Metreyll and the Waste, but there's no need to push it. We
don't want to get the locals angry at us. Too risky." "Fine. So you're not going to use
your skills." That made sense. There was enough to do in Metreyll, and with all the coin they had, money wouldn't be a
problem for a long while. They had to buy provisions and supplies, as well as some hardware. And weapons; the
party was short of spares. "That wasn't what I meant."
Walter ducked under an overhanging branch,
then made a show of holding it out of the way so that Karl could pass. Sometimes,
it seemed as though Walter made too
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN much of Kail's being larger than he was. Then again, maybe that was understandable; Slovotsky had long
been accustomed to being the biggest man in almost any group. "What
I meant," Slovotsky went on, "is that you have "So?" "So we give
Metreyll a bye. No interfering with local . . . customs, no matter how repugnant. At least for the time being. My guess is there's still a reward out
for you in Pandathaway. We don't want reports getting back there about
your still being alive." "Thanks
for your tender concern about my health." Slovotsky snorted. "And thank you for
the sarcasm. I don't particularly care if
you believe it, but I am worried about you. As well as me. If you
start swinging that sword in Metreyll, we're both in deep trouble." "Walter, where
did you get the idea that I'm some sort of bloodthirsty monster?" "Mmm . . .
yesterday was kind of a clue." He held up a hand to forestall KarPs objection. "Okay, that was a
cheap shot. Look—I'm not saying that you really enjoy slicing open someone's
gut. With the exception of the time we
killed Ohlmin and his men, I don't think you've ever liked violence. "But it doesn't bother you the way it
used to. What it comes down to, Karl, is
something you said in Pandathaway,
after you freed Ellegon. Something about if what you're doing is
important enough, you worry about the consequences
later." "Wait—" "No, you wait. Slovotsky's Law Number
Seventeen: Thou shalt always consider the consequences of thy actions.
You could make a lot of trouble for all of us, if you don't keep your head
on." Metreyll - 51 He understood
Walter's point. And it did make a kind of sense; the time he had freed Ellegon had
cost them all much. But to commit himself not to do anything about people in
chains . . . Karl shrugged.
"I gave Ahira my word. Just leave it at that." Walter sighed deeply.
"Unless I can convince you that I'm right, I wouldn't trust your reflexes,
Karl. I've seen the way you clap your hand to your sword whenever you're irritated
about anything. When you know there's no reason to cut someone up, you're safe to
be around, granted; I'm not worried about your stabbing me if I don't put enough
sugar in your coffee. . . . The trouble is, you're thinking as if you were the only one
who can suffer from your actions, dammit." "You sound scared." "I am."
Walter snorted. "Not just for my own tender hide. I didn't want to tell
you this, but . . . Ellegon told me something, on our way over; he tuned you out. Wasn't sure whether you should know or not. He
left it up to me whether and when to clue you in." "And what's this great secret?" "Well, you know
his nose is more sensitive than ours." Walter shook his head slowly.
"It must have made it hell for him in the sewers. But the point is, he
can pick up on things that you and I can't. Even things that a medical lab back home would
have trouble with. Slight biochemical changes, for instance. Hormones, like
that." A cold chill washed
across Karl's back. "Whose biochemical changes?" "Andrea's.
Nobody knows it but you, me, and Ellegon, Karl. She's pregnant, although only a couple
of day's worth.
I guess congratulations are in order, no?" Ohgod. "You're
lying." He turned to face Slovotsky. "Aren't you?" "Nope. Now, did
that drive the point home? If you screw up, you're not just endangering you and
me—and Andy,
for that matter. You get yourself killed or put the
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN rest of us on another wanted list, and you're putting an unborn child's life in danger. Yours."
Slovotsky snorted. "So are you still interested in playing Lone Ranger
right away? If you call me Tonto, I swear I'll stick a knife in you." His head
spun. A baby? "Karl, you—" "Okay. You made your point." I'm going to
be a father. He rubbed his knuckles against the side of his head. There's
going to be a baby depending on me. "Hope so."
Slovotsky said solemnly. Brightening, he clapped a hand to Karl's shoulder. "Hey, can I be the godfather?" "Shut up." Slovotsky chuckled. "You want what?" The blacksmith
turned from his forge, bringing the redly
glowing piece of metal over to his anvil, holding it easily with the
long wroughi-iron pincers. He picked up his
hammer and gave the hot metal a few tentative blows before settling down to
pounding it in earnest. Wary of flying
sparks, Karl moved a few feet back. "I want a length of chain," he said in
Erendra, "about this long." He held his hands about three feet apart.
"With an iron weight on either end—those should be cylindrical, about half the size
of my fist. If you can do that sort of thing." "It wouldn't be
difficult," the smith said, returning his worked iron to the forge. "I can have that for you by noon, if you're in a hurry." Sweat running in
rivulets down his face and into his sparse red beard, he pumped the bellows for a few moments before
pausing to take a dipperful of water from an oaken barrel. The smith drank
deeply, clearly relishing every swallow. He took a second dipperful, tilted his head back, and slowly poured the water
onto his Metreyll 53 upturned
face, then shook his head to clear the water from
his eyes. "What do you want it for?" he
asked, offering Karl a dipperful of water
with a gesture of his hand and a raised eyebrow. "Religious artifact." Karl
accepted the dipper and drank. "I'm an apostle of the metal god." The smith cocked his head. "There isn't a metal god." "Then
I'm probably not one of his apostles." The smith threw back his head and laughed.
"And Teerhnus is liable to get his
proud nose cut off if he puts it where
it doesn't belong, eh? Very well, have it your way. Now, as to the price—" "We're not done yet. I'll want two of
them. And I'll also want to buy some of your
other equipment. I'll need ...
a general-purpose anvil, some basic
tools—hammer, tongs—and a hundred-weight of rod, sheet, and bar stock, a bit of—" The smith snorted.
"Granted, there is enough work for another smith in Metreyll, but you don't look the type." He
set his hammer down and reached out, taking Karl's right hand in both of his.
"From this ridge of callus I'd say you've spent much time with that sword
in your hand, but none with a hammer. And you're
too old to apprentice." Karl drew his hand
back. "It's for a friend. Now, what sort of coin are we talking about for all
this?" It was hard to
concentrate on the transaction with the back of his mind shouting, A father—I'm going to be a father! Teerhnus shook his
head. "You don't know what you're talking about." He gestured at the
seven different anvils scattered around the shop, each mounted on its own tree-trunk stand. They
ranged dramatically in size and shape, from a tiny one that couldn't have weighed more than thirty pounds to an immense, almost cubical
monster of an anvil that Karl
probably couldn't have lifted. "Even a brainless farrier needs at least two anvils to do any kind
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN of work at all. If your friend wants to be
able to do more than shoe horses, he'll need at least three. And I'll need quite a bit of coin
for each. Damn, but it's a pain to cast a new anvil. You are planning to travel
with them?" He peered at Karl from under heavy brows. "I'd be a
fool to help
you set up a friend of yours in competition with me, no matter what the
price." Karl shook his head.
"That's not what I'm planning to do. I swear it." The smith nodded. "On your sword, if you please." Karl slowly
drew his sword, then balanced the flat of the blade on his outstretched palms.
"What I have sworn is true." The smith shrugged.
"I guess that settles it. Nice piece of workmanship, that sword. Are those
Sciforth markings?" "I don't know. Would you like to
see it?" "Of course." Teerhnus accepted the hilt in his huge hands. He held the
sword carefully, stroking a rough thumbnail along the edge. "Very sharp.
Holds the edge well, I'll wager." He flicked the blade with his finger, smiling at the clear
ting! "No," he answered his own question, "that's not a Sciforth
blade. They make good steel in Sciforth, but not this fine. Could be Endell, I
suppose;
those dwarves know their alloys." He rummaged around in a wooden bin until he
found a soft wool cloth, then
handed sword and cloth to Karl. "Where
did you get it?" Karl shrugged as he
used the cloth to wipe the blade; he replaced his sword in its scabbard. He
couldn't answer honestly; the smith wouldn't believe him. Or possibly worse, he might. Back home, on the Other
Side, the sword had been a skinning knife;
it had translated well. "I just
found it somewhere." Better an evasion than to be caught in a lie. "Now, when can you have the
anvils and such ready?" "Hmmm . . . you're planning to be in Metreyll long?" "Not past sunset. I'm en route to . .
." Visualizing MetreyU 55 Ahira's map of the Eren regions, he picked a city at random. "... Aeryk. I plan to be out of
Metreyll by nightfall." "Can't be
done." The smith shook his head. "I do have work to do. I could
spare some rod stock, I suppose, but I don't have any spare hammers, and casting
anvils is just too much
trouble to bother with." Karl produced a pair of platinum coins,
holding one between thumb and forefinger.
The obverse showed the bust of a bearded man, the reverse a stylistic rippling
of waves. "Are you sure?" "Pandathaway
coin, eh?" The smith spread his palms. "Well. . . those two are fine as a down payment, but I'll need six more on delivery." "This is platinum, after all—and
Pandathaway coin, at that. I thought you'd be happy to take these two, and give me some gold back, as well as the iron." "I doubt that." The smith grinned.
"I wouldn't call that thinking at all. Let's agree on seven platinum, and
we'll both be happy." The money wasn't really a problem, but
there was no need for Karl to draw attention
to himself by seeming to have too free a purse. "Three. And you will give
me five gold back. Pandathaway coin, not this debased Metreyll coinage." "Six platinum and six gold. And you
will stay in Metreyll, along with your strong back, long enough to help me cast three new anvils." Karl sighed, and
resigned himself to a long bargaining session. "Four . . ." Five pieces of
platinum, six of gold, four of silver, and a bent copper poorer, Karl waited for Walter Slovotsky in the town
square, near the lord's palace. Metreyll was laid out differently than the
other cities they had seen. Unlike Lundeyll, the city itself had no protecting walls. Unlike Pandathaway, it was both
landlocked and apparently
unplanned; MetreylFs streets 56 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN radiated out from the central palace like a misshapen web, woven by a demented spider. Although calling it a palace might have
been too generous an assessment: It was a cluster of nine two-storied sandstone buildings, surrounded by narrow,
crumbling ramparts. The raised portcullis showed its age: The timbers were splintering, the pulley
chains and spikes so rusty that it was clear that the portcullis was lowered rarely if ever. Two mail-clad guardsmen at the gate eyed
him casually as they sat on three-legged
stools, their spears propped up against the wall nearby, but well out of
reach. Karl nodded to
himself. Ill-kept, unattended defenses were a clear sign that Metreyll hadn't known
warfare for a while, and the lack of challenge from the bored guardsmen meant that the
locals were used to the presence of strangers. "Are you going to sleep just standing there?" Squinting in the
bright sunlight, Walter smiled down at him from the bench of the half-filled
flatbed wagon. "You'll
be glad to hear that beef is cheap—seems the ranchers had too good a year. I
picked up about four hundred pounds of
jerky for a song." He snorted. "Not exactly 'This Way to Cheap Street,' but a song." He set the brake and dismounted, patting
the two hitched mules in passing.
"Although horseflesh—even muleflesh—is afc a premium. I
bought a stallion and another gelding—the
hostler will hang on to them until dark—but they set me back a nice
piece of change. Apparently it's going to be
another bumper crop of cattle this year, and the tributary ranchers are
paving nice prices for labor—all kinds of
labor." Karl smiled as he
took off his rucksack and tossed it into the wagon. "I almost wish we needed
a bit of money. When I was a kid, I fully intended to be a cowboy." He shrugged.
"Maybe we could look into all of us hiring out as hands, anyway. Just for a while."
Of course, they Metreyll 57 would have to figure out how to keep Ellegon out of sight. No, that probably
wouldn't do. He had responsibilities now. Fulfilling childhood fantasies was something he would have to set aside. Walter shook his
head. "I don't think that's such a good idea. All the hiring is for a
cattle drive—and guess where that's headed." "Pandathaway?" Slovotsky nodded.
" 'Everything comes to Pandathaway'—except us, I hope. I doubt they go
easy on felons' accomplices." "Good point. So you keep your eyes open, too." "They never close, Karl. Now, how'd
you do at the smith's?" "Fine, I guess.
Although he struck a hard deal. Come to think of it, I probably was taken. But he
did throw in a couple of used swords." He shrugged. "In any case, we can
pick up that gear at sunset, too. West end of town." He eyed the noon sun.
"Any ideas on what we should do until then?" Slovotsky raised an
eyebrow. "Joy Street? Or whatever they call it. It's down this way—" He held up a palm. "You don't absolutely have to cheat on
Andy, you know. Just a few beers,
while I see what's available. Prisoner of my hormones, I am." Karl laughed. "Why not? I could use a
beer." He boosted himself to the bed of
the wagon and sprawled on a sack of
grain. "You drive." The unpaved street
twisted gently through the markets,
past a drab tarpaulin where a sweaty grain seller
hawked his muslin sacks of oats and barley, a ramshackle corral where a well-fleshed hostler
groomed his tattered assortment of swaybacked mares and half-lame geldings, an open-air workbench where a squinting
leatherworker and a bewhiskered swordsman haggled angrily over the price of a fore-and-aft peaked
saddle. Wagons
creaked through the street, as farmers and
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN their slaves brought sacked grain and caged chickens to market.
Some wagons were drawn by dusty mules, or slowly plodding oxen; others were
handcarts, pulled by slaves. Karl gripped his sword. He fondled the
sharkskin hilt for a moment, then sighed and let his hand drop. Damn Walter
for being right. This wasn't the time or place to get involved in a swordfight.
And besides, I can't solve the problem
by chopping up everyone who owns a slave. That just wouldn't do it. That thought didn't
make him feel any better. "Goddammit." "Just keep cool," Slovotsky
whispered, urging the mules on. The street widened as
the slave market came into view. Surrounded by a hundred bidders and
spectators, a noisy auction
proceeded in front of a boxlike wagon bearing the
wave-and-chain insignia of the Pandathaway Slavers' Guild. The auctioneer accepted a handful of coins
from a farmer, then, smilingly, snapped the farmer's chains around the wrists of a skinny, bearded slave
before removing his own chains. "You should have no difficulty with
this one; he has been well tamed," the auctioneer said, as the farmer looped a hemp rope around the slave's neck. As the slave was led away, Karl shuddered at
the old scars that crisscrossed his back. Well tamed . . . "Easy,
Karl," Walter whispered. "There's nothing you can do about it." One of the slavers brought the next slave out of the wagon.
This slave was a short, dark man in a filthy cotton loincloth. His whip scars
were fresh; livid red weals were spattered
randomly over his hairy torso and legs.
Lines around the edge of his mouth and eyes suggested that he used to smile
often. But he wasn't smiling now; chained at his neck, wrists, and
ankles, he stared sullenly out at the crowd. A cold chill ran up Karl's spine. "Walter, I know him." Metreyll 59 "No
kidding?" Slovotsky's expression belied his calm tone; he looked as if he
had been slapped. "The Games in
Pandathaway—he was my first opponent. Took him out in a few seconds." This was horrible.
An expectant father had no business risking his own life, forgetting the danger
to the others, but this man
was somebody Karl knew. Not a close friend, granted; he didn't even know
the other's name. But someone he knew,
nonetheless. He turned to Slovotsky. The thief shook his
head. "Karl, do us both a favor and get that expression the hell off your face.
You're starting to draw
stares." He lowered his voice. "That's better. We're just a couple of
travelers, chatting idly about the weather and the price of flesh, got it? I
don't know exactly what harebrained scheme
you're working on, but we're not going to do it. No way. Remember, you
gave Ahira your word." "Walter—" Slovotsky raised his
palm. "But this isn't the time to put your honor to the test. We've got
plenty of coin. We'll bid on him. Sit tight for a moment." Tossing the reins to Karl,
he vaulted from the wagon and moved into the crowd. The bidding was
stiff; several of the local farmers and ranchers forced the price from the initial
twelve gold up to more than two platinum. The most persistent, a stocky man in a sweatstained
cotton tunic, followed each of his bids with a glare at Slovotsky, as though
challenging him to go on.
When the bidding topped two platinum, the stocky
man threw up his hands and stalked off, muttering vague curses under his breath. Finally, the
auctioneer raised the twig above his head, holding it delicately between his thumbs and
forefingers. "Will anyone challenge the price of
two platinum, three gold for this man?" he asked the crowd in a practiced singsong. "A worthy, well-mannered
slave, no doubt useful both in the
field and as breeding stock. Both 60 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN he and his sons will work hard, and require little food. No? I ask again, and again, and—" He snapped
the twig. "The slave is sold;
the bargain is made." He nodded down at
Slovotsky. "Do you want to claim him now? Very well. No chains? Two silvers
for the ones he wears, if you want them. I'd advise it; this one hasn't quite been broken to his collar. Yet. And
watch the teeth—he's nasty." Walter reached into his pouch and handed
over the money, accepting the slave's leash and an iron key in return. A few cuffs and curses moved the man down
the platform's steps and over to the wagon. The slave's eyes widened as he saw Karl.
"You're Kharl—" Slovotsky backhanded
him across the face, then drew one of his knives. "Keep your tongue still if you
want it to stay in your mouth." The point of his knife touching the smaller man's neck, he urged him onto the
back of the wagon. The auctioneer smiled in
encouragement before calling for the next slave to be sold. "Just keep
quiet," Karl whispered. "And relax. Everything's going to be
fine." "But—" "Shh." With a clatter, the wagon
began to move. "I know a smith on the edge of town. We have to make a stop first, but we'll have the collar off you in
just a little while. Just be patient." "You mean—" "He means
you're free," Walter said, giving a flick to the reins. "It just won't show quite
yet." The little man's mouth pursed, as though
he were bracing himself for a slap. Then he shook his head, puzzled. "You
mean that, Kharlkuhlinayn." It was half an
unbelieved statement, half a terrified question. At Karl's nod, his
face grew somber. And then his gap-toothed mouth broke into a smile. A special
sort of smile. Karl didn't say anything. Nobody else
would have understood how beautiful that
smile was. Metreyll 61 Unless they had seen
it on the face of someone they loved. Or in a mirror. "Ch'akresarkandyn
ip Katharhdn," the little man said, as he sat on a sack of wheat in the bed of the wagon, rubbing at the lesions left by his chains. The
sores were infected, oozing a hideous
green pus in several places. Undoubtedly,
his wrists and ankles ached dreadfully, but the light rubbing was all he allowed himself. "It's not so hard to pronounce, not as difficult as
Kharlkuhlinayn." "Call me Karl." "You can call me
Chak, if you'd like. You can call me whatever you want." Chak nodded slowly.
"I owe you, Kharl. I don't understand why you freed me, but I owe you." Walter chuckled.
"So your only objection to slavery is when you're the slave." Chak's brow furrowed. "Of course.
It's the way of things. Although . . ."he shook his head. "There's
times when it turns my stomach. Then again, it doesn't take much to turn my
stomach. I'm a Katharhd; we've got delicate
digestion." "What happened
to you?" Karl asked. "When we met, you were living off your winnings
in the Games, but—" "You put an end
to that, Karl Cullinane, and I've spent many an hour cursing your name. When you
knocked me out of the first
round, I was down to my last couple of coppers. Fool that I was, I signed with
this shifty-eyed Therranji; said he was taking on guardsmen for Lord Khoral. Damn elves can't help lying. "In any case,
fourteen of us rode out of Pandathaway. Took a while until we were past Aeryk and clear of the trade
routes. One night, we camped and had dinner— with an extra ration of wine.
Spiked wine; we all woke up in chains, got
sold off in small lots. Seems the Therranji
was a clandestine member of the Slavers' Guild, not a recruiter for
Khoral." Chak shrugged. "He was just 62 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN trying to get us clear of Pandathaway. That
way, chaining us wouldn't bring the Guilds Council down on him for ruining the
damn city's reputation as a safe place to be." His eyes grew vague. "Not that it'll stay safe for him." A clattering came
from around the bend, accompanied by a distant snorting and whinnying of
horses. Chak's nostrils flared. "I know that
bloody mare's whining. It's the wagon of my
former owners." His right hand
hovered around the left side of his waist. "Wish I had a
sword." He eyed the two scabbarded weapons lying on bed of the wagon. "Would you be willing to lend me one?" Karl nodded. "Sure." "No." Walter shook his head. "We don't want
any trouble. Karl, give him your tunic. I
don't want them to see Chak out of
his chains; we don't need loose talk about two strangers who bought and freed a slave." Karl shook his head. "I never gave my
word about not—" "Karl. It comes
down to the same thing. Now, is your word good, or not? Give him your tunic,
please." Nodding slowly, Karl complied. "Just
sit tight for a moment." He tossed the
tunic to Chak, who slipped it on without
comment, although the hem fell well below his knees. Chak sat down, tucking a loose blanket around his legs to
hide that, and began a careful study of the contents
of a muslin sack. Karl snatched the rapier from the bed of
the wagon and tossed it to Walter. Slovotsky raised an
eyebrow; Karl shook his head. "I'm not looking for trouble," Karl said.
"But slip this on anyway. We don't need to look helpless, do we?" "Well ..." Walter conceded the point, belting the rapier around his waist. "Let's look
busy." Karl jumped down from
the wagon and busied himself with offering bowls of water to the mules, while Walter checked the leads of
the trailing horses. Metreyll 63 The slavers' wagon
passed without incident, although the two slavers riding beside it gave
practiced glances at Karl's
and Walter's swords. Karl nodded grimly; when the smith had agreed to throw in
a pair of swords, Karl had deliberately picked a slim rapier for Walter, one
with a well-worn, sweat-browned bone hilt. Since Slovotsky wasn't good with a
blade, it had seemed a sound precaution to
pick a weapon that advertised a nonexistent
expertise. Several grimy faces peered out through the
barred windows of the boxy slave wagon. Chak kept his face turned away, although he couldn't resist sneaking
a peek. As the wagon pulled away, he sighed.
"Damn." The word was the same in
Erendra as in English, something Karl
occasionally wondered about. Karl took his hand
off the pommel of his sword. Walter and Ahira were right; they couldn't afford
to draw attention to themselves here and now. But ..." But that doesn't excuse it. Walter peered into his face. "I'm
sorry, Karl." He spread his palms.
"Slovotsky's Law Number Nine: Sometimes, you can't do anything
about something that sucks." He sighed. "No matter how much it
sucks," he murmured. Chak was already
pulling off Karl's tunic. "That child is what bothers me. Just too
young." Karl raised an eyebrow as he slipped on the tunic. "She's only eleven or so. But
Orhmyst—he's the master; the rest are just barely journeymen—likes his women young. Says they're more fun. He's had this
one for better than a year, ever
since he raided Melawei; kept chattering
about keeping her, even after they get to Pan-dathaway. Said she wouldn't bring much coin, compared with the pleasure." Karl's
heart thudded. "What?" Walter's face whitened. "He's raping
an eleven-year-old girl?" Chak
rubbed at the back of his neck. "Every night. 64 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN And she spends her days whimpering, and begging for some
healing draughts to stanch her bleeding; Orhmyst isn't gentle." Chak pounded his fist against the bed of the wagon. "In the Katharhd Domains, we'd cut off
his balls for that, and not worry
about whether the girl was slave or free." "Walter,"
Karl said, "we can't—" "Shut up, dammit. Give me a
minute." Slovotsky brought his fist to his mouth and chewed on his fingers
for a long moment. Then he threw up his hands.
"Cullinane, if it were possible that
you set this up ... never mind." He glared at Karl.
"You remember what I was saying, about how you sometimes can't do anything about some things that suck?" Karl nodded slowly. "Well, you can just forget it.
Sometimes I don't have the slightest idea of what I'm talking about—" "We
agree on something, at least." "—but for now, how do you want to
handle this? You're the tactician, not me." "I promised
Ahira I wouldn't get in any fights, unless it was a matter of self-defense." He chuckled, knowing what Walter was going to say. "And you also
agreed that I'd decide what constitutes self-defense. This does." Walter flashed a weak grin.
"We'll work out an appropriate rationalization later. Tactics are your
department: How are we going to do it?" Karl smiled.
"We'll follow them, but lag behind. Until it gets dark. Then you get the pleasure of skulking around, doing a nice, quiet recon." He
turned to the little man. "Do
you want in on this? You can have a share of their coin." Chak shrugged.
"I wouldn't mind. Always could use a bit of extra coin. Particularly," he said, patting at a
phantom pouch, "now." He took the other sword from the wagon and drew
it partway out of the scabbard. It Metreyll 65 was a wide, single-edged blade, more of a
falchion than anything else.
Chak nodded. "As long as my share includes
this, it might be worth it." Karl raised an
eyebrow. "And maybe you've a score to settle with these folks?" "That too." Chak smiled grimly.
"There's always that." Karl sat back
against the base of a towering pine, his sword balanced across his lap.
Deliberately, he twisted the
chain of the manriki-gusari between his fingers. It helped to keep his hands from shaking. Overhead, the
branches and pine needles rustled in the wind, momentarily revealing, then hiding the
flickering stars. A cool breeze blew from the west, sending a shiver across his chest. Half a mile down the
road, almost hidden by a stand of trees, a campfire burned, sending gouts of sparkling ashes soaring into the night
sky. Chak grunted. "That friend of yours
is taking too long," he whispered.
"Probably tripped over his feet. Got himself killed." He tested the edge of his falchion's blade, then
sucked at the cut on his thumb for the twentieth time. At least. "Good blade." Karl shook his head.
"No, we would have heard something." "We would have heard that it's a good blade? Truly?" "No, if he'd
gotten into trouble—" Karl stopped himself, then gave Chak a sideways look. The little man's face was a
caricature of puzzlement. "Seems you're getting
your sense of humor back." Chak smiled. "I always joke before a
fight. Helps to steady the nerves. Now, my father, he always used to drink. Claimed it sharpened his eye, tightened his
wrist. And it did, at that." "Oh." Karl was skeptical; he let it show in his voice. A snort. "Until
the last time, of course. His wrist was so tight it was still straight as an arrow after a dwarf chopped his
arm off." He bit his lip for a moment. 66 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Which is why I don't drink
before a fight—joking keeps the
arm looser." He looked over at Karl. "Now that you know all about me, tell me where you're from. The
name is unfamiliar, although you look
a bit like a Salke. A tall Salke, but they do grow them high." Karl shook his head.
"It's kind of complicated. Perhaps I'll go into it sometime." "As you wish." Chak took one end
of the manriki-gusari. "But you will
tell me about this metal bola you're holding. Please? Never seen one
like that before; doubt even you can throw it far." "You don't throw
it, usually. And as to what it can do, I suspect I'll have a chance to show you, in a while." "Damn
sure of yourself, Kharl." "Of
course." He smiled genially at Chak as he knitted his fingers together to
keep them from shaking. In fact, it's all I can do to keep my sphincters under
control. But he couldn't say that. "We were talking about that valley of yours." "Not mine. Not
really; I just passed through it once. But it is pretty. And not occupied, as far as
I was able to tell. At least,
not as of a few years ago. It's just too far away from any civilization; if
anyone wanted to settle there, he'd have to travel for ten, twenty days to get
to the nearest cleric. And since it's in Therranj, it'd be a bitch for humans to do business. Damn elves'll
take you, every time." "But people could live there." "Sure." The
little man shrugged. "Like I said, if they were willing to do without civilized
necessities. I'm—" "Making far too much noise," a
voice hissed, from somewhere in the
darkness. Karl leaped to his feet, his sword in one
hand, the manriki-gusari in the other. Walter Slovotsky chuckled as he stepped
from the shadows. "Relax. It's just your friendly neighborhood thief." Karl quelled an urge to hit him. Dammit, he had asked Mdtreyll 67 Walter,
more than once, not to sneak up on him. And Walter was usually good about it. Just
nerves, I guess. "How
are they set up?" Slovotsky squatted and picked up a twig.
"This is the wagon," he said, making an X on the ground. "The road runs here." He drew a
gentle arc to the left of the X. "Campfire here,
on our side of the wagon; throws light on our side of the road. Chak, there are four of them, no?" "Yes." "Well, I could
only see three. One's on watch on top of the wagon, a bottle of wine and a cocked crossbow to keep him
company. There's a huge one sleeping on our side of the fire—he's got a bow,
which isn't cocked." Slovotsky
shrugged. "But he's sleeping with his sword in his hand. The third
one's in a hammock strung up here, between
two trees." He spat on the ground. "Couldn't find
the fourth. He could be out in the brush relieving himself, but if he is, he's
either got the runs or is constipated as hell. I gave him plenty of time to show up; no sign." "Maybe he's in the wagon?" Walter
shrugged. "Could be." Chak shook his head.
"They don't sleep in the wagons. Too dangerous. And if one of them was with
the women, you would have
heard. They don't use gags. But I wouldn't
worry about it; they've only got the two bows, and we've accounted for those. As soon as the fight starts, the
fourth one will pop up, and we'll cut him down." "So?" Walter asked. "How do we do it?" Karl stood. "We'll play it as.we did
with Ohlmin and his friends, with a bit of the way we handled Deighton thrown
in. Conceal yourself close to the wagon—close enough to be sure you can get the
watchman with your knife—and wait. Chak and I will work ourselves in, as close
as we can. Give us plenty of time to get into position,
then start things off by throwing a knife, taking 68 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN the watchman out. That'll be the signal for Chak and me." "Fine," Walter said. "But
we don't know what their watch schedule is.
What if they switch off before we get there?" "Good point. If all they do is change places, don't
worry about it; just take out whichever one is on the wagon. On the other hand,
if the crossbow moves from the wagon, or if
the slaver by the fire cocks his bow, we'll need to know that before we take them. If that happens, just
slip away; when enough time has passed and Chak and I haven't heard anything,
we'll head back here, rethink the attack, and try again." He turned to Chak.
"You kill the one in the hammock. I'll take the one by the fire." The little man
nodded. "Should be easy. What do I do after?" "Just grab one of their bows, see if
you can find the fourth one. Or help me, if I'm in trouble." "Walter, when
you take the watchman out, try for the chest—but any good disable is fine. Don't
expose yourself to go in for the kill; as soon as you get the watchman, look for the fourth man." He clapped a hand to
Walter's shoulder. "Remember, football hero, you're free safety. We've got to be damn sure we get them all; if one of the bastards
escapes, we're in deep trouble. We don't need for word to get back to
Pandathaway that Fm still alive." Walter's mouth quirked into a smile.
"Bloodthirsty, aren't we?" "You got any goddam objection?" "That
wasn't an accusation. I did say we, after all." CHAPTER FOUR: On the Aeryk Road Those who know how to win are far more
numerous than those who know how to make
proper use of their victories. —Polybius Walter Slovotsky crouched in the tall
grasses surrounding a huge oak, his belly hugging the ground, one of his
four teak-handled throwing knives in his right hand. His palm concealed the blade; a reflection from the
steel could alert his target, twenty yards away. Beyond the boxy slave wagon with the
sleepy-eyed guard sitting cross-legged on its flat roof, the campfire burned an orange rift into the night. From where
he lay, Walter couldn't see beyond
the wagon to where Karl and Chak
were— —should be, he reminded himself. Should
be. They were supposed to have moved
silently into place by now, but
Walter had long ago learned that things didn't go the way they should
around Karl. Not that things always went
badly, just differently. Too bloody much of the time. He slipped his thumb along the cool
slickness of the blade and decided to wait just a few more minutes, to make sure they had gotten to the right places. This had to work just right. If it didn't, the
fact that Karl was still alive would soon be common knowledge, even if a surviving
slaver caught
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN only a glimpse of him. No other men six and a half feet tall made a habit of taking on slavers on the
trade routes of the Eren regions. Come to think of it, no shorter men got
into that habit; the Pandathaway guilds had long made that an ill-advised profession to get into. So why the hell am I in this?
Not because of some eleven-year-old girl
I've never even laid eyes on. It was because of goddam Karl Cullinane.
As usual. Walter could have tolerated knowing that somewhere, some little girl was being mistreated, even raped.
People were being mistreated everywhere; cutting the number by one or
two wasn't going to change that. You had to take the
long view. Maybe there was a way to change things, but it couldn't happen
overnight. Risking
everything for a moment's gratification just didn't make any sense at all. So why did I agree to this? He sighed. Goddam Karl Cullinane. If I
had just shrugged and dismissed it, he'd
have looked at me as if I were a piece of shit. And was that such a big deal? Was Karl
Cullinane's opinion so important? Yes. Ahira was Walter's best friend, and
Karl had worked out a way to bring Ahira out of the grave. That counted for something. That
counted for a lot. And KaiTs growth over the past months
counted for more. When they had arrived on This Side, Karl had been a
directionless flake; Walter had watched him grow, seen him strip away his
shield of not caring, of choosing not to understand others, not to commit himself. It all added up to respect. The simple
fact was that Walter respected Karl, and
wanted to receive the same in turn from him. Walter Slovotsky had always
been respected by everyone whose opinion he
cared about, and he wasn't about to learn how to live without that. He shook
himself. // / don'* pay attention to what's On the Aeryk Road 71 going on, I may have
to learn how to live with a bunch of crossbow bolts in me. He rubbed at a slim scar that curved
around the left side of his collarbone. A knife had left that as a
remembrance of Lundeyll; it hadn't been any fun at all. One of his own knives,
and it had cost quite a bit to get it replaced in Pandathaway. In fact— Enough.
It was time to stop
stalling, and get it done. One way or
the other. He set the knife
down with the bulk of the oak's trunk between it and the view of the watchman, and raised himself on his toes and fingertips, inching
slowly, silently into the cover of the tree. Aim for the chest, Karl
had said. Very well; the chest it would be. Picking up the knife between the thumb and
first two fingers of his right hand, he
stood and moved quickly to his right. Raising the knife to shoulder
level, he threw, then dove for the cover of
the grasses. With a flicker of
steel, the knife tumbled end over end through the night air. The guard must have
seen the sudden movement; with a
grunt, he jerked back and to the side. The knife's hilt caught him a glancing
blow in the left arm, then fell away in the
dark. "Datharrrrti!" the guard called
out as he reached for his crossbow and
jumped to his feet. Raiders! Oh, shit. Karl had said to hide in the shadows, but
he hadn't been counting on this. With a functioning cross-bowman on the roof of
the wagon, the fight would be over before
it began. The bowman, a blocky
little man, leveled his crossbow at Walter. Ignoring the rustle
of branches overhead, Walter broke into a staggered sprint, snatching another of his knives from his belt and throwing it, still on the run.
At least it might distract the bowman for a second or two. With a meaty thunk, the knife sank into
the watchman's thigh. His leg crumpled; he
fell to the roof, a sound halfway
between a scream and a groan issuing from his
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN lips. Clapping his hands to his leg, he
dropped the crossbow. Walter reached the side of the wagon.
Without a pause, he grasped the edge of its
roof and pulled himself up. Below, steel clashed
against steel. Karl fought with the gigantic swordsman who had been sleeping
next to the campfire. Swords flashed in the firelight; screams and shouts filled the
air. Groaning, the watchman pulled the knife
from his thigh, rose to his knees, and
lunged at Walter, stabbing downward. Walter caught the
descending arm with both hands, stopping the razor-sharp point just inches
from his left eye. A clout to the side of his head set the world spinning, but he held on as
they rolled around the rough wood. The watchman's free
hand clawed at Walter's throat; the rough fingers fastened on his windpipe.
Walter tried to drag air into his lungs as they struggled face to face, gasping as he drew in
the foul reek of wine on the other's breath. Inexorably, the knife
moved toward his face, the point seeking his left eye, as if on its own
volition. Walter pushed against the knife arm. The
blade's progress slowed; the point stopped
four inches from his eye. His hands started to
tremble. The point moved closer. Three inches away, then two, then— With a heave, Walter lurched on top of the
slaver, driving his knee into the open
wound on the other's thigh. The watchman
screamed; his fingers loosened from Walter's throat. Just for a moment, the
watchman's right arm lost its strength. Walter didn't wait
for him to recover; he twisted the knife arm behind the watchman's back and up,
past the hammerlock
position, until he felt a sickening, wet pop as the arm separated from the shoulder
socket, the knife falling from the slaver's limp fingers. OntheAerykRoad . 73 The slaver whimpered; feebly, he kicked at
Walter, trying to slide away on his belly. With one smooth
motion, Walter snatched up the knife and stabbed downward into the other's
kidney. He pulled the knife out and stabbed again, and again, and again, as the blood
poured from the slaver's wounds. With a muffled scream, the slaver
twitched, then fell still. Walter's stomach rebelled; he fell to his
hands and knees, sour vomit spewing from his mouth. Wiping his oiouth with a
bloody hand, he willed his body back under
control. Below, Cullinane sliced down at his huge
opponent's swordarm; as the other parried, Karl whipped the manriki-gusari
around the slaver's blade and jerked, sending both the manriki-gusari and his
enemy's sword flipping end over end into the night. He lunged in full extension; his blade slid into the slaver's
throat, almost to the hilt. Blood
fountained as Karl kicked the slaver off his blade; the giant gave a
bubbling groan and fell face down onto the
campfire. As he lay there
motionless, the fire hissed, sending up clouds of smoke and steam. A reek of scorched flesh reached
Walter's nostrils. He gagged, but quelled the urge
to vomit again. "Walter,"
Karl shouted, "are you okay?" Walter nodded. Chak walked slowly into the dwindling
firelight, his falchion dripping with blood.
"Mine's taken care of. But where's
Ohrmyst?" Walter vaulted to
the ground, letting his knees give to absorb the shock. "We've got to find
him. Quickly I If he gets away—" "I know, dammit. I know." Karl
looked from side to side, his face a snarling rictus. "Chak, you go that
way, I'll-" He stopped, lowering the point of his sword. Cullinane smiled.
He scanned the
ground for a 74 THE SWORD AND THE
CHAIN moment, then walked over to the fire and picked up a water bucket and a soft cloth. Ignoring the body
that lay smoldering in the ashes, he
dipped the cloth in the water and started washing his hands.
"There's another cloth here—clean
yourself up. You can use it." What was this
nonsense? This wasn't any time to relax. "Karl—" "I wouldn't worry about the fourth
man," Karl said, cleaning, then resheathing his sword. "Wouldn't
worry about him at all." A distant flapping
of leathery wings sounded from the direction of the road. "Although," Cullinane went on, "next time, I wish you'd look a bit more
closely; Orhmyst was sleeping in a
hammock slung way up high in that oak tree." He pointed at the tree
Walter had hidden under. "When the alarm sounded, he lit out." A dark, massive
bulk came into view overhead; the Chak shouted and dove for the concealment
of the woods. 'Relax, Walter.* Ellegon hovered overhead.
*I don't think Ohrmyst will be talking to
anyone. And would you tell your friend that I'm harmless? Please?* He landed on
the ground with a thump, then
lowered his massive head so that Karl could reach up and pat it. Karl's laugh sounded
forced as he scratched vigorously against the dragon's jaw. "Only
relatively." *True. * Ellegon burped. "What
are you doing around here, anyway?" *I told you I'd do
better this time. And Ahira figured you might get into trouble; he sent me out to check the road from the sanctuary to Metreyll. When I
didn't spot you, I started checking
this road. * Walter nodded, then knelt over the water
bucket, looking away from the body sprawled
over the coals. He splashed water on
his face; the sudden cold helped quell the last traces of his nausea. On the Aeryk Road 75 "That was nice timing, Ellegon," he said. A clattering from inside the wagon jerked
his head around. "Karl, what say we
free some people?" Karl shot a glance
toward the woods. "Chak, it's safe. You can come out now." No answer. 'Don't worry; he'll come out when he calms
down.* Then, accusingly: *You didn't tell him about me, did you?* "Well, no. It
didn't exactly come up. I wasn't thinking ahead." Not thinking ahead. That was Karl, all over. In fact— Ohmygod. "Karl—we're going to free these
people, no?" Cullinane cocked his
head, puzzled. "Of course. That's the purpose of the exercise, after all.
What—" "Bear with me a
minute." A cold wind sent a shiver up his spine. "There's fifteen, sixteen slaves in the wagon, right?" "Not slaves
anymore." Cullinane stooped to pick up his manriki-gusari, then twirled it
easily. "Not anymore." "And, I assume, some of them will
want to join up with us. At least for a
while." Cullinane nodded as
he pulled the smoldering body of the dead slaver from the campfire. He dragged
him a few feet
onto the bare dirt before riffling through his pouch. "Gin," he said, dangling a brass
keyring. "And you're right, but so
what? We've got enough food." "And some might not want to
come with us. They might want to go
home." "So what?" "So," Walter said, impatient,
"we give them some coin, maybe a horse if we can spare one, and wave as they go on their merry way. Right?" "Right." He
lifted his head and raised his voice. "Stand easy in there,"
he said in Erendra. "You will be free in a moment." "Dammit, Karl, listen to me. What happens when they 76 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN start talking about the nice, big man
who—teamed with a dragon, of all things—took on a bunch of Pandathaway slavers, and then freed them? Word
gets back to Pandathaway, somebody puts two
and two together, and—" Cullinane's face went ashen. "And the
hunters are on our tails again." Including Andy-Andy's rather pretty one,
which isn't going to be all that mobile in a
few months. I care about her, too,
Karl. "Exactly what we've been trying to avoid. So what do we
do?" Karl Cullinane drew himself up straight.
"We free them. Period." Walter shrugged.
"Fine. And what do we do about the aftermath?" Karl, if you aren't
scared shitless, you don't understand the situation. - "We work it out. Somehow. Just like
we work out what to do with that Metreyll armsman." He started toward the wagon, then caught himself. "Of course."
As he turned back to face Walter,
his face was creased in a huge smile.
"Did you ever study economics?" "No." What the hell did that
have to do with anything? "I did. For a
while." A mischievous grin replaced the friendly smile. "And economics
is, my dear friend, the answer." - "Well?" "I'll tell you later. C'mon, we've
got some locks to unlock, some chains to
break*. I think I'm going to enjoy this.
You coming?" "Sure." Why not? Besides freeing
them, the only choice was to leave them as slaves, and Cullinane wouldn't accept that. Probably have to cut
their tongues out, as well. And I wouldn't stand for that. So / might as well
get what pleasure I can out of this; sure as anything I'm going to be in front of the blades when the shit hits the fan. As they walked toward the wagon, Karl threw an arm On the Aeryk Road 77 around Walter's shoulder. "You know, there are times when I enjoy this profession. A lot." A
half-shudder went through Cullinane's
body, but his smile remained intact. Understandable. It was one thing
for Karl to feign shrugging off his revulsion for violence, but another matter
to truly take bloodletting for granted. The day you can kill without any
twinge of conscience, Karl, is the day I want to get as far away from you as I
can. "You've really got a
solution?" "The solution, Walter." Cullinane smiled.
"By the way, in case I didn't mention it, you did just fine. If the
watchman had been able to use his bow, all three of us would have been in deep
trouble. The rest of it doesn't matter."
With a sniff, he dismissed Walter's vomiting as irrelevant. "Thanks."
Respect; that felt good. Next question: is Cullinane's
respect worth going through this again?
Next answer: I'll duck that
issue for as long as I can. "But
this idea of yours—you're not going
to tell me yet, are you?" "Nope.
A little frustration is good for the soul." "I'm not going to
like the answer, am I?" *Nope.* Ellegon snorted. 'Not one little bit.* CHAPTER FIVE: The War
Begins If ever there could be a proper time for
mere catch arguments, that time surely is not now. In times like the present,
men should utter nothing for which they would
not willingly be responsible through time and in eternity. —Abraham Lincoln Ahira
sighed, shaking his head. / should have known better, he thought. / really
should have. *Correct.* Thank you, Ellegon. The dwarf spat. Thank you very much.
Any sign of trouble on the Waste? *I would
have mentioned it if there were.* "Is.
There. Any. Sign. Of. Trouble. On. The. Waste?" *No. There is nothing visible on the Waste.* Good.
Stay on watch. The dragon didn't answer; Ahira decided to
take that as an assent. "Karl?" "Yes?" The big man turned from his
conversation with Andrea and
the grimy little girl. "We need to talk. Take a walk with me." "Sure. Give
me a minute." Karl patted Andrea on the arm
and smiled down at the silent little girl, who clung to Andrea's arm as though it were a lifeline.
"See if she'll let you give her
a spongebath—and dig up something else for her to wear." He
switched to English. "Push for the bath,"
he said in a low voice, "and give her as thorough a going-over as you can. She's been through a rough
time, 78 The War Begins 79 and we'd better know if there's anything physically wrong with her." Andrea pulled the
girl closer. "Why not just give her more healing draughts? We've still got some
left from what
you found in the slavers' wagon, no?" "Only three
bottles. I don't know how long they'll have to last. We can't afford to dispense the
stuff when it isn't necessary, just as a precaution." "And if she does need some?" Ahira grunted.
"Then we give to her. Karl, I do want a word with you. Now." "One more
thing." Karl switched back to Erendra and raised his head. "Chak, keep an
eye on the bowman. It won't be for much longer." Sitting across from
the bound youth, Chak nodded, then jerked his thumb at a large wooden trunk next to the
boxy
slave wagon. "Yes, Kharl, but
do you mind if I go through this trunk while I do? I might find something.
Maybe another bottle or two of the healing draughts; maybe some more
coin." "How do you plan on opening it?" Chak smiled. "I think I can find a key." "Go to it, then." Across the clearing,
five other former slaves sat talking with Walter and Riccetti. Three men, two
women, all of them filthy,
although none were apparently injured; despite
his protestations, Karl had been generous with the bottles of healing
draughts he had found in the slavers'
wagon. There wouldn't be
more of that coming their way, at least not from the Healing Hand Society; the Hand acolyte had been more than clear on that point. "Well?" Karl raised an eyebrow. "What is it?" "I sent you into Metreyll to pick up
provisions and supplies, not six—no, seven
more mouths to feed." He shrugged, his shoulders threatening to
split the seams of his worn leather jerkin.
"I would have brought back all
of them, if most hadn't wanted to— 80 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Crunch! Ahira snatched his
battleaxe from his chest, tearing the handle right through the straps that bound it to him. A thumb-flick sent its leather sheath spinning
away. Cullinane drew his sword and spun around
into a crouch. "What the—?" "Sorry," Chak called out, as he
stood over the shattered trunk. He hefted
the sledge. "But I told you I'd find a key." Ahira looked down at
the torn leather thongs that had secured his battleaxe to his chest.
"Nice friend you've got there, Karl." He chuckled. "Take it easy, Ahira,
you're all tensed up." Ahira stared
pointedly at Karl's naked blade. "And, of course, you're not." "Well..." He slipped the saber back into its scabbard. "Never mind." Ahira raised a
palm. "Never mind. What is this insane
plan of yours?" Karl shook his head. "In a while.
First, how's Doria doing?" Ahira spat. "They wouldn't let me
see her. The acolyte I spoke to said that she's being 'fully integrated into
the body
of the Society,' and that any contact with outsiders —outsiders—was forbidden." Be
well, Doria. May you find with the Hand all that eluded you with us. "You think she's okay?" "Hope so. If she
isn't, there's not a damn thing we can do about it." Frustrating, but true. The Matriarch of the Healing Hand Society had protected the Hand
preserve against the powers that had devastated the Forest of Elrood,
turning it into the Waste. Handling a few warriors
and a novice wizard wouldn't cause her to work up a sweat. "Unless you feel like storming the tabernacle." Karl snorted.
"Fat chance. As to how I think we ought to proceed, how about you gathering everyone around, while
I have a talk with Andy, so that—" The War Begins 81 "Kharl! Kharlkhulinayn!" Chak
ran toward them, a long, thin piece of metal
held high in his hands. "Look!" He jerked to a halt and handed it to Karl, holding it carefully
as though it were a fragile piece of glass. Chak smiled broadly, as though he
had just presented Karl with the Hope
diamond. Ahira looked at it.
It looked like an oversized butter-knife, actually; the flat blade was almost
three feet long. He reached over and tested the edge against his thumb. Dull as a
butterknife, too. "What is this?" Chak stood back.
"You don't know? That, Ahira, is a woodknife." Karl cocked his head
to one side. "I'm no wiser; what is a woodknife?" "Look."
Chak lifted it from Karl's outstretched palms and walked to a nearby sapling.
Holding the handle with just
thumb and two fingers, he slashed at the trunk, as though in slow motion. The blade passed through the trunk as
though it weren't there. With a rustling of leaves, the sapling
crashed to the ground. "See?" Chak
said, bouncing the blade off his own neck. "It cuts only through wood. Nothing
else. Quite a find, eh? I expect we're going to find quite a bit of use for
this, where
we're going." What the hell did
that mean? "Karl? Would you please tell me what you're—" Cullinane raised a palm. "Tell you
what: Why don't you gather everyone around,
so I only have to go through this
once. No rush; I've got to talk to Andy first, soon as she's finished bathing the girl. Private
matter." What's going on with the two of them now?
I thought they'd worked things out. Ahira opened his mouth, then closed
it. None of my business. He nodded. "Fair enough, but this
had better be good." "It
will be. I hope."
82 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Karl led Andy-Andy
well away from the camp before sitting
both of them down on a fallen log. "How's she doing?" "Not too bad, at
least physically. A few bruises, some abrasions were all I could find. But I'm not
up on anatomy ... it's too bad you can't check her over." She
left the obvious unspoken; a little girl who'd gone through that
particular kind of hell didn't need any man poking and prodding at her. He chuckled thinly. "Two weeks of
premed doesn't make me an internist. If you can't find anything wrong with her,
I probably couldn't. Well . . . just keep an eye on her; we can always dose her
again later if she needs more. "But that's not why I needed to talk
to you." / wish I could put this off a bit longer, but—"I've
got a question for you." She smiled up at him.
"I can guess what it is. I've heard that fighting hikes up the ol' hormones, eh? Well ..." "Shh." He shook his head.
"This is serious. I've got something to
ask you, then something to tell you." And I hope I'm doing this in the right order. Her face matched his somber tone.
"Okay, Karl. You are serious. About
something." He took a deep
breath. "The question is this: Will you marry me?" Her eyes
opened wide. "Will I what?" "You heard
me." All of a sudden, he didn't quite know what to do with his hands. They
clutched aimlessly at the air
in front of him. "I know we don't have a priest around, but we could improvise some sort of ceremony. Marry
me—you know: live together, have kids, the whole bit." She threw up her
hands and laughed. "Karl, just 'cause we've slept together a couple of times ..." "It's
not that." Not just that, he amended silently. "If it's not that, then it has to be something else, some- The War Begins 83 thing that's pretty impor—no." Andy-Andy paled.
"I'm pregnant? I must be, but how do you know?" "Ellegon. He
can detect the pheromonal changes. But how did you guess?" "It's the only
thing that makes sense. We haven't discussed this before. . . ." She shook her head. "Dammit,
Karl, I'm not ready to be a mother, and—" He raised a palm. "And
we can take care of that. If "How?" "Do I have to go into details? Just
take my word, please. It can be done." "How?" He shrugged.
"This isn't exactly the way this was supposed to go, you know . . . Okay, think about it: We've got a lot of healing draughts, and I think I can
improvise the tools for a D&C. I know I'm not a doctor, but we've
got room for error. It'd hurt, but the draughts can protect you from any risk
of infection, any permanent damage. If you
want an abortion, you can have it. Up to you," he said, trying to
sound casual, failing miserably. The
thought of himself performing the abortion bothered Karl, not the notion
of an early abortion itself. He'd never bought the idiotic notion that a
microscopic blastula was a human being. Doing a primitive
abortion here isn't the only choice. We could try to sneak you back home, through
the Gate. But I really
don't want to try getting past The Dragon again,
and I'm sure as hell not going to suggest that. She tented her hands
in front of her mouth and chewed on a forefinger. "Let me think, okay?" "Fine. Take your time. Is ... is there anything I can do?" "Just
leave me alone for a while." "Andy—" "Please?" He stood. "Okay—but I've got to go talk to everybody
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN else;. Ahira's on my back. Join us in
a few minutes?" "Maybe. Just . . . just give me some time." He nodded. "I
love you, you know." "I
know." She smiled weakly. "Now get lost for a while." "Please
listen," Karl said in Erendra, as he stood in the center of the circle
of faces. "I've got something to say." He paused to look at them. With one
exception, all of the former
slaves still looked scared. The exception was Chak. His smile almost radiated
trust as he sat tailor-fashion, his right
hand never straying far from the hilt of his falchion. Lou Riccetti's round
face beamed up at him. Trust to Lou to work things out, if they involved
numbers. And those economics
courses he'd taken didnt hurt either. Riccetti
nodded reassuringly. Ahira scowled. As
usual. He didn't like being kept in the dark. Probably he wouldn't like what
came next any better. And then there was
Slovotsky. Walter, if I can ever figure you out, I'll admit to being a genius. 'Actually, Walter's easy. He's—* Shh. Karl went on:
"For those of you who don't know, there are people after my head. When I met
Ellegon, he was chained in a
cesspit in Pandathaway. I didn't like that; I freed him. "The Pandathaway guilds didn't like that.
They sent slavers out after me. After
all of us. They caught up with us in
the Waste. "We managed to get away, and then
kill all of the bastards. By now,
Pandathaway probably thinks that I'm dead." The Matriarch had said
that he couldn't be located while on the Hand preserve, and certainly a
location spell couldn't have spotted him during the period that he had been
home, on the other side of the Gate.
"They will soon be hearing that I'm alive. The wot Begins Ј5 "There's probably nothing that we can
do to prevent that." Twenty yards behind Ahira, the bowman glared over at him. "Even if we killed him; the
other freed slaves will talk. "I propose that we don't even try.
Instead, I suggest that we do two things. First, Chak knows of an
unin-habitated valley in Therranj. I propose that we move there, and settle down; raise food and cattle,
everything. We'll have to send another party into Metreyll to pick up some
more supplies and animals, cattle, sheep, goats, chickens, whatever we need. The trip will take a .while; and building houses, clearing fields, planting
crops, all of it will be hard work. But once we're settled in—" Walter shook his head. "That won't do
it. Pandatha-way is ticked at you, Karl;
they won't let a bit of distance stand between them and revenge."
He shrugged. "It might buy us some time, but that's all." 'Notice the "us"?* Yes. Now, shh. Karl held up a hand. "No. I'm not
going to spend much time there for the first couple of years; certainly not
enough to be located and found. Instead . . . Lou: Explain a bit about supply
and demand, and how that effects economic utility." Riccetti picked up
his cue as though they had rehearsed it. Which they had, of course. He stood. "The price of anything
depends on two things: how much of it is available, and how badly people want
it; supply and demand. If anything—anything—gets too expensive, then people start to find substitutes.
That applies to swords, to grain, to cattle—and to slaves. KarPs talking about making slaves too expensive." "Exactly."
Karl folded his arms across his chest. "And we'll do that by making slave-taking too expensive, too risky a business. I'm talking about doing the
same thing that we did yesterday, but on a larger scale. We'll hit every caravan we can, force the Slavers' Guild to
beef up
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN their caravans, adding more and more guards, cutting down on the profits from slaving. And we'll keep
doing that until the system starts to collapse." Shaking his head,
Ahira spat. "That's just plain silly. There are a lot of slaves, Karl; you won't affect the price of slaves one whit. Figure that Pandathaway
alone imports, say, three, four thousand slaves per year. Right now, they get them via raids on Therranj,
Melawei, and so forth. Let's say
that each caravan has twenty slaves, and that you hit—and free—one caravan each
tenday. And let's assume that every
one of the freed slaves either joins us in this valley of yours or finds
his or her way home. "That's only a
thousand or so freed slaves each year." He shrugged. "It'll drive up the price a bit. But
that's all." Smiling broadly,
Walter Slovotsky nodded. "Beautiful, Karl. Dammit, James, you're wrong; it'll do
more. Once we've demonstrated that we can take on slavers and get away with it, others
will start doing it, too. Everyone has shied away from crossing the Slavers' Guild
because of the fear of
retribution. Once we show that we can get away
with it, most of that fear will be gone. "It's a sure
bet that some of these unemployed mercenaries will try to get into the business.
And since they'll have stolen
the slaves, they'll be afraid to sell them. They'll
have to free them, making their profit off money that the slavers carry. Just as we did." He hefted his now-full purse. "A nice bit of thinking it
through, Karl. That is what you're
talking about, isn't it?" "Yes." From across the clearing, Andy-Andy's
voice called, "It's crazy, you know." She walked quickly toward the group. How did she hear? *I echoed your
words. * A mental smirk. * And if you're really nice to me, I won't relay your thoughts without permission.* The War Begins 87 / didn't know you could do that. Although
it really wasn't all that surprising, come
to think of it. * You didn't ask.* He scowled. Well,
then, relay this. He stopped himself. Never mind. "Andy—" "Later." She smiled. "We'll
have plenty of time, on this trip to that valley of yours. But we'd better move
quickly." She placed the flat of her
hand on her stomach. "Before I
start to swell." Karl couldn't help smiling. Ahira shook his head. "This is
insane, you know, but ..." "But what?" Riccetti frowned.
"It makes perfect sense." "But let's try it." The dwarf
bounced to his feet and stuck out his hand at Karl. "You can count me
in." As they shook hands, Ahira
shrugged. "It's worth a try." He turned to the freed slaves. "You may either come with us, or leave. Anyone who wishes to leave us should
see me later." Slovotslcy smiled.
"All we have to do is take on a few thousand slavers." Andy-Andy shook her head. "There's one other thing." "Oh?" Ahira cocked his head. "What am I missing?" "We've also got to stay alive." Karl nodded.
"That is the keystone of the whole plan, after all." A gout of fire roared into the sky. *Nice keystone.* Ellegon at his side,
Karl smiled down at the bowman. "I'm going to turn you loose. We'll give
you a waterbag and a knife;
start across the Waste tonight. I want the extra
time to get clear of here." As the youth glanced over at the string of horses, Karl shook his head.
"If you try to leave before
then, or raise a hand to any of us, or steal a horse, I'll have Ellegon eat
you." The dragon leered. 'Please try to leave
early. I could use a snack. *
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN The bowman glared up at Karl. "The
Pandathaway Guilds Council will hunt you
down like an animal. They will find you, Karl Cullinane. And, my Lord
Mehlen willing, I will travel to Pandathaway to watch you die." Karl smiled.
"Have Lord Mehlen give them a message from me. Tell them: Karl Cullinane is alive,
and . . ." He let his voice trail off. Did this make any sense? Here I am, an
expectant father, and I'm asking for
trouble. Ahira was right; this is absolutely
insane. *You made a promise to the Matriarch. And
though she will not help you further, will
you keep that promise, or not?* Karl looked across
the clearing to where the little girl was smiling at Andy-Andy over a bowl of
stew. Not much of a smile, but a smile nonetheless. And a very special sort of smile. . . . Yes. Hell, yes. He cut the bowman
loose. "Tell them this:
I'm hunting them." PART TWO: The Valley CHAPTER SIX: Settling In All things are
artificial, for Nature is the art of God. —Sir Thomas Browne The valley took Karl by surprise, although that morning ' Ellegon had told him they would reach it
shortly after noon. He led his mare up a gentle incline,
through the charred remains of what once
had been a stand of trees. There was no way of knowing what had caused
the fire that had burned a black slash across the surrounding miles; possibly someone's carelessness, possibly
a lightning strike. The fire had been
years before; rain had since reduced the burned trees to a flat ash surface that allowed easy passage for both the flatbed and the former slave
wagon. Life was starting to return; impudently,
thumb-thick saplings rose chest-high, as
though in a promise that this area would be wooded once again. In the
light breeze, leafy ferns nodded their
agreement. In further confirmation, the grasses had
started to reclaim the ground at the top of the hill. His horse snorted, nudging him from behind. "Dammit, Carrot, we're moving fast
enough." He turned to stroke her neck
before resuming their slow pace through
the rubble. "You take it easy, hear? I don't want you breaking a
leg." She whinnied as if she understood, and
agreed that breaking a leg was, indeed, not the ultimate goal of her horsy life. 91 92 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Hmmm, would the healing draughts work on a horse? Possibly. Quite possibly. But would Ahira
object to his experimenting, even if it meant the difference between preserving and having to kill the horse? Certainly; the dwarf
and the horses had something less than a deep and abiding affection for each other. Behind him, Ahira
grunted as he pulled on the reins of his gray gelding. "Move, you filthy
little monster. Move, I said." The small horse towered above the dwarf,
drawing
back its head to the limits of the reins and snorting at Ahira as it gave ground, inch by inch. 'Quite a
horseman, eh?* The mental voice was faint. Quite. Following Ahira,
Slovotsky sat in his usual place on the bench of the flatbed, with blond Kirah close
beside him. A few weeks of
freedom had done Kirah's appearance good; she actually was quite pretty,
although a bit too skinny for KarFs tastes. Deep in quiet
conversation, Walter smiled, and patted her knee. Karl found that vaguely reassuring, and was ashamed of himself for feeling that way. Walter's my friend, dammit. I should be
happy he's found someone, not relieved that I don't have to worry about him and
Andy-Andy anymore; *To the best of my knowledge, Walter has never been accused of
practicing exclusivity.* Ellegon! *If you're
going to trust either or both of them, then do so. If not, don't. But whipping yourself with worry suggests that you don't think you have enough real
problems to worry about. Would you
like to hear my list?* No thanks, Ellegon.
. . , I can always turn to you for a spot of reassurance, eh? * Think nothing of it.* / won't. Behind
Slovotsky and Kirah, Lou Riccetti
napped Settling In 93 under a light blanket, with a sack of grain
for his pillow. The wind carried his snores to Karl's ears. Hmph. Riccetti was supposed
to be keeping an eye on the
bull, who was secured to the flatbed by a length of rope tied to his brass nose
ring. Karl thought about waking Riccetti, then dismissed the idea. No need, the
lumbering beast followed without complaint. From its high seat,
Andy-Andy drove the former slave wagon, little Aeia huddled next to her, the five chicken cages tied down on the flat roof. The bars were
gone from the wagon's windows,
having joined the other rod stock in the back of the flatbed. Trotting along beside
the wagon, the two goats voiced their unflattering opinion of the whole party. Aeia turned to give them a few reassuring words. She
liked the goats, although the smelly creatures didn't return her affection. Aeia was still a
problem; she had yet to make it through a night without waking up crying, not going
back to sleep until Andy-Andy held her for at least an hour. What it came down to
was simple: Aeia was homesick. There
was a solution to that, but Andy-Andy wasn't going to like it; she had
practically adopted the girl. Spread out behind the wagon, Tennetty,
Chton, Ihryk, and Fialt led their horses, occasionally switching the five cows
to make them keep the pace. The cattle were brakes on the whole procession;
they could barely walk fifteen miles on a
good day. Goddam splay-footed beasts— *Stop worrying; the trip is almost over.* Last was
Chak, who insisted on riding his horse through
the charred rubble, swearing at her when she balked. Karl stroked Carrot's neck as they walked up
the hill. "Easy, now." *A carrot works
better than a stick, most of the time.* This time Ellegon's voice was louder,
clearer. 94 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Karl looked up. High overhead, the dragon
circled, a dark speck against the blue sky. True. Which is why I finally got
around to naming my horse Carrot. *A suitable name. She is probably very tasty.* "Ellegon, you
are not eating my horse. Case closed." *Hmph. I would have
thought I deserved some sort of reward for finding a route you can take your wagons over.* The
mindlink grew tighter for a moment, then loosened.
'Lewis and Clark didn't have aerial reconnaissance. Neither did Cortez,
or Pizarro. You may have noticed that you haven't had to turn around and try a different route once over the past three months.* "I noticed.
Honest. And I noticed it the first day, even before you mentioned it. So would you
please—" He cut himself off. Snide comments were not the way to handle a child asking for
praise. You've done one hell of a job, in case I haven't
mentioned that recently. *You haven't.* The crest of the hill lay just a few yards
ahead; the slope steepened. On an impulse, Karl dropped Carrot's reins and ran
up, onto the summit, and over the hill. And into wonder. The valley opened up below him, trees and
grasses spread out in a welcoming green embrace. In the distance, silvery
threads of streams wove their way down from
the far, snow-peaked mountains, tumbling through stands of pine and
maple, finally emptying into the mirror-bright lake that cupped the valley
floor. Half a mile below,
seven deer drank at the lake's edge. The water was still, mirroring the fluffy
clouds and blue sky. A five-point buck looked up at him; then the group
sprinted gracefully into the forest, leaping high over the grasses as they ran. The wind blew across the valley, bathing
him in the warm tang of sunbaked grasses, and the cool scent of pines. He didn't notice Chak walking up. One moment, Karl Settling In 95 was all alone; the next, the little
man stood beside him, Carrot's reins in one hand, the reins of his own gray
mare in
the other. "Like it?" Chak smiled, handing him the reins. Karl didn't answer him. It wasn't necessary. "Ready, Lou?" Riccetti nodded,
smiling inside. Ready? I've been waiting my whole life for a moment like this. Ahira beckoned him to his feet. "You go first." Riccetti rose and
walked to the campfire. He turned to face the others, his back to the crackling
flame. "The two main
considerations in this sort of construction," he said, "are water supply and defense." All the others looked at him, listening intently. Which was nice; Lou liked being the center
of attention. For once. Slovotsky nodded.
"Good point, but what does that do for us?" The fire was hot;
sweating, Riccetti moved away from it, the heat still pressing against his back.
"Form follows function,
Walter," he said. "What we've got to do is figure out what sort of
complex to make, given our present limitations of materials and the lack of
power tools. I wish we had a few dozen tons of concrete mix, . steel girders,
PVC pipe, and such. But we don't." Both Chton and Fialt frowned, while the
other new people stared back blankly;
Riccetti realized that he had lapsed
back into English. Item, he thought, English, teaching of. Discussion: Many
useful concepts are not available in Erendra, absent a great deal of neologism
or circumlocution. Examples: concrete,
suspension bridge, gunpowder, steam engine, railroad. Question: Should
we actually teach English, or settle for
supplementing Erendra vocabulary? 96 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Sprawled on the ground behind the others,
Ellegon raised his head. 'Noted, Louis. I will remind you of this later, when
you have time to consider it.* Don't forget. 'Dragons don't forget, stupid. We leave
that sort of thing to humans.* "My apologies," he said in
Erendra, both to Ellegon and to the
natives. "I was saying that we don't have many different materials
to work with, nor do we have . . . magical tools, other than the
woodknife." Chak spat. "And you should be
grateful for that, instead of complaining that we don't have any other magical
tools. Woodknives are rare, Richetih; takes a master wizard to make one, and it
takes him years. I don't know where Ohrmyst bought—or, more likely,
stole—his. I've traveled far; only heard of a few in existence. Only seen one
other, in Sciforth, and that one heavily
guarded. You couldn't have bought that knife for a wagonload of gold." Cullinane raised a palm. "Stand easy,
Chak. Lou was just commenting, not
criticizing." That seemed to settle the matter for the
little man; Chak listened to Karl the way Riccetti would have listened to Washington Roebling himself. Riccetti went on: "How and what we
build has to be planned with that limitation in mind. We also have to consider
the problem of the water supply." Tennetty shrugged, sending her straight
black hair flipping about her face. She was a slim woman,
with an almost impossibly thin nose,
and a permanent expression of distance on her drawn
face. The daughter of a poor farmer on one of the Shattered Islands, on her
fifteenth birthday she had been sold to a slaver's ship. The ten
intervening years hadn't Settling In 97 treated her kindly, as she passed from owner to owner; it showed in her lined
face. Riccetti found her
profoundly unattractive, even when her mouth was closed. Which was usually, but
nevertheless
all too seldom. "What
problem?" She gestured at the lake, which lay shimmering in the
starlight. "If we build our houses close to the lake, then we have a short walk for water. If we are stupid enough to build them far away, then we
have a long walk for water. What is
so complicated about how far you have to carry a bucket?" Sitting on the other side of Andrea from
little Aeia, Cullinane shook his head, grinning. "I'd really like to have running water, myself. Taste of home, and
all that. You've got a way?" "Yup." Riccetti smiled. "I
took a quick look this afternoon, while the rest of you were lolling around
camp. So far, I've counted seven streams that feed into the lake. I've found
one with a waterfall." He pointed. "About
a quarter-mile that way. The waterfall's small— it's not much taller
than Karl is. But if we set up the compound over part of that stream,
surrounding the waterfall, we can divert it,
and still have a bit of flow to play around with. We'll want a mill, for
one thing . . . and in the future, I might be able to rig up some sort of water
heater." "Hot
showers," Andrea said, sighing. She bent her head toward Aeia's. "Have
you ever had a hot shower?" She shook her head. "What's a shower, Andy?" "But in the short run, we can have
flowing water inside, for washing, cooking,
and for privies." Ahira's forehead furrowed. "How are
you going to build a flush toilet?" Riccetti shrugged. "That's years away. For
now, 98 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN you're going to have to settle for a
constant-flow one, sort of
like an outhouse with some water from the stream running underneath. Open pipes
like the Romans', but we'll use wood instead
of lead." Slovotsky nodded his approval.
"That's not bad. Constant-flow toilet, eh? It's so simple, it'd be hard to
think up, if you didn't already know about
it. I guess you weren't wasting your
time in your engineering courses." Cullinane threw back his head and laughed. The dwarf
glared at him. "What's so funny?" The big man shook his head. "Never
mind." His expression went vague. * Louis, Karl has
asked me to tell you that he remembers lending you his copy of Farnham's Freehold, and that
he's glad he did.* That's nice. *And he also said to
mention that he won't tell anyone that you swiped the notion of constant-flow
toilets from Heinlein. // you build the first one for him and Andrea.* Tell him to go to hell. I'm running the
construction here, and I'll do as I see fit. He waited for Ellegon to replay the message. Cullinane
glared at him for a moment, then relaxed, his hand miming tipping a hat. Good. It was best to
start things off by letting everyone —Cullinane particularly—know who was in charge of the building. "In any case," he went on,
"that's the first part of it. The other
thing is that the waterfall is in a stand of pines. We can save a lot of effort
by building there; even green, pine is good to build with. It's a bit
tricky, but I've read about how to use it." I'd give any digit
you care to name for one-tenth of the library Farnham had. Or even for Robertson's Green Wood Construction. Or the Britannica,
or the Rubber Handbook, or
anything. All that stood
between him and all of those books was about five hundred miles of forest, plains,
mountains and Settling In 99 Waste,
plus the warrens surrounding the Gate Between Worlds. And The
Dragon, guarding the Gate. Ellegon snorted. "You had best learn
to live without those books, Louis. He is still awake. And will be, for much longer than you will live. * Riccetti shuddered. No way was he
ever going near The Dragon again. "So we build there," he said. "Agreed?" "Sounds right to me," Cullinane
nodded. "You were talking about
defense. Some sort of castle?" "No. We don't have the tools or the
manpower for stonework, even if we could
find stone worth quarrying. My
suggestion is that we go for something like a western fort. It'll look a
bit crude, but—" Fialt spat. "I am from the
west. I was born and raised on Salket. We build with stone there; we are
civilized." He was the oldest of the group, a grizzled graybeard of fifty or so. Slovotsky chuckled. "Not your
west—ours. But it sounds like a lot of
work, Lou." "It will be. But it should give us
some defense. If the colony grows a lot, we
won't be able to put all the houses inside,
of course, but it still makes sense to have some sort of fortification
to retreat to, if necessary. We may not need it, but ..." Chak nodded.
"KharPs plan should keep us relatively safe, as long as he doesn't spend too much
time here. But you're right, Richetih: no sense in taking a chance for no payoff." Ahira cocked his
head to one side. "That's easy for you to say—you're going on this first expedition with Karl; little of the sweat will be from your brow. Not
more than a tenday's worth, at best." "Damn, but I like your positive
attitude, Ahira." The little man smiled. "Pointing out another nice
part of Richetih's plan." Riccetti spread his hands. "That's the broad outline. If
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN we do it this way, I'll mark out the boundaries in the morning, and we can get right to work. Should be
able to have three walls of the palisade up within a—" "Palisade?" "The outer wall. We'll put a walkway
around the inside, around the top. As I was
saying, it should be done within two, maybe three tendays. Ahira, you're
still the leader. It's up to you." And
if you don't want to do it my way,
I'd like to hear what idiocy you have in mind. Andrea raised an
eyebrow. "Why just three-quarters of the wall? It seems to me it'd be more efficient to do the whole
thing at one time." "No. The gate will be the hard part;
by leaving that wall for last, we can have
a way of bringing wood in to build
the houses and such. We could do the houses first, but I think we'll save some effort by using the
palisade as the fourth wall for some
of them, and for the grainmill, when we build it. Besides, we'll want to set up
a smithy and make some nails before we do the houses; we can build the palisade walls with just wood and
leather. "And sweat, of course." He
turned to Ahira. "That's my proposal.
There'll be lots of details to work out, but it seems to me this is the best way." "Any objections?" The dwarf
waited silently for a moment. "We'll
do it. Lou, you're in charge of construction. Complete charge; you
don't ask anyone, you tell them, unless you
think you need another opinion. Refer any discipline problems to
me." He tapped his thumb against the
blade of his battleaxe. Cullinane snorted. "That include you?" "Lou, if I give you any trouble, you
can refer it to Karl." *Orme.* "Or Ellegon." The dwarf turned
to Slovotsky. "Now, Walter, what are your thoughts about crops and animals?" Riccetti sat down, barely listening as Slovotsky stood Settling In 101 and began to talk about slash-and-burn agriculture, and where he
wanted to put the first field. For more than four years, Lou Riccetti had
been an engineering student in a world that really didn't want things built.
The days of great construction had passed from his world; the future of
engineering was with piddling little electronic circuits, not big structures,
not great things. There would be no more
Brooklyn Bridges built, no more Hoover Dams. But here,
it was different. A world to conquer. He smiled. I'm going to be building things, he thought, his heart beating audibly in
his chest. It's a small start, but it's a start. He shook his head. This was ridiculous.
Getting all excited about putting together a
bunch of log cabins and some
stockade fencing? And some sort of smithy, come to think of it. That would have to be done early; the
flatbed contained fifty or so pounds of thin nail stock, but no nails.
Then again, nailmaking shouldn't require a full-fledged smithy; a hot fire, a bellows, a hammer, and the smallest of the anvils would do. And— Ridiculous. It had to be done, granted,
but getting excited about it? *I disagree.*
Ellegon lifted his head from his crossed forelegs, curling and uncurling his wings.
*It is not ridiculous, friend Louis. Not if it makes you feel this good. 'Build and enjoy.* The first wall went up much more quickly
than Karl would have believed possible. It wasn't just
because of the woodknife's ability to turn the felling, stripping, and shaping of a tall pine from a tedious
affair into something that took only minutes, helpful
as that was. And it wasn't just Ellegon's great
strength, although that certainly helped, too. 102 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Ellegon would seize
the blunt end of a stripped log in his massive jaws and drag it from where it
fell to where the empty post
hole was. That made harnessing the horses
unnecessary, although Riccetti could and did rig a block, tackle, and
twenty-foot-tall tripod. With that, and with the aid of the mules and the
cannibalized harnesses from the flatbed, Karl, Walter, and Ahira could raise the upper end of a log into its
proper position and lower the flat end into its hole, before packing
dirt around the now-upright log to keep it
steady. And it wasn't just that all of them worked
hard, although they certainly did. Ellegon hauled logs, beginning work when
the sky grew light, not quitting until well after dark. Fialt, Kirah, and Chak took turns with the woodknife,
felling and stripping pines, keeping
a constant supply of twenty-foot
posts coming, as well as stacking the scraps for the cooking fires. Karl, Walter, and Ahira dug the
holes and raised the posts. Andy-Andy and Aeia kept bowls of hot stew
and pitchers of cold water coming from dawn to dusk. Ihryk and Tennetty hunted deer, duck, and rabbit, gathered
wild garlic, onions, chotte, burdock, maikhe, and tacktob for the stewpot,
stretching the supply of dried beef and putting off the time when it would
become necessary to start converting to chickens from egglayers into roasters. What really made it all work was Riccetti. Lou always seemed to
be at Kail's elbow, any time he needed a bit of advice or instruction. At times, he wondered if
there weren't really three or four Lou Riccetti's;
others reported the same. Riccetti was the one
who knew how to lash together a tripod of logs and throw together a wooden block and tackle to
raise and support a pole, or turn a dozen saplings
and a few hundred yards of rope into a double-lock bridge across the deep-bedded stream. He was the one who withheld a portion of
the scrap wood, for Ellegon to roast slowly into wood tar, to be
Settling In 103 later distilled down to creosote, which
would protect the palisade against insects and rot. Riccetti showed them
how to lash the poles together at the top of the wall with wet leather strips, so that as the
leather dried, it shrank and linked the individual poles together solidly. More important, he knew how to apportion
the work so that no bottlenecks developed; Karl, Walter, and Ahira always had
just enough poles to work with, without
worrying about falling behind while unused ones accumulated, or letting
valuable time go by while they waited for
the next. Riccetti was, finally, in his own proper
environment; Karl smiled at the little
swagger his walk had developed. The sounds and smells
of the dying were far away; the days passed quickly, filled with the sweet
smell and un-washable
stickiness of freshly cut pine, the stink of his own sweat, and the deep sleep brought on by hard labor. CHAPTER SEVEN: Moving On Now hollow
fires burn out to black, And lights are
guttering low: Square your shoulders,
lift your pack, And leave your
friends and go. —Alfred Edward Housman It was a clear night. Andy-Andy lying still beside him, Karl
stared up at the dome of stars. Downslope from them,
halfway between them and the palisade wall, little Aeia huddled in her blankets,
asleep at last. It had been a
rocky night for the girl, filled with bad
dreams and loud screams. // there
is a hell, Orhmyst, you are surely there. "Andy," he whispered. "Yes?" He quirked
a smile. She hadn't been sleeping either. "I've
got to leave, for a while." She sucked air through her teeth, then
rolled over on her side, facing him. She
stroked his forehead with gentle fingers. "I know. You're worried
about Pandathaway." "Not worried:
terrified. If I stay here too long, I'm not just endangering myself." He patted her
barely distended belly.
"There's others involved, too." "Like
Karl, Junior?" She grinned at him. "Even if it is a boy, we're not
naming him after me. With a mother as pretty as you, he'll have enough of an 104 Moving On 105 Oedipus problem without saddling him
with his father's name. Besides, it's probably a girl." "It will be a boy, Karl." Her
face grew somber. "We women know about
these things." "Bullshit."
He snorted. "I think we know each other a bit too well for you to give me
that sort of nonsense." "We do know
about these things," she said, shrugging, "and we're right about, oh, fifty percent of the
time." "Funny. Very
funny. But you're changing the subject. Or trying to." "I'm starting to get fat, is that it?
You're going to run off and find some
sixteen-year-old—" "Shh." He put a finger to her
lips. "Shh. Not even in jest.
Please." A long pause. "How long will you be gone?" "Don't know for sure. Six months, at
a minimum. Maybe closer to a year." "When?" she asked, her voice a low whisper. T'were best done quickly. "In a day or two, I think. It won't
take long to pack. I don't know if you've noticed, but Chak's getting itchy." "And so are you." There was more truth in that than he cared
to admit. "No, it's not that. But this vacation has gone on long enough;
it's time to get back to work." She rolled onto her back and stared up at
the sky, her head pillowed on her hands. "Slicing up people. Some work." "Slicing up slavers. Or, if
you want to be more accurate, my work is murdering slavers. But it isn't the words that matter, Andrea. You know that." Please,
Andy, don't ever let the
blood come between us. Please. She sighed deeply, and then closed her
eyes. She lay quietly for so long that Karl
began to wonder if she had fallen back asleep. "Who are you taking with
you?" "Well, Chak, for one. He's seen more
of the Eren regions than any of the rest of
us, and he's pretty handy 106 THE SWORD AND THE
CHAIN with a sword." Besides, he
rankles at taking orders from anyone except me. I'm not leaving a time bomb behind. "I'd like to take Ellegon, but he's
just too conspicuous." And he's also the most deadly being I know. He
stays here, and keeps an eye on my wife and unborn child. *I am honored, of course. But I will miss
you, Karl. Don't do something stupid and get yourself killed. Please?* Just as a favor to you. * Thanks.* "Who else?" she asked, a decided edge to her voice. "Well, I can't take Walter, not this
time; somebody's got to run the farm." And if I did take him along, I'd
never know whether it was because I wanted
him along, or because I didn't trust both of you enough to leave him here. "I think I'll invite Ahira to come along; he'll want to go. He's just as good in a fight as I am—" 'Better.* "—and he's got a
fine strategical sense. His darksight might come in handy; it's even better
than Ellegon's." "How's he going to take your being in charge, Karl?" "Huh? Who said anything about—" "As Walter
would say, think it through. You've always thought he was too conservative, too eager to avoid a fight. So you're going to let him be in charge
when you're going out looking for
trouble?" He snorted.
"We'll work it out. What we're doing is too important to let who's-in-charge
games screw it up. And ..." "And? I don't recall your mentioning my name." He snorted. "Don't be silly." "Silly?" "This isn't a time for reflex
pseudo-feminism. We're going to be gone for
six months, at least. If you think I'm going
to let a woman at term bounce along on the back of a horse, try thinking
again. Case closed; you stay here, where
it's safe." Moving On 107 "Always the
diplomat, Karl." She dismissed the issue with a wave of her hand. "But I guess you're right.
It's just going to be you, Chak, and
Ahira?" "Can't expect
any of the new people to do any good in a fight. The best is Fialt, and he wouldn't
last ten seconds against a real swordsman. On the other hand, he's trying hard to learn. If he wants in, he's got
it. Chton, Kirah, Ihryk, and he are happy here, or I'd escort them somewhere
safe. Tennetty, though ..." "Tennetty
wouldn't be happy anywhere." "Exactly. But
she's hot to kill some slavers. I can't say as I blame her; she can come along if she
wants to. Which she will." "Is that
all?" She frowned. "It sounds like an awfully small group." "It is. But I think it's the best
one, for now." / may as well get it over with. "There's one
more person we're taking along, Andy." "Karl,
you are not taking Aeia." "We're taking
her home." He shrugged. "Might as well swing through Melawei. The hunting should be good; there've been slaving raids all along that
coast." Mainly by sea,
according to Chak; to the best of his knowledge, Ohrmyst had been the
only slaver to try the difficult overland
route to Melawei. Question: How does one take on a slaver's ship? 'Answer: very carefully.
Do you have any more stupid questions?* No. "Nol"
Andy-Andy said, echoing his response to Ellegon. "You can't. She's getting used to being around us;
she'll adjust. I'll take care of her." "We're not her family, Andrea. She's
been through hell. You should know that, better than I do; let's let her grow
up in her own country, with her own people." Andy-Andy sat up, angrily pulling the blankets around 108 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN her. "What good did they do her?
Tell me. Her people let her get caught by slavers, raped. Karl, you can't take
her back to them. I won't let
you." He tried to put his hand on her shoulder,
but she shrugged his arm away. "Shall
we leave it up to her?" he asked. "She's too
young to decide. She needs someone to take care of her." She looked away from him, toward where Aeia slept. "Like you?" "Yess," she
hissed, "like me. Don't you think I'm good enough to take care of her? Don't
you?" He shook
his head. "No, I don't." Her head spun
around. "You bastard." Tears filled her eyes. "Andy, it's not that there's anything
wrong with you. The thing of it is this: She's
a little girl. Somewhere, she has family. And they probably miss her as
much as she misses them." She sneered. "Just as our families
back home will be missing us? You didn't
seem so worried about that." "Different case. For one thing, we're
adults; we have to make our own decisions. For another, with the time
differential between here and home, the fact that we're gone hasn't even been
noticed yet; at home, we've only been gone
a few hours. "But, again, you're dodging the
issue. Think about this: If someone stole little whatever-her-name-is from you,
you'd want her back." He laid a palm on her belly. "Wouldn't you? Or
would you think that some stranger could take better care of her?" She didn't
answer for a long time. Then: "Leave it alone, Karl. You're
right, as usual. Bastard." She daubed at her eyes with a corner of the blanket. "But it's going to be a boy."
Gathering her robes about her, she rose and walked down the slope toward where Aeia lay sleeping. She seated herself
beside Moving On 109 the girl
and took one of Aeia's small hands in both of hers. And sat there, watching her, until the night fled, and the sun sat above the treetops. PART THREE: The Middle Lands CHAPTER EIGHT: Ahrmin Revenge is a dish
that tastes best when eaten cold. —Sicilian proverb The windowless room was dark and musty,
redolent with the smells of aging paper and parchment; the only illumination was a single overhead lamp. In a
dark corner, a tall brass censer burned,
sending vague fingers of smoke feeling
their way into the air. His eyes stung. Ahrmin repressed a
shudder. He never liked being near wizards at all, but it was even worse to confront one on the wizard's own territory. That was one thing
his father had always said: "Stay away from the wizards, son,
whenever you can." In Ahrmin's nineteen years, he had never seen a reason to doubt that advice. He stood motionless in the middle of the
blood-red carpet, not daring to interrupt Wenthall's unblinking study of the crystal ball. Though why the thing
was called a ball was something Ahrmin couldn't understand. The "ball" was a head-sized
crystal model of a human eye, the iris and pupil etched on its front, complete
down to a spoke that projected from the back, to symbolize the cords that connected
the eye to the brain. The fat wizard
gripped the spoke as he held the crystal before him, staring at the back side of the ball as if he were sitting behind a giant's eye, looking out
through it. Finally, he shook his head, sighed deeply,
then carefully set the ball down on a
wooden stand before turning to Ahrmin. "Good. I see you received my
summons." 113
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Yes, sir." Why me? I'm just
barely a journeyman. If you have a need for
my guild, why not send for a master? He didn't say that; Slavers' Guildmaster
Yryn had spent most of .his tenure trying to improve the often uneasy relations
between the Slavers' Guild and the Wizards' Guild, and was known to have little
patience with any apprentice of journeyman
who did anything to offend wizards. If the apprentice or journeyman survived. The rapprochement between
the slavers and the wizards, while tentative, had paid well; it had opened up
both Therranj and Melawei for frequent slaving raids. The Wizards' Guildmaster was thought to be lukewarm about the
loose alliance; Yryn tolerated no
action that might change that indifference
to opposition. Wenthall walked to a water bowl and splashed water, on his
face, drying his black beard with his gray robes. "You recall that there
is a reward out for the one who stole our sewer dragon," he said, seating
himself on a stool, his hands folded over
his bulging belly. "Of
course." Despite himself, Ahrmin voiced it almost as a question. After all, the reward had
gone unclaimed for more than a year.
Undoubtedly, the culprit was dead somewhere, or had fled the Eren regions, past
the range of even Wizards' Guildmaster Lucius' location spells.
"But hunting dragons isn't something I can do, Master Wenthall; I don't
have that kind of experience. Even if there are any small ones left." The wizard's eyes flashed. "Just
listen, fool. I do not want you to hunt a dragon—you and I have further grievances against the one who freed our sewer
dragon. The same one believed
responsible for the deaths of both Blenryth, of my order, and Ohlmin, of
yours." Ohlmin? That had to mean—no; it was impossible. "But Karl Cullinane has to be dead, or must
have fled the region, at least, sir. None of you wizards has been able to locate him." Ahrmin 115 Wenthall rose to his
feet, sighing. He walked oyer to a scrollrack set into the nearest wall. "There is one
other possibility," the wizard said, rummaging through the scrolls,
finally selecting one. He unrolled it; it was a well-worn map of
the entire Eren region. "He could have
been in the one place in the region that is protected from both the erratic
sight of my crystal ball and my more
reliable spells of direction. And a message I've received from Lord
Mehlen of Metreyll suggests that that must be the case. He was ..." The wizard tapped at a spot on
the map. "There. The home tabernacle of the Healing Hand Society.
That is where Cullinane hid. He is not there right now. But he has been.
Protected by the Hand." "You're certain?" "Yes," Wenthall hissed, "I am certain. I
haven't been able to see him with the ball, but there is no doubt that Karl Cullinane is alive, boy. He is alive. Look." Puffing from the exertion, the wizard
reached up to a high shelf and brought down
a chamois-wrapped parcel, almost a foot high. He unwrapped it carefully
before gently setting it down on a table, a
baked-clay statue of a bearded man, holding a long sword. Ahrmin looked closer. The statue was
incredibly detailed, down to individual hairs carved into the head. "Karl Cullinane?" "Karl Cullinane." Wenthall
rewrapped the statue and put it away. Then, from the folds of his robe, he produced a strange device: a hollow glass sphere
the size of his fist, containing a
murky yellow oil. "Look here." Reluctantly moving closer, Ahrmin peered into it. A mummified finger
floated in the sphere's center. The finger had been messily severed from its
owner's hand; a shard of bone
projected from its hacked-off end, and shreds
of skin and tendon waved slowly as it floated. "Hmmm." Walking quickly to a
compass on its stand in the corner of the room, the wizard took a sighting.
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN "He's moved again. Not far—but
south and west. Still south and west. ..." "Your pardon,
Master Wenthall, but I don't understand." For a moment, the
wizard's nostrils flared. "Stupid little—" he stopped himself. "Never
mind. Listen closely. "This device
works like a location spell. After much effort, I have managed to attune it to the
body of Karl Cullinane." As the wizard slowly spun the sphere in the palm of his
age-withered hand, the dismembered finger maintained its position, pointing unerringly
to the southeast. "Too much effort; getting that statue accurate enough for the spell
to work was the most precise, most finicky work I've had to do in ten years.
But never mind that. "As long as
Cullinane remains within range, this will show you in which direction he is. If, as
you turn the ball, the finger fails to point consistently in one direction, there are four
possible explanations. First, he has fled the Eren regions. Second, he is inside the
Hand sanctuary." Wenthall grimaced. "Third, he is otherwise
magically protected.
Or, last," the wizard said, smiling thinly, "he is dead." "Will it tell
me where he is? Not just the direction, but how far?" "Yes."
Wenthall nodded. "But only indirectly." The sphere disappeared in
the folds of his cloak. Two quick strides brought the wizard across the room.
He shuffled through a pile of papers and parchment on his desk and produced a map of
the Eren regions, spreading it out on a low table. "We know,"
he said, picking up a charstick, "that he is in this direction.
But where on this line?" Wenthall shrugged, then drew a solid line that
stretched from Pandathaway into the Middle Lands, through Holtun and Bieme into
Nyphien and beyond. "We can't be certain. And there is no way of knowing, at
any given moment,
whether he is moving or stationary; the device Ahrmin 117 is not as precise as we would wish. That
could be critical. Were he on his way to Aeryk, your task would be easy; were he traveling to
Therranj, it would be more difficult. Your guild is not in the good graces of the western Therranji these days." "True." Ahrmin smiled;
slave-taking raids did have a way of making
one's guild unpopular with the locals. "But I have been tracking his
progress for the past tenday. It seems that he is traveling through the Middle Lands, possibly bound for Ehvenor." "Ehvenor, Master Wenthall? Could he
have dealings in Faerie?" "That seems
unlikely," the wizard said, scowling. "It's too risky for humans.
Particularly normals. But there are other reasons for going to Ehvenor besides
trying to beg passage into Faerie. As you should know, slaver." . "Melawei. He's bound for Melawei." -1 ~r But why? There were
only two reasons for traveling to Melawei: copra and slaves. Neither seemed to apply to Karl Cullinane. "Quite
possibly," Wenthall said. "But possibly not; it's conceivable he has dealings in the Middle
Lands. I suggest you begin by taking passage
to Lundeyll—here." He tapped the map. "Take another sighting,
with both ball and compass. If Cullinane hasn't moved, the two lines will intersect at his location. "Now"—the
wizard raised his finger—"if ever you do lose him, you can use that technique to locate him precisely. "In any case,
from Lundeyll you can take the southern route through the Aershtyls, if he is still in the Middle Lands. There is a land route to Melawei; that
could be his intention. If so, you
should be able to beat him there by ship,
no?" "Certainly, Master Wenthall. The
overland route is said to be very
difficult." "Fine. I will
speak to your guildmaster later today. See him before you leave Pandathaway; he will give you a
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN writing that will allow you to commandeer a raiding ship. If, that
is, Cullinane is bound for Melawei." "Perhaps he'll
take ship to Melawei." / could catch him at sea. If the Flail or Scourge are in
Lundeport . . . "Perhaps." The wizard extended
his hand, the sphere cradled in his palm.
"Treat this device carefully; it is the product of far more time
and effort than I would like to recall. A
finger from a freshly killed maiden elf is difficult to obtain these days." Accepting the
proffered sphere, Ahrmin nodded grimly. "I'll find him, sir, and bring him
back to you," he said.
He started to turn away, but caught himself. No. His father wouldn't have wanted him to
leave it just at that; by profession, slavers were supposed to be cold and bloodless. "The reward still
stands? There will be expenses in this, Master Wenthall. I'll have to
hire a team. And if I commandeer a ship in
Lundeyll, I'll have to pay the seamen's wages. That is the law,
master." - The wizard chuckled thinly.
"Quite your father's son, eh? Very well, the reward is doubled.
Trebled, if you bring him back alive."
The wizard smiled. "I have a use for his skin, but it must be taken
while he lives." Despite himself, Ahrmin shuddered. But he
forced a smile and a nod. "You will
have it, sir. I swear." With a deep bow, he turned and left the
wizard's room. So Karl Cullinane was
alive and well. Probably, Cullinane often snickered over killing Ohlmin. He
wouldn't be snickering soon. yom killed Ohlmin, Karl Cullinane. You shouldn't have killed my father. CHAPTER NINE: Baron Furnael When we
are planning for posterity, we ought to remember
that virtue is not hereditary. —Thomas Paine "Relatively speaking, I'm beginning to like the Middle Lands," Ahira said, looking up at Karl from
the back of his dappled pony. "Bieme in particular." "Relatively speaking," Karl answered, tired. Ahira nodded. "We've seen a few
slaves, but neither slavers nor whips. By
local standards, this isn't bad." "By local standards." Ahira snorted.
"What are you today? A Greek chorus? Like you and Slovotsky in Chem?" Karl
laughed. "I didn't know you knew about that." "Walter told me.
Swore me to silence, until the statute of limitations runs out. Not that it matters
anymore." His smile faded. "What's bothering you?" "A touch of homesickness, I think." "You miss Andrea." "Yes, but . . . actually, I was
thinking about home-home, not the valley-home." Karl loosened his tunic to
scratch at his ribs. "I think I'd trade a finger for a bar of Lifebuoy, or a pound of Kenya double-A coffee, or
a case of toilet paper . . . hell, even for a pizza." "You complain too much. Why let it
get to you? At least we're not camping out
every damn night, for now. The beds may not be Posturepedics, but they are
soft." 119
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN Karl nodded. The
dwarf had a point. In the forty days of traveling since they had left the valley and worked their way into the Middle Lands, they had gone
through some hard times. Not dangerous, particularly; the only
slaver caravan they had run across had been
easy pickings, so much so that Karl didn't consider the encounter a
proper shakedown for Fialt and Tennetty. The slavers hadn't even bothered to set
out a watchman. The late slavers. Karl had been able to send seventeen
former slaves toward the valley, one of them
carrying a letter to Andy-Andy. He hadn't worried that the group might
not find the valley, as long as they passed
nearby. Ellegon would be flying watch at night. Once the dragon spotted
them and flew close enough to read their
minds, they would be met and guided
in. No danger
there, not for anyone. The closest Karl and
the rest had come to real danger was when Fialt accidentally slashed Tennetty
across the belly during a fencing lesson. Two quickly administered healing draughts had taken care of that; a
switch to wooden swords for training purposes ensured that they wouldn't again have to use up more of their small
supply of expensive healing draughts
for that sort of accident. It wasn't the danger that bothered Karl.
It was the drudgery. Moving camp every day had been fun during
the summer when Karl's Scout troop had gone
up to Manitoba to canoe down the
Assiniboine,.but part of the fun of that had been knowing that the primitive
life-style was temporary, that hot showers, clean clothes, fast food, and air conditioning awaited them at the end of
the trip. But that wasn't true here. The endless
grind of stopping to camp, finding
firewood, lighting a fire with flint and steel, cooking, cleaning pots
and pans with dirt clods, pitching their
tents, watering the horses, breaking Baron Furnael 121 camp in the morning—all of it had started to wear on him, bringing
him almost to the breaking point. Perhaps crossing the
border from Nyphien into Bieme hadn't saved his sanity, but sometimes it felt like it. Bieme was possibly the oldest of the
Middle Lands; certainly it was the best
developed. Tilled by drayhorses and
oxen, the farmland produced an abundance of grains and legumes,
one-tenth of the fields lying fallow under strict rotation. The productivity of
the land and its people had brought both wealth and trade to Bieme; grain
sellers and hostlers came from as far away as the Katharhd and Lundeyll to do business there. Few armsmen were evident, and then only
singly, or in small groups. They functioned
primarily as a constabulary, rather than a standing army. While there was no love lost between Therranj and any of the
Middle Lands, an attack on Bieme
would have to go through one of the
surrounding principalities first, giving the Biemei ample time to prepare;
there was no need to have a large nonproductive soldier class standing
by, although all freefarmers were required to produce a well-honed sword for inspection on two different holidays
each year. The best thing, though, was the inns along
the main thoroughfare. By law, each community of five hundred or more along the
Prince's Road had to sponsor a well-kept inn, the high standards maintained
through frequent inspections by the local baron's armsmen— where there was a
local baron—and infrequent but potentially
more penalty-bearing ones by the Prince's. Throughout most of
the Prince's Road, the village inns were no more than a day's ride apart. In the few places where villages were more widely spaced, there
still was an inn, directly supported
by the crown. And the Prince's Inns
were the most luxurious and least expensive of all. "There's a
trick to all of this," Karl said, as he reined in Carrot, forcing her
to keep close to the rest of the group. "Easy, girl." He stroked the rough
hair on her neck. She
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN was still dry, even after half a day's
ride. His only complaint about her was her tendency to go at her own quick pace, her sneering
disdain for the slower pace of the other horses. "A trick?" Karl nodded. "Remember Kiar?" "That inn with
the marble floors? Not quite as lush as the Inn of Quiet Repose, but a nice place." The dwarf nodded. "This sour beer isn't all that good,
but that cook really knew how to use
it as a marinade. Although," he added under his breath, "I guess I do
miss some things from home. I'd kill
for a Genesee, or a Miller. Or even a Schlitz." Karl raised an eyebrow. "Kill?" Ahira shrugged.
"Well, maim. I really do love a good beer." "Don't remember you being much of a
beer drinker back home." Ahira frowned. "I had to be careful
about when I drank. It used to really start
my kidneys going." Karl shot a glance
over his shoulder. That had become a reflex, and one that he didn't intend to
give up, even in the relative safety of the Prince's Road. But there was no
problem. Tennetty, Fialt, and Aeia rode behind, Chak bringing up the rear. The
little man favored him with a
friendly nod and a slight, open-handed
wave. "So?" Karl asked. "Beer does that to everyone." Ahira chuckled.
"You're forgetting." He raised a thick arm and flexed it, the chainmail tightening around his biceps. "I wasn't just anyone. Muscular
dystrophy, remember?" "I know, but—" "What does that
have to do with it? Karl, I couldn't go to the John by myself; couldn't even
lift myself out of my wheelchair
and onto the toilet. Going out for a drink with
the guys wasn't something I could do, unless I had my roommate-slash-attendant with me, to drag me
off to Baron Furnael 123 the bathroom. I used to envy the hell out of the way all the rest of you were so mobile." "You don't anymore." "Well,
no," the dwarf said, unconvincingly. Karl nodded to
himself. There, was something he had that Ahira didn't, and that was the memory of always being sound
of body, of being able to take for granted something
as trivial as going out for a few beers. As if he were reading
his mind, Ahira cocked an eyebrow.
"Let's leave it alone. 'What cannot be cured . . .' You were talking about the inns?" "Right," Karl said.
"There's a trick there. If you notice, a lot of the inns were originally
built by the crown. Back in Kiar, they'd
taken down the Prince's coat of arms, but the outline was still on the
stone. A prince built it, and supported it for a while." "And then?" "People moved
nearby, probably got a good deal from the Prince on the land, and such; the crown
brought in a cleric, probably sponsored a smith or two." "Cute. And then, when the population
was large enough, the Prince gave the territory to a baron, and made the locals support the inn." "Right." Karl nodded. "At
least, that's the way I read it." And,
if it had worked that way, it spoke well for the local form of
government, despite Karl's admitted bias against
feudalism. There was nothing wrong with a bit of economic encouragement.
It was coercion that was the problem with
feudal societies. "Hmm.' Ahira
considered it for a moment. "Possible. And it's not as oppressive around here as
we've seen elsewhere. That why you haven't signaled for a fight?" Karl shook his head.
No, that wasn't it at all. The plan didn't call for them to attack every slaveowner they ran into;
that would quickly result in their being buried under a flood of bodies: Anyone
who either owned a slave, wanted to own a
slave, or had owned a slave would see
them as the enemy.
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN Attacking slavers was
different. Outside of the markets,
slavers were unpopular; locals always knew that in a slaver's eye, everyone was
potential merchandise. "No," he said, "we fight slavers, and in self-defense." "Liberally
construed." Ahira threw back his head and laughed. "Like the way you and Walter decided that attacking Orhmyst was self-defense." "Well, it felt like
self-defense." Karl dismissed the subject with an airy wave. He stood in
the saddle and turned, raising his head. "Chak?" "Yes, Kharl?" "Where are we stopping
tonight?" "Furnael."
Chak dropped his reins to rub his hands together. "Best inn in the Middle Lands. We might even meet Baron Furnael himself." Tennetty
snorted. "What a thrill." "Time for some practice, Fialt,
Tennetty," Karl said, gesturing at them
to follow him out of the common room and
into the courtyard. Chak was ready; he had the bag of practice swords slung over a shoulder. Ahira yawned and stretched. "I'm
going to get some sleep. See you folks in
the room." Aeia put down her rag doll and lifted her
head. "Me, too?" "Well
. . ." "Please, Karl? You didn't let me, last time. Please?" He smiled down at her as he nodded
genially, then gently rubbed his fingers
through her hair. "Sure." Sure, little one, I'll be the gracious father
substitute and teach you a bit more about how to disembowel a rapist. Goddam world. An eleven-year-old girl should be thinking
about dolls and boys and stuff like that. "Let's go-" Wordlessly, Chak
followed, carrying the canvas bag of wooden swords. The
courtyard of the Furnael inn was a large open Baron Furnael 125 square, surrounded by the windowed walls of the inn proper. Slate
flagstones checkered the ground, well-trimmed
clumps of grass separating them. Heavy with fruit, evenly spaced orange
trees dotted the courtyard. Karl unbuckled
his sword and hung it on a low branch, then reached up and pulled down a
couple of oranges, tossing one to Chak before quartering the other with his beltknife. Nothing for the other three; they would
get theirs later, as a reward for a good session. If at all. He ate quickly, not minding that some of
the juice dripped down his chin. The fruit
was cool and sweet. He tossed the peels to Chak, who stashed them under
the equipment bag. "Now," he said, wiping the remaining juice and pulp from his chin, "we're going to
start with a bit of hand-to-hand today." Karl slipped out of his jerkin and
unlaced his sandals, stripping down to breechclout and leggings. It promised to be a
hot session; he slipped out of his leggings, awkwardly balancing on each foot
alternately. Already down to his breechclout, Chak hung
up his sword and nodded. "This keeohokoshinkee stuff of yours?" "Kyokoshinkai. And yes." "Good." Chak nodded his approval. Fialt frowned, rubbing a finger through
his salt-and-pepper beard. "Rather do
swords," he said. Which was, for Fialt, being unusually talkative. Tennetty recoiled in
mock horror—and probably a bit of
real disgust. "Not around me. Not even with a wood sword. Liable to put my eye out while you're trying for a thrust to the kneecap." "Fialt," Chak said, "you'll
do swords with me, later. After Kharl's
done with you." He shot a grin at Karl. "I'll make him sweat a bit. A bit more." Karl nodded. When it came to fencing, Chak
was the better teacher. There was a good
reason. Karl had gained his skills
with a sword as part of the transfer to this world. 126 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN He'd never had to go through the long hours
of learning. There was no
deliberate method to his swordplay; his arm and wrist just did it, as of
their own volition. A gain? Well, yes;
his instantly acquired fencing skills had saved his life on more than one occasion.
But it was a loss, too; he'd
never had the experience of learning, of knowing
how to improve his skills. While he had run into only one swordsman more adept
than himself, there were undoubtedly
others. The loss went beyond his inability to
teach. Without knowing how to learn swordfighting, his skills were frozen at their present level. He would never get
better. Guess
I'll have to live with it. But with his karate
skills, there was the possibility of improvement, enhanced by the innate agility,
balance, and
reflexes of his body on this side. Here, he could easily have won enough in
competition—if they had competitions here—to qualify for a brown belt; back
home, the best he had been able to do was green. "Loosen up,
first," Karl said, breaking into a series of bends and stretches.
The others followed his example; working out without first warming up was an
invitation to wrenched muscles and torn tendons. After his joints and tendons stopped
protesting and settled down to a nice, quiet ache, he straightened.
"Enough. Let's start." Tennetty, Fialt, and Aeia lined up
opposite him, bowing Japanese-style, their eyes always on his. Karl returned their bows. Were the traditional
customs irrelevant here? he wondered, not for the first time. Possibly. Quite
possibly the customs of the Japanese dojo were out of place; probably they had
been silly back home. Probably it would be easier for him to use simple or compound
Erendra names for punches, kicks, blocks, and strikes. But the traditions seemed to have worked back home;
there was no sense in violating custom without a compelling reason. "Sanchin
dachi," he said, swinging his right foot past and slightly in front of his left and planting his feet a
shoulder width apart, toes canted slightly in. Sanchin dachi was the
best practicing stance for strikes and punches,
as well as snap-kicks. Not necessarily the best fighting stance—Karl had
always favored zenkutsu-dachi, a split-legged, forward-leaning
stance—but a natural one that could be assumed without triggering a violent response. "We'll
start with a few seiken." "Chudan-tsuki, sensei?" Chak asked, as he took his position at the
end of the line, next to Tennetty. "Fine. Start with your right
hand." As always, he began by demonstrating. Seiken chudan-tsuki, a
punch to the midsection, began with the nonpunching hand extended outward as
though it had just been used to block, the punching hand pulled back, the fist
inverted, resting at his side, just under
the pectorals. He moved slowly, pulling his left hand
back as he brought his right hand out, turning his wrist so that the back of
his hand faced upward, tensing his entire body just at the moment that the blow
would have made contact, had there been a real opponent. "And now the left." He
demonstrated, then dropped his hands.
"Now ... on my count, seiken chudan-tsuki; groups of four." He moved closer to them. "One—keep
it slow, now; follow the pace. Two—better,
better. Three. Four. Speed it up a bit, now. One, two, three, four. Full
speed, just as if it were for real. One-two-three-four. Keep going." Chak was doing it
properly, as usual; his stance easy, he punched smoothly, his arms moving like greased pistons. Karl passed behind the little man and
moved to help Tennetty. "No, keep your wrist straight," he said, ad- 128 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN justing her hand. "Mmm . . . better. A
bit more tensing of the belly when you strike. Don't rise to the
balls of your feet.
Flat-footed blows have much more power." He moved on to Fialt. Fialt was still throwing the shoulder of his striking arm forward. Standing in
front of him, Karl reached out and grasped his shoulders. "Try it now. Ignore me." With Karl's much longer reach, Fialt's punch wouldn't
land. Fialt punched the air in front of him, pushing his shoulder forward against Karl's hand. "No
good," Karl said. "You've
got to keep the shoulder steady. Chak?" "Not the knives, again?" The little man frowned. "Knives, again. Tennetty, Aeia, keep it
up." Chak walked over to the tree where his clothes and equipment
hung and drew his two beltknives, tossing them
hilt-first to Karl. Karl caught them, then rested the knifepoints gently against Fialt's shoulders.
"Now try it." Fialt
scowled, and punched timidly. "That
was better. At least your shoulders didn't move. But," Karl said,
increasing the pressure of the knives against Fialt's shoulders, "you
didn't have any force behind the blow.
Wouldn't have squashed a bug. Do it right, now." Still a timid punch. "Do it
better or I swear I'll stick you," he said, just as his karate teacher had once said to him.
Karl wondered for a moment if Mr. Katsuwahara had been lying, and dismissed the notion as blasphemous. This time, Fialt struck properly, his
shoulders rocksteady, his body tensing at the moment of impact. "Nice." Karl nodded, handing the
knives back to Chak. He turned toward Aeia, and— Fialt struck, a
perfectly executed seiken chudan-tsuki that landed just below Karl's solar
plexus, knocking him back. Blindly, Karl brought his right arm around
to block Fialt's second blow, then swung his right leg into a fast but gentle roundhouse kick that bowled Fialt
over. Baron Furnael 129 "Very
pretty," a voice called from the balcony overlooking the courtyard.
Karl glanced up. A man stood, looking down at them, his hands spread on the balcony
rail. "Chak. Handle it." Karl jerked
his thumb in the direction of the voice as he stooped to help Fialt up. "Nicely done, Fialt." Fialt's grizzled face broke into a smile. "I did it right?" "Very. You hit me legally, and hit me
hard. If you'd really been aiming here,"—Karl tapped himself on the solar
plexus—"you would've had me." He clapped a hand on Fialt's shoulder.
"Keep it up and we'll make a warrior
of you yet." "Just a man who can protect himself
and his own. That's all I ask." Fialt nodded grimly. "That's
all." "I said, very pretty, sir." "And who are you?" Karl turned. "Zherr, Baron Furnael, sir." He
bowed. "May I join you?" At Karl's nod,
Furnael walked back into the building, reappearing just a few moments later at the
door into the garden, two
armsmen and an old man in gray wizard's robes
at his side. Baron Furnael was a tall man in his early
fifties, perhaps an inch or so over six feet. Despite his age, he seemed to be in good shape: His thick wrists were
heavily muscled, his leggings bulged
with well-developed calves and
thighs, only a small potbelly puffed out the front of his leather tunic. Furnael's face was deeply lined, and
stubble-free enough to suggest that he
shaved himself both carefully and frequently, or else had someone else shave
him. On his upper lip, a pencil-thin mustache was heavily streaked with gray, although his short-cropped
hair was as black as a raven. Karl kept his chuckle
to himself. That bespoke a bit of vanity. But why hadn't Furnael dyed the
mustache, too? A bit of
self-honesty? Or was it just that whatever dye they used here would have stained his lip? 130 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Baron." Karl bowed slightly,
Fialt, Tennetty, and Chak following suit. Aeia glanced up at
him, looking ready to break into tears. Strangers often affected her that way.
Particularly male strangers. Which was understandable. "Easy, little
one." He smiled. "I think it's time for your nap." She nodded and ran
away, her bare feet slapping the flagstones. Furnael smiled. "A pleasant child. Yours?" "No. But in my care. She's a Mel. I'm not." "So I see."
Furnael turned to the armsmen at his right and snapped his fingers. The armsman produced
a bottle of
wine, and uncorked it with his teeth before handing it to Furnael. "A
drink for luck?" Furnael asked, his voice making it clear it was more a command
than a question. He tilted
back the bottle and drank deeply. "Zherr Furnael
wishes you luck, friend." Smiling thinly and wiping his hand on a
purple silk handkerchief he produced from a
sleeve, Furnael handed the bottle to Karl.
"Enjoy." In the Eren regions,
a drink for luck was a custom that was invariably followed by an introduction,
whether the drinkers already knew each other or not. Typically, a drink for luck would
take place between two strangers meeting on a road, the provider of the wine
drinking first to assure the other that it was unpoisoned. The fact that
Furnael had suggested—ordered—a drink for luck in a situation where the
custom wasn't really appropriate was suspicious. The fact that his armsman had an opened
bottle ready was more so. Karl drank deeply.
The rich, fruity wine was icy cold. "Karl Cullinane thanks you, Baron." Furnael's smile
broadened. "So. I was wondering if it was you, in this company; it's said that you
travel with a Hand cleric and
another warrior from a land called Seecaucuze.
Not a Mel child and a Katharhd." Secaucus was Walter's hometown.
So it was only Baron Furnael 131 known that Karl had been traveling with Doria and Walter.
Which suggested that someone had seen the three
of them at the cesspit when Karl had freed Ellegon, or that some spell
had been able to look back, into that time
and place. But how would anyone on this side have known that Walter came
from New Jersey? Slovotsky hadn't mentioned it, as far as Karl knew. Probably Walter had mentioned it to
some local, at some time, and that local had talked to someone else about the
stranger he had met, and someone in Pandathaway had started putting two and two
together. That didn't sound good at all. Too
damn many unknowns. "There has been a price on your head
for more than a year, friend Karl,"
Furnael said. "It seems that Pandathaway wants you." Chak started to edge toward his sword; one
of Furnael's armsmen, hand near the hilt of
his shortsword, moved between the little man and the tree where Chak's falchion hung. Even if Furnael meant them harm, this
wasn't the right time to do something about
it. The odds were poor, with the wizard right there, behind Furnael.
"Stand easy, Chak," Karl said. "Stand easy. That goes for you, too," he said, holding up a palm to
forestall any move by Tennetty or Fialt. "I don't think the Baron
is out to collect the reward." Furnael spread his
hands. "You are wanted in Pandathaway,
friend Karl. This is Bieme. And here we have
no love for the Guilds Council." He gestured at the wizard who stood
behind him. "Sammis, here, once was a guild master, studying daily
in the Great Library. Today, he uses his
death spells to kill corndiggers; he was thrown out of the Wizards'
Guild, forced to flee Pandathaway." "What'd
he do, give out a spell for free?" Furnael cocked his
head to one side, his forehead furrowed. "How did you know?" He
shrugged. "In any case,
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN it is fortunate for you that my
Prince is neither allied with Pandathaway nor particularly hungry for coin," he
said, laying
his hand on the hilt of his sword. "Even if you are as good as they say, we do have the
advantage." "That depends on how you look at it,
Baron." Ahira's voice came from the balcony above. About time. Karl glanced up.
Beside Ahira, little Aeia stood,
the spare crossbow held clumsily in her arms, leveled
at one of FurnaeFs armsmen. Ahira held his own crossbow easily, the
bolt lined up not on Furnael, but on the wizard. "Aeia can't cock the bow, but she can put out a sparrow's eye at sixty
paces." Karl suppressed a
smile. Aeia could probably hit a cow at five paces, if the cow was big enough. The little girl
tried hard, but she had no talent for bowmanship at all. Ahira. went on:
"And I'm not too bad with a crossbow, myself. We're generally peaceable folk. How about you?" As usual, Ahira had picked his potential
target correctly. If the wizard opened his mouth to use a spell, Ahira could
put a bolt through his back before the first words
were fairly out. Karl folded his arms across his chest.
"You were saying, Baron?" Furnael smiled
broadly. "Again, very pretty, sir. I was saying that I must have a word with my chief man-at-arms;
he didn't tell me about the others, just you. And I was also saying that you
simply must be my guests at dinner, at my home. We dine at sundown. And . .
." Furnael let his voice trail off. "And?" "And, as long as you break no law,
harm no one, do not offend my Prince, you are safe here. Within my barony, at
least. You have my word on that, Karl Cullinane." And even if you're eager to try to collect
the reward, you'd rather do it over my dead body than yours. Karl Baron Furnael 133 hesitated. If they had to take on Furnael, there probably
wouldn't be a better time. But he couldn't kill everyone who might
present a threat. "We are honored, Baron. And accept." The baron's smile
made Karl's palm itch for the feel of his saber's sharkskin hilt. Furnael gestured at the nearer of his
armsmen. "Hivar will conduct you to the estate." He turned and walked away, the other armsman and
the wizard at his side. "What was that
all about?" Chak asked, his swordbelt 'back around his waist. Karl shrugged.
"I think the Baron wants to know what we're up to. What I'm up to. Seems that freeing Ellegon has gotten
me some interesting word-of-mouth. It also seems
that word about what we're doing hasn't gotten to Bieme yet.' "So? How do we handle it?" "We'll
see." Karl turned to the others. "Well, what are you all standing
around for? This practice Isn't over. You, there. Hivar, is it? These aren't
Pandathaway's Games. If you
want to stay around, then strip down and join in." Sitting in the
honored-guest position at the foot of the long oaken table, Karl wiped his mouth and
hands with a linen napkin. Just what are you up to, Zherr FurnaelP he thought. Lifting the wedge with both
hands, Karl took another nibble of the sweetberry pie. He ate carefully; the dark filling was bubbly hot. "I must admit to a bit of
embarrassment," Furnael said, pushing
his high-backed chair away from the table. "I've never had a guest
go hungry at my table before. And
two?" He daubed at his mustache and the corners of his mouth with a purple silken napkin, then
dropped the napkin back to his lap
as the white-linened servitor at his side
held out a washing bowl for his use. "I wouldn't have thought it
possible," he said, drying his hands
on a towel, gesturing at the servant to continue 134 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN down the
table to Fialt, Tennetty, Aeai, and Karl. Karl considered another helping of pie,
but decided against it. Overeating any further wasn't the way to cap the best
meal he'd had in months. Whatever your flaws may be, Zherr Furnael, you do
set a fine table. "Normally it
wouldn't be possible, Baron," Karl said. A fresh washbowl was presented to him;
Karl washed the meat juices and berry stains from his fingers. "At least as far as I can imagine." With a slight nod
and a vague frown, Furnael sat back, knitting his fingers over his belly. His
face a study in concern, he cocked his head at Chak and Ahira, who sat side
by side, across from the
others, their silver plates clean and empty
in front of them. "Is there anything you would eat? Anything?" Ahira shook his head.
"My apologies, Baron, but it's a religious matter. It's the fast of St. Rita Moreno, you know. My ancestors would never forgive me if I
let food or water pass my lips
today." Furnael furrowed his forehead. "I
must admit I'm not familiar with your faith, friend Ahira. Which warrens are you from?" The dwarf frowned at the question, as
though surprised at Furnael's prying.
"The Lincoln Tunnels. Far away." Ahira sighed, the picture of
a dwarf far away from home, missing the comfortable familiarity of his own warrens. Furnael opened his
mouth as though to ask just exactly where, and how far away, then visibly
reconsidered. Dismissing the subject with a wave and a shrug, he turned to Chak. "Surely a
Katharhd doesn't have religious objections to my food." Chak glanced at Karl. For once, the little
man didn't seem pleased with him. Chak
didn't relish having had to pass on
the Baron's fare. Platters of juice-dripping roast beef, the slices
crisp, brown, and garlicky around the edges,
purply rare in the middle; spit-roasted potatoes, so hot that they had to be nibbled carefully from the
end of
a knife; tiny loaves of warm,
pan-baked bread, each with a
dollop of sweet, icy butter at its core; bowls of a pungent mixture of chotte and burdock, sauteed together in wine
and fresh garlic—it had been a delightful meal, much better than Karl had had
since Pandathaway. But I don't think we're going to trust you
any too far, Baron Zherr Furnael. You reek of hidden intent. Never did like
people who do that. Furnael
had politely sampled all of the food first;
eating from the same table as the baron probably wasn't risky. But only probably. The cover story, such as it was, had more
than a few holes in it. But for all of them
to trust Furnael's food was too much
of a chance. Best to keep up the pretense. Karl nodded. "My
apologies," Chak said, glancing with apparently real regret at the
silver platters, still well laden with food, that lay invitingly on the table. "But this western
food doesn't agree with me. Haven't been able to stomach what you eat here; I've been living on my morning
meals of oat stew and greens for more tendays than I like to recall." "Oat stew?" Furnael shrugged.
"Well, if that's what you desire ..."
He gestured to one of his servitors, a short,
plump, round-faced woman. "Enna? Would you-" "No,"
Chak said. "Please." The
Baron's face clouded over. "And why not?" Good question. They hadn't worked out what
to say if Furnael was able to provide such a
bizarre and disgusting dish. Ahira spoke up. "With all due
respect, you're not thinking it through, Baron." "Well?" "If all you were able to keep down
was oat stew, how eager would you be to eat more than once a day?" Karl chuckled.
"Or even that often." He looked over at the dwarf. Nice going, Ahira. "Baron?" 136 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Yes?" "It was a wonderful meal and all, but
what's this really all about?" "What
do you mean?" "What I mean is
this: I'm wanted in Pandathaway; there's a large reward on my head. You say
you're not interested in collecting that reward. Fine; I'll accept that." The Baron lifted a
razor-sharp eating knife and considered its bright edge. "Although you
are not convinced of it." Furnael smiled thinly. "Perhaps that's wise under the circumstances;
perhaps not." He tested the edge of the knife against his thumbnail, then
replaced it on the table, the point, perhaps by chance, aligned with Karl's chest. "What I'm not
convinced of," Karl said, "is that you invite everyone who stops in
the Furnael inn into your home. And it'd be impossible to believe that you'd provide this sort of
wonderful fare—" "I thank you, sir." Furnael inclined his head. "—for all
guests of the inn. It seems to me that there has to be something else on your
mind." "Point well
taken, Karl Cullinane. I do have a business proposition for you. If you are as
good with that sword as your reputation suggests." "I doubt I'd be interest—" "Would you at
least listen to it, as a courtesy?" Furnael stood, dropping the napkin on his
chair. He lifted his swordbelt from the rack next to his chair and buckled it on. "Let's take
a short ride together and talk about it privately. These days I get little enough
chance to ride just for the pleasure of it. Enna, see to the needs of our other guests, if you
please." Karl stood and
buckled on his own sword. "Very well." He walked with Furnael toward the
arching doorway. Ahira cleared his throat. "Baron?" Furnael turned, clearly irritated. "Yes, friend Ahira?" The dwarf steepled his hands in front of his chin. "It's Baron Furnael 137 occurred to me that you may have a fallback
position in mind, if Karl turns you down. And, since you are a wise man, that fallback position is undoubtedly
something terribly wise, such as wishing us well, as we go on our way." "And if my, as you put it, fallback
position isn't so wise?" Furnael
gestured vaguely. "As an example only, what if the alternative I
present Karl Cullinane with is my taking
possession of a young girl who is manifestly an escaped slave, and returning her to her proper owners?" "Aided by, no
doubt, your full complement of twenty or so armsmen, some of whom you have stationed outside, as a
precaution." "No
doubt." Furnael smiled. "Baron,
may I tell you a story?" "This hardly seems the occasion." "Please?"
The dwarf smiled thinly. "At least listen, as a courtesy to a guest?
It's a very short story, Baron. And it might amuse you." Furnael gave in, seating himself on the
empty chair next to Ahira. "Since you
insist." "Good. Let me begin it like this.
There once was a slaver named Ohlmin. A master of the blade, Ohlmin won the
swords competition in Pandathaway's Games every
time he entered. With one exception. "One man defeated him. Karl
Cullinane, fighting in his first competition, ever. As you perhaps can
understand, Ohlmin resented that." Karl quelled a smile. That was true, as
far as it went, but Ahira's rendition left
out a few critical facts. For one thing, Ohlmin had been a better
swordsman than Karl; Karl had won only by a
judicious application of a hole in the
rules of the swords competition. Ahira went on: "For that reason and
others, Ohlmin hunted our party down, and caught us in the Waste of Elrood.
Along with a hired wizard, Ohlmin had fifteen slavers
with him, all good with their swords. "Ohlmin
put Karl, Walter Slovotsky, and
me in
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN chains. He spent a bit of time working
Karl over with his fists, as
well. After a number of hours, we managed to break
free." "How?" Furnael raised an
eyebrow. "Slavers' chains are too strong to be broken, even by a
dwarf." Ahira smiled. "Trick of the trade. In
any case, break free we did. I managed to
account for four of the slavers before
a crossbow bolt struck me down. The wizard who was with us killed their
wizard. For the sake of the injured among us, Karl put us all in a wagon and
fled, leaving one of their wagons aflame, and half of the slavers dead." "Most
impressive," Furnael said. "But I already knew that Karl Cullinane
is a great swordsman." "I'm sure you did, Baron." The
dwarf inclined his head. "What you
didn't know is this: Eight of the slavers were alive when we fled. Ohlmin was among them." Ahira sighed. "I wanted to leave it
at that. We were away, and free, and alive. We all hurt a bit. Karl had used the last of our healing draughts to save me.
And Karl wasn't at his best; having your arms chained over your head for
hours leaves your shoulders weak and stiff. I wanted to call it a day, leave
the slavers behind." The Baron cocked his head to one side.
"But Karl Cullinane didn't." The
pallor of his skin belied his calm tone. "No. With another of our party, Karl
went back for Ohlmin and the rest. Two against eight." "I suppose Karl Cullinane and his
companion gave a good account of
themselves." "Karl left
seven of them lying dead on the ground. All save Ohlmin." "But Ohlmin got away." Furnael
started to rise. "Nevertheless, a very impressive feat. I thank you for
telling me, friend Ahira. Now, Karl Cullinane, if you would walk this way?" Ahira laid a hand on the Baron's arm.
"No, Baron, I said that he left seven
of them. He didn't leave Ohlmin; Baron Furnael 139 Karl brought Ohlmin's head back, as a remembrance." The dwarf removed his hand, and smiled amiably.
"Have a nice talk." The night was bright, lit by the
shimmering of the million stars flickering
overhead and the score of smoking torches
along the ramparts of Furnael's keep. Sitting comfortably in Carrot's saddle,
Karl rode beside Furnael. The Baron was mounted on a slightly smaller, snow-white mare whose black marking over
her right eye made her look like an
equine pirate. As they rode slowly
along the narrow dirt road outside the keep, Furnael paused beneath each of the
four guard stations. At each station the noble silently raised a hand to greet the watchman peering out through
an embrasure, leaning lazily against a
jutting stone merlon. Each guard
nodded and waved in response. By the time they reached the Prince's
Road, Karl was tired of Furnael's silence. "Baron?" "Bear with me
awhile longer, Karl Cullinane." With a flick of the reins, he turned his horse east
onto the Prince's Road, Karl following. Soon, the walls of the keep were far
behind; Furnael picked up the pace as they topped a hill, then started down
toward a cluster of low wooden buildings, half a mile away, wisps of smoke
rising from their chimneys and twisting into
the night. "Those are the slave quarters of my own farm,"
Furnael said. On both sides of the road,
fields of chest-high cornstalks waved and whispered to themselves in the light breeze. "I have been keeping
loose security," he said, with a deep sigh. "No passwords; I have a few armsmen, and no soldiers
at all. But that's going to have to change. Everything's going to change." "Things look peaceful enough,
Baron," Karl said. "If you'll
forgive the contradiction." "If I
wouldn't forgive being contradicted, would that
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN make things look one whit less peaceful?" Furnael smiled. "Enough of this formality: if I may
call you Karl, I would be honored if
you would call me Zherr. When we are
by ourselves, that is." At Karl's nod, Furnael smiled, then pursed his lips, shaking his head. "And
it is truly said that looks can be
deceiving. Do you know the Middle Lands
well?" "Not at all." "Except for some problems with the
Therranji, it's been peaceful for most of my life, and unless the Therranji push much harder than they have been,
they're not going to threaten Nyphien, much less Bieme. "It's been
peaceful for a long time. For all of His Highness' reign, for that matter. His
father and mine settled the
boundary disputes with Nyphien to the west; our grandfathers fought Holtun. Most of His Highness' soldiers have long
settled down to their farms. In all the country, it'd be hard to find a score
of Bieme-born men who've been blooded in combat. Displaying a shiny, well-honed sword on Birthday or Midsummer doesn't make a man a warrior." Furnael indicated the
keep behind them with a wave of his hand. "I have forty armsmen. Only Hivar is
native to
Bieme—his father served mine, as did his grandfather. The others are
slephmelrad, too, but originally outland mercenaries. I'd thought we could grow fat
and happy through
my life, and that of my sons. I'd thought that. And I still hope so." "But you don't
believe it anymore?" Karl shook his head. "The reasons don't show,
Baron." "Zherr." "The reasons
don't show, Zherr. I haven't seen any signs of war or any sort of deprivation in
all of Bieme." "Ahh, you see war and deprivation as linked?" "Obviously, Zherr. War causes deprivation." "True. But it
can be the other way around, as well." Furnael pursed his lips. "There is
danger in wealth, even if it's only enough wealth to keep your people well fed, Baron Furnael 141 clothed, with perhaps a bit more to pay the
cleric. What if your neighbor isn't wealthy? "The border wars with Nyphien started
because of a two-year case of dustblight
that hit western Nyphien and part of
Khar. The first year, they paid the Spidersect to abate the blight, but barely recovered half their
corn, less of their wheat, and none of their oats or barley; the second year, there was no money left for the
Spiders, and the Nyphs tried to push
their borders east, into Bieme. "By the third harvest, the war was
fully underway." The Baron shook his
head. "I've heard tales of it. Not a pretty war. Not pretty, at
all." "And that's happening again?" "No, not
exactly. Mmm, hold up a moment." Furnael stopped his horse, then bent to pick a
fist-sized stone from the
road. He threw it onto the road's rough shoulder, then remounted. "A
different direction; a different problem.
Less than a day's ride to the east, both barony Furnael and the
Principality of Bieme end, and Holtun and
the barony of my good friend Vertum Adahan begin. And Vertum Adahan is a good friend, though I've
never crossed his doorstep, or he mine." "Why?" The Baron shook his
head sadly. "There was a blood feud between our families. Depending on
which side you believe, my
great-grandmother was either stolen from her
husband, Baron Adahan, or left him voluntarily. The Baron took another
wife, but Adahan men raided into Furnael throughout the rest of my
great-grandfather's rule, and into my
grandfather's." "Which side do you believe?" Furnael smiled thinly.
"Sir, I will have you know that I am a dutiful great-grandson; of course great-grandmother
left her husband of her own free will to go to my lecherous great-grandfather, and even
insisted that he give her a room in the keep that locked only from the outside, in order to
reassure him that she didn't want to go back to Adahan." He shook his
head. "I'll show you 142 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN her room,
if you'd like. You can decide for yourself. "But, as I was
saying, while the feud died down during my father's time, the old feelings still run
deep; there are family
graveyards on many of my freefarmers' holdings with tombstones that read
'murdered by the swine Adahan.' I'd hoped that in the next generation . .
." He caught himself. "But I talk too much. I hope you'll forgive me,
Karl, but it's so rare that I see anyone who isn't either one of my
slephmelrad, or slaves, or a foreigner trying to grub a few extra wagonloads of
corn for his coin; it's a pleasure to speak freely." "I...
appreciate that, Zherr." Karl didn't believe for a second that Furnael was speaking freely. The Baron was trying to
gain his sympathy. Why? Was it just that Furnael didn't think he could
intimidate Karl into taking on whatever job Furnael had for him? Or was there something more? As they neared the cluster of wooden
shacks, each about twenty feet square, the door of the nearest swung open and a
woman and three children walked out, smiling
and calling out greetings. Though calling them all children might
have been an overstatement; the tallest was
a black-haired boy of sixteen or so, who looked much like a younger
version of Furnael, although he was, like the other two children, dressed in a
farmer's cotton tunic and loose drawstring pantaloons, instead of leather and
wool. He ran up and took the reins of FurnaePs horse in hand, gesturing to
another to do the same for Carrot's. Furnael dismounted,
urging Karl to follow him. "Karl Cullinane, it is my honor to present my
eldest son: Rahff, the future
Baron Furnael. Rahff, this is Karl Cullinane. Yes, son, the Karl
Cullinane." What was the son and
heir of a baron doing in the slave quarters, dressed like a peasant, his face streaked with dirt and
sweat, his hands blistered? Karl didn't ask; when
Furnael was ready, he'd tell Karl whatever he wanted Karl to know.
Baron Furnael 143 Rahff bowed stiffly,
his eyes wide, his jaw sagging. "The outlaw, sir? Really?" An
expression of awe flickered across Rahff s face. Karl was
uncomfortable; he'd never had to deal with a case of hero worship before. "That depends on your definition of outlaw," Karl said. "But
I'm probably the one you're thinking
of." "It is a ... pleasure
to meet you, sir," Rahff said, the formality of his manner in comical contrast to his humble dress and grimy face. The smallest of the
children, a boy a year or so shy of Aeia's age and a few inches short of her
height, ran up and threw his
arms around Furnael, burying his face against
the Baron's waist. With a warm smile, Furnael ran his fingers through the boy's hair. "And this is Rahff s brother,
my son Thomen. Don't be offended at his silence,
Karl; he is always shy around strangers." "Of course,
Baron. I am pleased to meet you, Rahff. And you, Thomen." "Not
'Baron'—Zherr, please," the baron said, picking Thomen up with a
sweep of his arm. "This isn't a formal occasion." "Zherr." The woman walked
over. She looked something like a slightly younger female version of Furnael,
with the same high cheekbones, though she had a more rounded jaw. Her hair was the
same raven black. "Karl
Cullinane," Furnael said, "my cousin, wife, and the mother of my
sons: Beralyn, Lady Furnael." Furnael's voice was more formal now,
carrying in it a hint of distaste. Or anger, perhaps. "Karl Cullinane," she said,
taking his hand in both hers. In the light
streaming through the open door, her hands
were red and swollen; some of the blisters on her fingers had broken open. "I hope you will
forgive me for not greeting you at
our home." "Of course, Lady." He blowed
over her hands. "Of course." What
the hell is a baroness doing here? 144 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN "And," Furnael went on, casting
a quick frown at Beralyn, "the youngster holding your horse is Bren
Adahan, son and heir of Vertum, Baron Adahan, of whom I have spoken."
Furnael set Thomen down and walked over,
clapping a hand to Bren's shoulder. "Good to see you, Bren. Is your tenday
going well?" "Very well,
Baron." Raising an eyebrow to ask for permission, Bren reached up to stroke Carrot's neck the moment Karl nodded. "A fine horse, Karl
Cullinane." He ran sure hands over her withers, patted at her belly
and flank, then gently felt at her left rear hock. All the while, Carrot stood proudly, her
head held a bit higher than normal, her nostrils flared, as though daring Bren
to find any hint or trace of a flaw. "She's
Pandathaway-bred, isn't she? What's her name?" "That's where I bought her. And her
name is Carrot," Karl said. "I take it that you like horses." "Oh, very much." Bren was a
sandy-haired boy of about Rahffs age, with a broad, easy smile. "My father
has a stallion I'd love to see cover her. Has she foaled yet?" "No. She's been a bit too busy to
take time out for that." Like an assassin in the night, longing for
Andy-Andy stabbed at him. God, how I miss you. It was hard to think of
her visibly pregnant, her belly swollen, and know that he wouldn't see her,
wouldn't touch her for months. At best. In the back of his
mind he could almost see her standing in front of him, hands on hips, her head
cocked to one side, a
whimsical smile playing over her lips. So? Who told you this hero business was supposed to be easy? Bren went on:
"If we have time, later, would you listen to some advice? I think breeding
Carrot with a Katharhd pony might produce a—" "Your manners,
Bren," Furnael said, shaking his head, a warm smile making his stern tone
a lie. "You're forcing me
and my guest to stand outside in the cold wind." He Baron Furnael 145 shivered violently, although the breeze from the north was only refreshingly cool. "Would you like
to unsaddle and curry the horses,
and then join us inside?" He turned to Karl. "May I? Please?" "Certainly. No need to tie her;
she'll stay around as long as she knows I'm
inside." "Of
course," Bren said disapprovingly, miffed at being told something so
patently obvious. Furnael led him into the shack. It was
small, but well kept: The stone floor was smooth and clean; the spaces between
the wallboards had been filled with fresh clay by a careful hand. No draft disturbed the fire that blazed merrily
in the stone hearth, with its cast-iron stewpot bubbling as it dangled over the flames. Furnael unbuckled his sword and hung it on
a peg before pulling a stool to the
rough-hewn table that stood in the center of the room, beckoning Karl and the
others to join him. There were only three remaining stools; Karl, Rahff, and Thomen sat, while Beralyn stood
next to her husband, frowning down
at him. Furnael chuckled. "You must forgive
my wife. She doesn't approve of this." "And why should
I?" Beralyn sniffed. "It's nothing but nonsense. My beloved husband," she added, her voice dripping with sarcasm. The Baron threw his
arm around her waist and patted at her hip. "You'll forgive me. As
usual." "Until the next harvest." Rahff frowned; Furnael caught the
expression and turned to the boy. "And
none of that, not in front of our guest.
You will show proper manners, boy." He gestured an apology to Karl.
"This is a family tradition. Before each
harvest, the sons of the Baron spend three tendays in slave quarters, working
the fields as hard as the slaves—" "Harder,
father," little Thomen piped up. "Rahff says we have to show
we're better." "—eating the
same food, wearing the same clothes as do the field slaves. Gives a sense of
proportion. Vertum 146 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN thinks well enough of it that he's sent Bren to join our boys this year. I
think Bren is profiting from it." "Nonsense,"
Beralyn said. "You should listen to your children. When Rahff is the Baron, he
won't put his sons through this." Furnael snorted.
"Which is exactly what I said when I was his age. Karl, feel free to wander around, later; you'll see
that this cabin is no better than any of the others.
We treat both our fealty-servants and slaves well, here." "This cabin is
worse," Beralyn said. "You sent your men down to chip the clay out of the
walls. Again." "As I will, each and every
time you clay the walls for the
boys. If Rahff or Thomen want to do it for themselves, that's fine. I've
tolerated your living with them to cook for
them; don't test my patience further." He shook his head. "Karl, my wife thinks to blackmail me
into giving up the tradition, by living down here when our sons do." "Zherr, you
wanted to talk about some problem?" Karl asked, uncomfortable at finding
himself brought into a family argument. "Indeed." Furnael leaned on the
table, steepling his fingers in front of
his face. "There have been raids into Holtun. A band of outlaws has taken up residence somewhere on
the slopes of Aershtym. Perhaps two, three hundred of them. They ride down at
night, punching through the idiotic line
defense the Holtish—" He cut off as
Bren opened the door. The boy shook his
head sadly. "Please don't stop on my account," he said. "I don't have any delusions about Prince Uldren." Furnael smiled a
thank-you at the boy. "They carry off women and food, killing any who raise a hand
against them.
Behind them, they leave the farms ablaze, cutting the throats of all
the cattle and sheep, like a dog covering with vomit that which he can't eat. It seems they've Baron Furnael 147 found a
large cache of salt, somewhere, and they have lately taken to salting the
ground behind them." He shook his head. "I've talked to
Sammis about it, and there is nothing his magic can do. He could kill the weeds, of course, as he does for the farms in my
barony. But salted land will grow no grain, whether the weeds are left standing or not. "If this goes
on, Holtun will find itself in the midst of a famine. To the west lies the soda
plain; they will have to turn
east. They will have to invade Bieme, just as the Nyphs did in my father's
time. These two friends"—he gestured
at Bren and Rahff—"will find themselves blood enemies. And not just
in theory, but in fact." "And you can't take on the raiders
yourself." Karl nodded. "Holtun wouldn't stand for it." "At the first sign of Biemei soldiers
crossing into Holtun, the war would start.
Already, there have been a few clashes along the border. I know that
this sounds disloyal, but if only the raiders had ventured into Bieme . . .
perhaps Prince Uldren would have swallowed his pride and seen the wisdom in
some sort of alliance." "I doubt it, Baron," Bren shook
his head. "His Highness is, as my
father says, a pompous ass. And one who'd be as likely to grip his sword by the blade as by the hilt. Fancies himself a great general, though." Furnael nodded.
"Karl, I'd like you to stop that. I hope you'll see that we are good people here. And we are people who are willing to pay, and pay well.
Perhaps you could pretend to join the raiders, lead them into an ambush?
Or track them to their lair, take them on yourselves,
chase them into my barony, where we could deal with them? Or
something—anything." Karl closed his eyes. The strategy wasn't
a problem. Not Karl's problem, in any case. Ahira could probably work something out. Still, three hundred
against five was not Karl's idea of 148 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN good odds. Then again, they wouldn't have to
take on all three hundred at
once. But that wasn't the
issue. The question isn't can we, it's should we. And that was harder.
Granted, Zherr Furnael was—or at least appeared to be—a good man for this
world; given, any war between Bieme and Holtun would be bad for everyone concerned,
including the slaves of both sides. But. . . I'm Karl Cullinane, dammit, not
Clark Kent. I can't do everything; I've
already made a promise I'm not sure I can keep; I can't let other things divert me. His conscience
pricked him. How about Aeia? Taking her home didn't constitute carrying the war to the slavers. No. Aeia's case was
different. Melawei was suffering from slave raids; it was reasonable to take her home, since that path would lead to some good
opportunities to strike at the
Slavers' Guild. What would helping Furnael have to do with
ending slavery? Anything? No, there was no connection. /'// have
to turn him down. I— Wait. "There ... is a price, Zherr. A large one." Furnael spread his hands. "We do have money, Karl." "I don't really need money. But, in
return for me and my friends solving your
problem, would you be willing to give
up all your slaves?" Furnael smiled.
"That's a high price, Karl. It'd cost me much time and coin to replace all the slaves in my barony. Perhaps we could consider—" "No. Not
replace. Your payment would be to give up the owning of slaves throughout your
barony. Forever." For a moment, the
Baron's face was a study in puzzlement. Then Furnael sighed. "I ... I thank you for the politeness
of not turning me down directly. But it wasn't necessary; I understand.
You don't want to make our battles
yours." Baron Furnael 149 "Baron, I'm completely serious." "Please. Don't
insult my intelligence." Furnael held up a hand. "Let it be, Karl Cullinane,
let it be." Karl opened his mouth, then closed it. It
wouldn't work. To Furnael, the concept of
slavery was so normal that he
couldn't take at face value any suggestion he give up owning people. It wasn't really offensive to
Furnael, just incomprehensible. But trying to explain further could only be an affront. Furnael's face grew grim. "I'd
thought to try to frighten you into serving
me, you know. Threatening to hold
that little girl—Aeia, is it?—as hostage against your success." He drummed his fingers on the
wood. "You do seem to care
about her welfare." "That
wouldn't leave me any choice, Baron." Furnael nodded. "Then—" "No choice at all. I'd either have to
take on three hundred raiders, relying on
your word to release Aeia if I did, or I'd have to take on you
and your forty or fifty armsmen, none of
whonrseem to have done much recent fighting."
Karl left his hand fall to the hilt of his sword. "That would be an
easy decision, Baron. Granted, my friends
and I would probably all die, but we'd take some of you with us. And how would that leave you in the war that's
coming?" "It was just a thought. But a silly
one." He sighed deeply. "The sort
of warrior I need wouldn't be frightened
into doing something unwillingly." The Baron shook his head as he rose to his feet and walked
to the peg where his sword hung.
"But, as your friend Ahira put it, I have prepared a fallback position. A ruler, even a lowly baron, should always keep an option ready." "Baron, you—" Furnael
lifted the scabbard and drew the sword. Karl leaped away from the table, sending
his stool clattering on the floor. Drawing
his own sword with one fluid motion, he spun around into a crouch. Got
to be 150 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN careful. Can't let the woman or the
children get behind me; they might grab my swordarm, The sword held loosely in his hand,
Furnael drew himself up
straight. "Karl Cullinane," he said, his voice dripping with scorn,
"put up your sword. You are in no danger here, not from me. I swear that
on my life, sir." What the hell was
going on? First Furnael had tried to buy his services, then intimidate him,
then he had gotten ready to
attack Karl. "I ... don't
understand." Karl lowered the point of
his sword. "On
my life, sir," the Baron repeated. To hell with it. I've got to trust
somebody, sometime. Karl slipped his sword back into its scabbard. The Baron turned to Rahff. "Hold out
your hands, boy." Silently, Rahff shook his head. "Do it." The Baron's shout left Karl's ears
ringing. Slowly, Rahff extended his palms. With
exquisite gentleness, Furnael laid the flat
of the blade on the boy's palms, then untied his pouch from his own
waist. Carefully, Furnael tied the leather strands about the middle of the
blade. "There are ten pieces of Pandathaway gold here." White-faced, Beralyn laid a hand on
Furnael's arm. "Don't do this. He's just a boy." Furnael closed his
eyes. "This gives us a chance, just a chance, Bera. If Rahff survives, he may be
strong enough to see the barony through the coming years, through the war. I ... I
don't see any other way. Please, please don't make this any
harder." He opened his eyes and turned back to
Karl, tears streaming down his cheeks.
"Karl Cullinane. I offer my eldest son to you as apprentice, sir,
to learn the way of the sword, bow, and fist. I offer as payment my horse, this
gold, this sword, and the services of my son, for a period of five years." Karl looked down at Rahff. The boy's
whitened face was unreadable.
"Rahff?" Baron Fttrnael 151 "It's
not his choice, Karl. I'm the boy's father." Karl didn't look at
Furnael. "Shh. Rahff? Do you want to be my apprentice?" Clenching his lower lip between his teeth
until the blood flowed, Rahff looked from his mother, to his father, and back
to Karl. Slowly, he walked over and extended the sword and pouch, his arms
shaking. "It's . . . my father's wish, sir." "But is it yours?" Rahff looked from his father, to his
brother, to his mother, to Bren. Hero worship was one thing; agreeing to leave his home and family was another. Bren nodded. "Do it. If you stay,
we'll soon be enemies, be after each
other's blood." "And if I go? Will that make any difference?" "I don't know.
But it will give us five years' grace, five years until I have to kill you, or you have to kill me." Bren
clapped a hand to Rahffs shoulder, gripping tightly. "Five years, at
least." Rahff swallowed.
Then: "Y-yes. Will you accept me as apprentice, Karl Cullinane?" Karl looked at Baron Zherr Furnael with a
new sense of admiration. It took a certain something for a man to see his own
limitations, to accept the likelihood of his own
destruction, while planning to protect at least a part of his family
from the storm of arrows and swords that would
certainly leave him dead. Not necessarily just
part of his family; perhaps Furnael had other plans for Thomen and Lady Beralyn. Apprenticing Rahff to an outlaw was a
cold-blooded act, but that didn't make it wrong. If Rahff survived an
apprenticeship, he might be strong enough to hold the barony, perhaps even all of Bieme, together through the coming year. And what if he dies, Zherr Furnael? We're
heading into danger; what if he's not quick enough or lucky enough to live through it? Karl didn't voice the question. The answer was clear: 152 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN If Rahff couldn't survive a five-year
apprenticeship, then he
wasn't the ruler that the barony needed. Zherr Furnael would either have a worthy
successor, or a dead son. Not a pleasant gamble. But what other choice do they have? Karl accepted the sword and pouch on the
palms of his hands. "I accept you, Rahff, as my apprentice. Spend some
time saying goodbye to your family and friends; we leave in the morning. Oh,
and you can sleep at the inn, if you'd prefer." He untied the pouch from
the sword, then accepted the scabbard from
the Baron. "I'd
rather stay." "You're his
apprentice, boy." Furnael's low voice was almost an animal's snarl. "You
will sleep at the inn." Karl drew himself up straight. "I'll
thank you not to interfere with my apprentice, Baron. I gave him the
choice, not you." He took two copper coins from his pouch and dropped them
on the rough table. "This should cover
his lodging; he'll spend the night here, as he chooses." Slipping the sword
into the scabbard, Karl handed it to the boy. "Take good care of this, Rahff.
You're going to be spending many hard hours learning to use it." And may
God have mercy on your soul. The boy nodded somberly. "But
I think you'll do just fine." A smile peaked through Rahff s tears. And
through Furnael's. PART FOUR: Melawei CHAPTER TEN: To Ehvenor Practice is the best
teacher. —Publilius Syrus As they rode down the shallow slope
toward Ehvenor, the freshwater
sea called the Cirric lay below them and ahead
of them, rippling off across the horizon. Off in the distance, Karl
could see the rainbow sails of a wide-beamed sloop, tacking in toward the harbor. Ten, perhaps twelve small ships huddled
around Ehvenor's docks, as seamen bustled
like ants to load and unload their cargo. Just harborside of the
breakwater, three large ships lay at
anchor, attended by half a dozen small launches that swarmed around them
like pilotfish around a shark. The low stone buildings of Ehvenor cupped
the harbor, flat and ugly. The streets were
narrow, crooked, and strewn with refuse; the town of Ehvenor looked like one large slum. There was only one
exception: A cylindrical building, seemingly three or four stories high, stood
in the center of town like a
rose on a pile of dung. It shone whitely. Karl rubbed his eyes. It was hard to make
out the details of that building; the edges and details fuzzed in his eyes, as though he couldn't focus on it. "Ahira?" The dwarf shook his
head. "It doesn't seem to suit my eyes, either." "You think that's the Faerie holding,
or embassy, or whatever they call it?" 155
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN The dwarf snorted;
the snort was immediately echoed by his pony. "Not likely to be anything
else; I doubt the locals build out of mist and light." Karl
nodded. "I'd like to know how they do that." "Ever hear of magic?" Ahira fell silent. After a reflexive check to see that the
others, riding behind him, were doing fine, Karl patted at Carrot's neck. "I wonder how you're going to take to
being on a ship." Did horses get seasick? And how about the
others? Chak, Tennetty, and Rahff had never been on a boat before. Fialt wouldn't be a problem; he
was a Salke, and apparently everyone on Salket
spent a good deal of time at sea. Ahira wouldn't be a problem,
fortunately. A vomiting dwarf wouldn't be any
fun to be around. And Aeia was a Mel; according to Chak, everyone in Melawei
was practically conceived at sea. Well, at worst, we're going to have four
upchuckers among us. Probably including me. Karl rubbed at his belly. Maybe this
time will be different. God, please let this time be different. His
only other time at sea had been on the Ganness' Pride. The trip from Lundeyll to Pandathaway on the Pride was
not one of Karl's fondest memories;
he had spent the first few minutes throwing up his breakfast, the next
couple of hours vomiting up food he didn't even remember swallowing, and most
of the rest of the trip with the dry heaves. Ahira chuckled. "What is it?" Karl looked down
at the dwarf. "You think seasickness is
funny?" The dwarf shook his head. "No. I
wasn't thinking about seasickness at
all." "Oh. So it's my nervousness about
going on a boat again that's funny?" Ahira scowled. "Your nervousness?
Karl, you don't know what nervousness about being on a boat is." To Ehvenor 157 That was strange. Ahira hadn't shown a
trace of nausea while they'd been aboard the Ganness' Pride. "Iron-guts Ahira, that's what we'll have to
call you. You hid your seasickness
well." "No, I wasn't seasick. There are
other problems than seasickness," the
dwarf said, scowling. "Think it through, Karl." "Well?" "How much do you weigh?" "Huh?"
What did that have to do with anything? "A simple question, actually. How
much do you weigh?" "Mmm, about two-twenty or so, on This
Side. Back home, about—" "How much do I weigh?" "About the same,
I'd guess." A dwarf was built differently than a human. Ahira's body wasn't just
shorter and disproportionately
wider than Karl's; his muscles and bones
were more dense. More dense. "Oh. I hadn't thought about
that." A human's body was, overall, less dense than water. But the dwarf .
. . "If you fell overboard, you'd sink like a stone, chainmail vest or no." "Exactly. I
could easily drown in five, six feet of water. A bit more serious than a spot of
projectile vomiting, no?" "But
what was so funny about that?" Ahira smiled.
"You were the one thinking about boats. I was thinking about towns." "Well?" "Think about it.
What was the first town we ever dealt with on This Side?" "Lundeyll. We just barely got out of
there with our lives." Not all of them
had gotten out alive. Jason Parker had
died in Lundeyll, spending the last few moments of his life kicking on
the end of a spear. Someday, if I can find
the time, I think I'll look up Lordling Lund and feed him his fingers, one
joint at a time. "Exactly.
We left Lundeyll just about ten seconds
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN ahead of the posse. The next town was
Pandathaway. We got out of there a couple days before Ohlmin left, chasing us. We didn't spend any time worth talking
about in a town until you and Walter went
into Metreyll. And look at the time frame there: From the time you
killed Lord Mehlen's armsmen until Metreyll found out must have been ... at least a week, maybe a tenday."
The dwarf held out a stubby finger. "One: ten seconds." Another
finger. "Two: three days." A third finger. "Three: a full
week." Ahira shot a glance at Karl. "Now, think about Bieme, and
Furnael. For once, we left a town without anybody
after us, even though the Baron wasn't pleased about your turning down
that job. I was a bit nervous about that for a couple of weeks, but now that
we're almost in Ehvenor, it's clear that he's not coming after us." "So?"
Karl didn't see the point of it all. "So, it seems
to me it's sort of a progression; looks like we're learning to get along better and better with the locals. If this keeps up, eventually we might
even make friends somewhere, be invited to stay. // this keeps up ..." "Well?" "Well,
yonder—I'm starting to like saying yonder—lies Ehvenor. All we have to do there, all we want to
do there, is book passage to Melawei." "Do you always
have to belabor the obvious before you ask me a favor?" Karl couldn't help returning Ahira's smile. "Try just asking." "Fair enough: While we're in Ehvenor,
try to avoid sticking any locals through
the gizzard." Karl shuddered. You're talking as
though I like bloodshed. He opened his mouth to protest, then closed it. Keep
it light, just keep it light. "That's asking a lot. What'll you do for
me?" Ahira thought about it for a minute.
"Ever hear of positive and negative reinforcement?" To Ehvenor 159 "Of course. Use to be a psych major." "Good. Let's use
both. Negative reinforcement: If you get us into trouble here, I'll bash you with my axe." "And the positive reinforcement?" "If we do get out of Ehvenor without
any bloodshed, I'll give you a lollipop.
Fair enough?" "Fair enough." Karl chuckled a
moment, then sobered. Even though it was hidden by the banter,
Ahira was serious. And he had a point.
If they ran into slavers in Ehvenor, the city wasn't the place to take them on. The locals wouldn't
like it; Karl had no illusions about his group's ability to take on a slaver team and a large detachment of local armsmen. Though the group was shaping up nicely,
come to think of it. Tennetty was getting better and better
with a sword. She didn't have the upper-body strength to parry more than a few
solid thrusts without tiring, but she did have an almost instinctive feel for
the weak points in an opponent's defenses. Rahff was coming
along well, although he didn't seem to have Tennetty's natural bent for swordplay. The boy had to work
at it. But he did work hard. A good kid, although the way Rahff hung on Karl's
every word was quickly getting old. Fialt's swordsmanship
was still lousy, but his hand-to-hand skills had come a long way, and he had
developed a nice feel for both manriki-gusari and staff. Chak was a good man. Not a fancy
swordsman, but a reliable one. With Chak on watch, Karl could sleep peacefully; with Chak bringing up the rear of the
group, Karl could concentrate on
what lay ahead, with only an occasioned glance behind. Chak was . . . solid,
that was it. Even little Aeia's bowmanship was coming along. She
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN wasn't as good as Ahira had told Furnael, of course. But
not too bad, either. Aeia and a cocked crossbow could be a nice hole card in a
fight. Wait a
minute. "Ahira?" "Yes?" "I've
got one question, though. If you don't mind." "Well?" "Where
are you going to get the lollipop?" CHAPTER ELEVEN: Ehvenor Remember that no man loses other life than that which he lives, or lives
any other life than that which he loses. —Marcus Aurelius Him? Karl started. The aging, wide-bellied ketch
tied at the end of the narrow
dock didn't look familiar, but the man in the sailcloth tunic, directing the
loading crew, did. Avoir Ganness, what the hell are you doing here? And if
you're here, where's the Pride? It had to be him.
While sweat-stained sailcloth tunics weren't at all rare around the docks, there
couldn't be a whole lot of short, dark-skinned sailors with waist-length pigtails and
thick, hairy legs who carried themselves with the rolling swagger and easy
confidence of a ship's captain. "Captain Ganness?" Avair Ganness
shouted a quick command at a seaman, then turned. His swarthy face
paled. "You? Not again." He opened his mouth to call to one of
the bowmen at the foot of the dock, then pursed his lips and shrugged, beckoning to a
crewman. "Quickly," he said, "finish loading and prepare to cast
off." "But we don't sail until—" "Smartly, now. We may not have
to, but I want to be able to cast off and up sails in half a score
heartbeats. We may need to show Ehvenor a fast set of heels. Understood?" "Aye,
sir." The sailor shrugged and vaulted over the 161 162 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN splintered railing, calling out to crewmen to halt the loading process and prepare for casting off. Ganness turned back
to Karl, a tragic smile spreading over his face. "What is it now, Karl Cullinane?" He spread his hands. "If you've managed to get
the Ehven as angry as you did Lord Lund, I'd at least like to know why I'm
going to die on this wretched dock." Karl raised a hand. "I'm not wanted
here. Pan-dathaway, yes. But I understand that Ehvenor isn't interested."
As Chak explained it, there was no love lost between Pandathaway, the center of
trade, culture, and magic of the Eren regions, and Ehvenor, dominated by the outpost of Faerie. Ganness nodded, conceding the point.
"True enough. As far as official
Ehvenor goes. But not all Ehvenor is official Ehvenor." He pointed a blunt
finger shoreward. At his motion, a group of filthy, rag-clad men scurried for
the shadow of a warehouse,
all the while gibbering at each other in strained, high-pitched voices.
"Watch your back, Karl Cullinane. Being around faerie too long does
strange things to some humans; drives them crazy. I don't keep bowmen at the
foot of the dock for the pleasure of it; in the past, crazies have fired
boats—with themselves aboard, more often than not. Some of them would slit you open, throat to crotch, just for the fun of
it." Ganness smiled. "Instead of the money." Karl rested his hand on his swordhilt.
"Perhaps you'd like the money?" Ganness sneered. "Me?" He spat
on the dock. "Of course. But while the
notion of carrying your head back to Pandathaway thrills me, the idea of
becoming a side attraction in the Coliseum
doesn't. I don't dare set foot in Pandathaway or Lundeyll, not anymore. Not
since I was fool enough to carry you
from Lundeyll to Pandathaway. The wizards have long memories. I won't
have any further dealings with them, for as long as I live." He laughed ruefully. "And that's a safe claim,
come to think Ehvenor 163 of it. Now," he said, drawing himself up straight,
"what are you doing here?" "I'd heard that a ship called the Warthog
was leaving for Melawei tonight. Is
this it?" "Yes. And she's mine, such as she is." Karl looked the ketch over, from the
gashed bow all the way to the stern, where a pair of seamen worked a bilge
pump, sending a constant stream of brown water over the side and into the harbor. "Not quite the Ganness'
Pride, eh?" "Not quite." "What happened?" "Lund wasn't pleased with my carrying
you from Lundeyll; he hired himself a brace
of pirate ships to hunt her down.
They caught up with me just off Salket. The Pride went down; I
barely escaped with my life. All thanks to you." Canness sighed. "But
you haven't answered my question." "I think I have. I need to buy some
passages to Melawei: seven people and two
horses going, six and two coming
back. Are you willing to carry us?" "The same you
were with before?" Ganness brightened. "Including Doria?" "No, the only one you'd know is Ahira. The dwarf." "Too bad."
Ganness pursed his lips. "I may regret asking this, but are any of the others
good with a sword or bow?" "All of us. You
might be able to use an extra sword or two. There's been a bit of trouble on the
Cirric, I hear." That
was a bald lie. Karl hadn't heard anything of the sort. But, given that slavers were raiding Melawei, it was reasonable
to assume that they might pounce on a few merchantment. And if Ganness was even
considering carrying them, it was certain
that the captain was afraid of just
that. "True
enough." Ganness stood silently for a moment. "Are you sure
that you're not wanted here? I'm not about to let you close another port to me." 164 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Karl patted the hilt
of his saber. "I'm certain. I'll swear it on this, if you'd like." Ganness nodded.
"Fine, then. I can put the horses in the hold, but the only other accommodations
I've got are deck
passage—unless you'd prefer to sleep with your animals?" "No thanks." "Very well,
then. It'll be six gold for each human, five for the dwarf, two for each horse. Each passage, each way. Payable now." He held out his hand. Karl raised an eyebrow. "On this?
That's almost ten platinum. I could almost
buy this ship for that." "No, you
couldn't. I wouldn't sell." He smiled. "Besides, Warthog is faster than
she looks. In some ways, she's better than the Pride was." Karl held back a
laugh. The Ganness' Pride had been a lean, shapely sloop, not a floating
leak. The only way this scow
was better than Ganness' former ship was that it would hurt Ganness less to lose her. "Well, at least she's
here." One hand on his hip,
Ganness held out a palm. "The coin, if you please." Karl hefted the pouch. "I don't have
that much with me." But should they take passage on Ganness' ship? Maybe it would be better to wait for the next one. No. It could be a
long time before another Melawei-bound ship left. And if he turned Ganness down,
the captain might be tempted
to let it be known there was a wanted man around, for whose head Pandathaway
would pay well. The threat was implicit in Ganness' ridiculously high price for passage. Karl opened the pouch
and counted out six gold coins. "You can have this as a deposit; I'll
have the rest for you at the time we sail." "Agreed. And I will see you then." Karl started to turn
away, but Ganness' shout stopped him. Ehvenor • 165 Wait. "Aren't you forgetting something?" Canness asked. "What?" The captain gestured
to Karl's sword. "I think there's still a bit of swearing to be done. On your
sword, if you please. If, that is, you do want passage." Karl hesitated. "Truly,"
Ganness went on, "she is a good ship. Seaworthy and fast." "Of course." Slowly, Karl drew
his sword then balanced it on his palms. / may
as well get this over with. Next thing I know, he'll be telling me she made the
Kessel run in three parsecs. Ahrmin clung to one
of ten rope ladders secured to the dock, restraining a shiver. The Cirric was cold this late at night,
but it and the darkness provided good cover for Ahrmin and his ten men. He had spent several hours considering how
many of the forty men from the Scourge
to take with him. Too small a
group wouldn't be able to take on Cullinane and his friends; too large a
group would be impossible to hide. The element of surprise was always a huge advantage, and Ahrmin believed in having every advantage available. Ten seemed about
right. Enough to overpower Cullinane's group; not too many to hide. It would take sharp
eyes to see their heads and the few inches of rope that had been tacked to the side of the dock. The dock was a thick and sturdy one, rising
more than two heads' height above the smooth black water. Near the ship,
sandals slapped against wood and voices called out orders, as the crew made the
final preparations for the Warthog to sail. Clinging to the
ladder next to Ahrmin's, Jheral nudged him. "Shouldn't you check that ball again?" he whispered. "Or are you afraid of losing
it?" Jheral shook 166 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN his head to clear the water from his
eyes and his long, pointed ears. Ahrmin rewarded him
with a scowl. The damned elf was more trouble than he was worth. Jheral had
been a journeyman
slaver for more than twenty years, and made no secret of his strong distaste
for Ahrmin's promotion to master. Not that Guildmaster Yryn had had any
choice; he couldn't place Ahrmin in
authority over senior journeymen
without promoting him, and this job was clearly too much for Ahrmin and a group of junior journeymen
and apprentices. Probably Jheral and
the others could have taken that. But the guildmaster had gone further, taking
the unusual step of expressing his confidence in Ahrmin in the Writ of Mastery," by way of trying to avoid
any conflicts. Normally that would have settled the matter; Guild-master Yryn was known for being stinting in his
praise. It hadn't settled it;
in fact, Yryn's strategy had backfired, acting as fuel to the journeymen's resentment— Jheral's, in particular. "We could have just waited for them
at sea," Jheral went on, "instead
of floating here like a bunch of silkies." "Be quiet. Do
you want them to hear us?" That suggestion was ridiculous; it just couldn't work.
In a sea battle, it would be impossible to capture Karl Cullinane alive. Stealth was the only
chance. But Jheral's first idea did make sense.
Grudgingly, Ahrmin reached over to the
inflated pig bladder that was tied loosely to the ladder and reached
underneath, pulling on the slim rope to
haul up the fine-mesh net bag containing
the device Wenthall had given him. "Light," he whispered. Jheral drew his knife, cupping his hands
around the blade to prevent the bright glow
from shining through the cracks in
the dock. Thyren, the Scourge's wizard, had refused Ahrmin's request to help them catch Karl I J Ehvenor 167 Cullinane, saying that he had signed on only
to neutralize the Mel wizards
during the slaving raid. But he had agreed
to Glow a knife ... in return for Ahrmin's promise of share of the reward. The finger floated in the yellow oil,
pointing unerringly toward the city, toward Karl Cullinane. Ahrmin
waited, watching the finger. With agonizing
slowness it moved, until it came to rest parallel to the dock. Silently, Ahrmin pushed himself away from
the ladder, pulling the bladder with him, beckoning at Jheral to follow. Like a compass
needle, the finger swung. Karl Cullinane
was nearing the dock; he was somewhere in the
shadows of Ehvenor. Somewhere near. "He's almost here." Ahrmin
tugged on the netting to make certain that it still secured the ball, then
checked the rope fastening the netting to the bladder. The knots were still
tight; he let the ball sink below the surface, then beckoned to the others
bobbing in the dark water. "On my signal, we move," he whispered.
"Remember, we can kill the others, but I want Karl Cullinane alive. And,
Jheral—put that knife away." "For
a moment." Jheral smiled. "For a moment." At the foot of the dock, Karl held up a
hand and climbed down from Carrot's saddle. "Rahff, has Pirate ever been on a boat before?" The boy shook his
head. "No." The white horse snorted and stamped her feet, pulling back against the reins as
Rahff tried to lead her. He stroked at the horse's neck with his right hand as
he held the reins in his left. "And she's getting a bit skittish. I'm
sorry, Karl." "Don't apologize, Rahff. You do just
fine with the horses." Rahff drew
himself up straight, standing proudly. Karl
suppressed a pleased chuckle. A few words of
168 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN mild commendation did wonders for the
boy's posture. Whatever his
virtues, Zherr Furnael had clearly never been
unstinting in his praise. Karl tried to calm
Pirate down, but the horse snorted and snapped at his fingers. It was just as well
that they had sold the other horses, instead of trying to bring them on board.
While Carrot wasn't a problem, Pirate's skittishness could quickly have become contagious. Chak tapped Karl's shoulder. "Let me try." "Go ahead." The little man reached into his sack and
produced a strip of cloth. With a quick motion, he whipped it around Pirate's eyes, fastening it in place as a
blindfold. The blindfold worked; Pirate calmed
instantly, as though someone had thrown a
switch. Fialt hoisted his bag
to his shoulder. "You should keep the horses toward the middle; gives you
a bit of room for error if the animal gets twitchy." Tennetty threw an arm
around Fialt's waist. "Hmm." She smiled. "I guess you are good for
something, clumsy. Something else, that is." Ahira raised an
eyebrow; Karl shook his head. Something else? Apparently both of them had
missed what had been going on between Fialt and Tennetty. "Can't put the two of them on watch
together anymore," Karl whispered. "They'll be paying too much attention to each other to keep a proper lookout.
That's probably been going on for a
while." "Happens."
Ahira nodded. "But don't be too critical, eh? Let he without sin cast the first
stone, and all that." "Right." Karl raised his head. "Let's go. Slowly,
now." As he led Carrot onto
the dock, Aeia skipped ahead, her little feet flying across the wood. She stopped just
a few
yards from the Warthog, nervously eyeing the strangers on board
the ship. Ganness held out a hand. "Welcome
aboard." He raised his head and called
out, "You have the coin?"
Ehoenor 169 "As agreed," Karl called back.
"Go ahead, Aeia. Get on. We'll be there in a moment." After the
slightest of pauses, she walked up the ramp and onto the deck. Karl pulled on Carrot's reins. "Easy,
girl. It'll just be another—" A hand reached out of
the water and fastened itself on Karl's ankle. Another hand stabbed a glowing
knife into his calf. Pain cut through him; he fell, landing
hard on his side, his left arm caught beneath him. A shrill scream forced its way through his lips. Swords and knives in
their hands, eleven men slipped out of the water, surrounding them all in a
circle of steel points and edges. Karl reached for the hilt of his sword,
but the same glowing knife stabbed through
his right wrist, pinning his hand to
the wood. His fingers writhed; his nails clawed at th,e wood. Another hand grasped his hair. "Don't
try to move." An elf s thin face leered
inches from his. "That will only make it hurt more." "We only want Karl Cullinane," a
low voice rasped. "The rest of you can go. Or die." Karl couldn't move his head, and the
reflexive twitching of his right hand sent red-hot currents of pain shooting
through his arm. He could only see Carrot's rump, Fialt, Tennetty, and two
swords, just at the edge of his vision,
menacing them. Fialt raised his hands. "We don't want any trouble—" He slapped at
Carrot's hindquarters, sending the horse galloping down the pier. He snatched
the manriki-gusari from his belt, then leaped out of Karl's vision. Fialt staggered back,
blood fountaining from between his hands as he clutched his chest, while Carrot's pounding hooves set the
dock shaking. "Chak,"
Ahira shouted, "now." Karl struggled to free his left arm as the
elf s fist pounded against his face. 170 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Blood filled Kail's eyes. Blindly flailing
his arm, he managed to fasten his left hand
on the elf s throat. Karl squeezed,
ignoring the pain, ignoring the clatter of steel and the splashes of bodies falling in the water. The ony
thing that mattered was his left hand, and his grip on the elf s throat. Karl squeezed. The blows grew more frantic. Karl squeezed. The flesh of the elfs neck
parted beneath his fingers, bathing his arm
in blood. The blows eased, then stopped. "You can let go
of him now," Ahira said, bending over him. "He's dead. And the rest
are gone." A sudden stab of pain, and the knife was wrenched from Karl's hand. "Rahff, the healing draughts. Quickly, now." Karl shook his head,
clearing some of the blood from his eyes. "No." Pain pounded redly in
his hand and calf, making each word a hideous labor. "First. Get on board. All of us. Take off.
Then." The dwarf pulled him
up, helping Karl balance on his good leg. The dock was slippery with blood.
Three bodies lay face down on the wood. Tennetty knelt in a pool of Fialt's blood.
Her fists drummed a rapid tattoo on his back. "You idiot," she
trilled. "Never were any good against
a sword. Never." She beat
against his back as though trying to pound him back to life, tears streaming down her face. Chak sheathed his
sword and grasped her hands in his. "There's nothing more you can do for him," he said gently. "We have to go." He pulled her
to her feet, then stopped to pick up Fialt's body and throw it over his shoulder. Ganness ran over, two bowmen at his side.
His face was ashen, his lips white. "I
thought you said—" Rahff reached over
and grabbed the front of Ganness' tunic. "You heard Karl. Just shut up.
We'd better get out of here; they may come back." "But—" Ehvenor 171 Rahff
raised his bloody sword. "Shut up." Karl tried to listen, tried to keep his eyes open, but the darkness reached out and claimed him. It was a long swim back up to the light.
The water rocked him, and tried to force itself into his mouth. He gave up and let
himself sink into the darkness, but a hand reached out and grasped his face,
pulling him to the light. "Karl," Ahira said, forcing more
of the sickly-sweet liquid between his lips, "we're safe now. For the time
being." Karl opened his eyes.
He was lying on a narrow bunk, sunlight
streaming through the oversized porthole and splashing onto his chest. The ship
was canted, sailing close to the wind. "Where?" He struggled to get the
words out. "Where are we?" "Ganness'
cabin." The dwarf smiled. "Ganness started to object when we brought you down here,
but he took one look at Rahff and changed
his mind. That's one loyal apprentice, Karl. Good kid." Karl nodded. He
brought his right hand up, in front of his face. The wound from the knife was just a
pinkish scar on the back of his hand,
mirrored on his palm. As he stared at
the scar, it continued to fade. Soon it would be gone. It would be just
as if nothing at all had— No. "Fialt." The dwarf shook his
head. "Nothing we could do for him. Healing draughts can't help a dead man.
But Chak brought
the body on board." He bit his lip. "I ... I thought you'd want to say the words over him,
before we bury him in the Cirric.
Tennetty says that's the way they do
it on Salket." Karl raised himself
on an elbow. "I'd better go see to every—" The dwarf
planted a hand on Karl's chest and pushed 172 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN him back. "Everybody else is fine. I've put Rahff and
Chak on watch; the horses are safe in the hold." A ' crooked smile played
across Ahira's lips. "Although I'd better bring Aeia in. She's been
crying. Thinks you're dead. Rahff and Chak have been telling her you're
unkillable, but I don't think she believes them." "/ sure as hell
don't. How many of the bounty hunters did we kill?" Ahira shrugged. "Three for certain;
another four wounded and pushed into the water. The rest dove and disappeared." "And Ganness. How is he taking all of this?" With a weak smile,
Ahira picked up his battleaxe from where it lay on the floor. "I talked to
him for a while, and he stopped squawking." He lowered the axe and
sighed. "But he got
away, dammit." "He? Who?" "You
didn't notice who was leading that group?" Karl snorted. "I was sort'of busy. What's the mystery?" "The leader looked to be about
eighteen. Dark hair, dark eyes, slim nose. Good with a sword; it took him half
a second to spear Fialt through the chest and return to the on-guard position. Had one hell of a familiar-looking
and very cruel smile. And that voice ..."
The dwarf shuddered. "Didn't he sound like someone we know?" Karl tried to remember the voice. No, he
had been in too much pain to pay attention. But that description—except for the age, that sounded just like—"Ohlmin?
But he's dead." / cut his head off, and held it in my hands. There
were times that violence bothered Karl, but killing that bastard had been a distinct pleasure. Ahira nodded. "But maybe he has
either a son or a younger brother who isn't." Karl elbowed the
dwarf aside as he pushed himself to his feet. His legs were wobbly, but they would support him.
"How would you feel about fixing that?" Ehvenor 173 "At
our first opportunity. In the meantime ..."
"We bury our dead." Karl stood at the rail, Rahff and Aeia next to him. In front of him,
Fialt's body lay shrouded on a plank; the plank was supported at one end by the
starboard rail, supported at
the other by Tennetty, Chak, and Ahira. Karl laid his hand on the rail. "I
never knew Fialt as well as I would have liked to," he said. "Guess
it's because I never took enough time. But
he wasn't an easy man to get to know. Quiet, most of the time. A private
person, our Fialt was. "I never really understood why he
came along. He didn't seem to have the . . . fire in him that Ahira, Tennetty,
and I do. And it wasn't a matter of practicing his profession, as it is for
Chak. Or of learning through doing, as it is
for Rahff. "But that
doesn't tell us much about him. What do we really know about this quiet man? We know
that he was awkward with a
sword, and none too good with his hands.
Although he was learning, and no one ever tried harder. We know that he was a Salke, and a sailor, and a farmer,
and a slave. And, finally, a free man. But that was about all. "About all ..."
Karl gripped the rail, his knuckles whitening. "There were only two times that I had
even a peek through the wall he put up
between himself and the rest of the
world. It seems to me that Fialt wouldn't mind my talking about those
two times. And I hope he'll forgive me being
frank. "The first was
during a lesson. He had done something well, for once—damned if I can remember what, right now—and I'd said something like, 'We'll make a
warrior of you, if you keep this up.' "He turned to
me and shook his head. 'Just a man who can protect himself, his friends, and
his own. That's all I ask.
That's all I ask. . . .' 174 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "The other time
was last night. Fialt must have known that he wasn't good enough to take on a
swordsman by himself; he should have waited for a signal from Ahira. "But he didn't wait. It didn't make sense,
dammit." Karl gripped the body's
stiff, cold shoulder. "You should have waited, Fialt, you should
have. . . ." Karl's eyes misted over;
his voice started to crack. He took a deep breath and forced his body back under control. "I ... guess
that tells us something important about our friend. Both virtue and flaw. I will miss that virtue, that flaw, and Fialt, whose body we now surrender
to the Cirric." He patted the
shoulder and stepped back. Their faces grim, Tennetty, Chak, and
Ahira raised their end of the plank. The
body slipped from the plank and
splashed into the blue water below, falling behind as it sank. Chak drew his
falchion and raised it to his forehead in salute. Ahira unstrapped his battleaxe,
mirroring Chak. Tennetty stared at the ripples, her eyes
red, her face blank. Karl drew his own
sword and balanced it on his palms. "I promise you this, Fialt: You will be avenged." He slipped the sword back in its scabbard. "Maybe I'm wrong, but I like to think
you'd want it just that way." CHAPTER TWELVE: The Guardians
of the Sword I have been here before, But
when or how I cannot tell; I know the grass beyond the door, The sweet keen smell, The sighing sound, the lights around the shore —Dante Gabriel Rossetti Karl stood at the Warthog's bow, holding tight to the
railing as the ketch lumbered slowly across the gently rolling sea toward the small inlet and the lagoon beyond. Overhead,
the jib luffed merrily in the wind; below, water
foamed, splashed, and whispered against the hull. Gentle waves lapped against the sandy
shore. High above, a slim-winged tern circled in the royal blue sky, then
stooped to pluck a small fish from the blue water, bearing its wriggling prey away. Karl rubbed at his belly, once more
enjoying the taut feel of a full stomach. It had taken him time to adapt to being at sea, but his body had made the
adjustment. And in less time than it
had taken before. Only six days of
feeding the fish this time. Hmm. If this goes on, in a few years I'll only be vomiting for the first
few seconds I'm at sea. A vision of himself stepping on board,
immediately vomiting, then smiling and
feeling fine rose up unbidden. He
laughed out loud. 175 176 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Aeia looked up at him, raising one eyebrow
just the way Andy-Andy did. "It's nothing," he said. He
reached into his pouch and drew out a half-dried orange, peeling it with his thumbnail. Popping a section into his mouth, he
waved a hand at the shoreline. "Look familiar?" "Yesss . .
." First she nodded, then she shook her head. "But I don't see my house." Little one, as I understand it, Melawei
stretches out across about two hundred
miles of shoreline, with scads of
inlets, beaches, islands, and lagoons. We're not going to bump into your hut. "Don't worry. It
may take a few days, but we'll find it." Her forehead creased. "Are you sure?" Standing next to her,
Rahff gently elbowed the girl in the shoulder. "Karl promised, didn't
he?" With a derisive snort, Rahff elbowed Aeia again. That had to be stopped, nipped in the bud.
Not that the boy had done anything terrible,
but the point had to be made. "Rahff." "Yes, Karl?" "We don't hit the people we're supposed to protect." Aeia looked up at him. "He didn't hurt me, Karl." "Doesn't
matter. A man whose profession is violence must not commit violence on his own family,
or on his friends.
You and I are supposed to watch out for Aeia, protect her, not hit her, or bully her." Rahff thought it
over for a moment. "How about you and Ahira? You and he threaten to hit
each other all the time." "Think it
through, Rahff. We play at threatening each other; we don't actually hit each
other. See the difference?" "Yes." The boy cocked his head.
"But how about practice? We've all
gotten bruises from you." He rubbed at his side. "Good point. That's instruction, not violence. Anyone The Guardians of the Sword 111 can back out of practice at any time. That
includes you, apprentice. No more training or no more hitting. Understood?" "Understood.
I'll stay with the training." Rahff turned back to the rail. Karl smiled his approval. A good kid;
Rahff took criticism and instruction as a
lesson, not as a blow to his ego. At Ganness' shouted
command, the helmsman brought the
ship about again, maneuvering it between two out-reaching sandspits. The hull
rasped against a sandbar; the ship
shuddered free, and swung into the placid water of the lagoon. Karl shook his head.
No wonder the hull was as watertight as a sieve, if this was the way Ganness treated it. Even given Ganness' explanation that the Mel
would deal with a ship only after it
had grounded itself, there had to be
a simpler way than bouncing the boat across sandbars until it got stuck at low tide in the lagoon. Still, Ganness'
seamanship and his confidence in it was noteworthy; on This Side, there was no moon, and the weaker solar tides made for only a slight
difference between high and low
water. It took guts for Ganness to dare a deliberate grounding; breaking free would be tricky. Karl turned to Ahira, noting that the
dwarfs one-handed grip on a cleat on the
forward mast wasn't quite as casual as Ahira tried to make it seem. A
casual grip didn't leave the knuckles white.
"Any problem?" Ahira
didn't turn around. "No." Karl switched to English. "Hey, it's
me, remember? James, are you okay?" "I'm fine. I just don't like it when
the boat jerks around." Another bump swung Karl around, sent his
hands flying back toward the railing as the ship rocked once, then fell still,
grounded. Aeia and Rahff exchanged indulgent
smiles over Karl's poor sense of balance. 178 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Look, kids, when
you've got a couple hundred pounds of mass to carry around, it isn't as easy to
keep upright as it is for you. But never mind. Let them have a few
private chuckles. He scanned the shore, trying to see if there was anyone or anything in the dense greenery. Nothing.
Canness had said that the locals would meet them, but— "Karl?"
Ahira's voice held a hint of amusement. "Yes?" "Don't turn
around for a second. I've got a question for you." Karl
shrugged. "Sure." "This shoreline looks like Hawaii, no?" "I
was thinking Polynesia." "Hawaii's part
of Polynesia, Karl. And this is the same thing. Not Diamond Head; it looks more like Lahaina. Palm trees,
sandy beaches, almost no rocks, warm, blue water, even though it's fresh and
not salt." "Right." Karl started to turn. "Hold it a
moment," the dwarf snapped. He chuckled. "Now, given all that, when the natives show up, you wouldn't
be surprised if they were paddling dugout canoes—outrigger
types—would you?" "It wouldn't surprise me at all." A similar environment
would tend to produce similar artifacts. The simplest, most convenient road—and hunting ground, for that matter—would be
the sea. If the Mel didn't have the
resources to build large sailing ships,
they would build canoes. And if they didn't have animal skins or birch
bark to build the canoes with, they'd have to make dugouts. Dugout canoes were
inherently more unstable than other sorts—therefore, outriggers. All logical. "Is that what this is? The natives have dugouts?" "It makes sense to you, right?" "Right." "Then turn
around and tell me why their canoes look like miniature versions of Viking
longboats." The Guardians of the
Sword 179 Karl turned. Three canoes floated
in the lagoon's mouth, each five or six yards long, with an outrigger mounted
on the port side, each manned with by oarsmen. And each with a wooden carving of a
dragon's head rising from the prow. After checking on Carrot and Pirate in the
hold, Karl climbed back on deck. He gathered Ahira, Aeia, Chak, Rahff and Tennetty around him, keeping the group
well away from Ganness and the three sarong-clad Mel, who were busy at the bow, haggling over the price of
Melawei copra and Endell steel. The locals spoke Erendra with a curiously
lilting accent, far different from the flat
half-drawl of Metreyll or the
clipped speech of Pandathaway. A familiar accent. . . . "Hey,
Karl?" Ahira looked up at him. "You hear it, too?" "I sure do. You
got any explanation of why these folks talk like the Swedish Chef?" Chak frowned. "It might help,"
he said, scowling, "if you would either teach me this English of
yours, or just keep your conversation in Erendra. At least when I'm around." "Good
idea." The dwarf nodded. "I'll give it a try." Karl gestured an
apology. "We were talking about the accent these Mel have. It sounds familiar.
Like something from home." "Home?" Rahff shook his head. "Not my—" "Our home." Karl waved his hand
aimlessly. "The Other Side. A region
called Scandinavia." That was very strange. Differences between
here and home were to be expected; he had
grown used to them. On the other hand . . . coupled with the
dragon-headed canoes, the familiarity of
the local accent was vaguely frightening. It had to mean something. But what? It
couldn't be just a transplanting, as had happened 180 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN with their group. After all, the Mel didn't look like
Scandinavians, not at all: Their hair was black and straight, their skin dark; they had slight epicanthic folds around their eyes. Chak shook his head. "That doesn't
make sense. I thought you were the only ones
to cross over." "That's
what I thought, too." The largest of the
Mel, a deeply tanned, broad-shouldered man in a purple sarong, walked over. His lined face was grim as he stopped in front of Karl,
planting the butt of his leaf-bladed
spear on the deck in front of him. "Are you from
Arta Myrdhyn?" he asked, his accent still sending chills up and down Karl's
spine. "Has he sent for the sword?" Karl shook his head. "I'm sorry, but
I don't understand." The Mel gave a slight shrug, as though
that was the answer he had expected, but it had disappointed him nonetheless. "Avair Ganness," he said,
"says that you are a man from a land strange to him. He says that
your name is Karl Cullinane, and that you are someone for whom the slavers have
offered a large reward. Is this true?" I'm not sure whether it's the slavers or
the whole Guilds Council that's offering it,
but you're close enough. Karl nodded, gesturing to Chak to take his
hand off the hilt of his sword. This didn't sound like a prelude to an attack. And even if
it was, the Mel still in the boats were too far away; Karl, Tennetty, Chak, and Ahira could easily handle
the three spearmen on board. "Yes. It's true." "And why do they
hunt you?" The Mel's face was flat, unreadable. "Three reasons. First: I freed a
dragon that Pan-dathaway kept in chains.
Second: I lulled slavers and a wizard who hunted me for doing that.
Third: It is my . . . profession to kill
slavers and free slaves." And The Guardians of the Sword 181 there's a fourth reason, it seems. One—at least one— of the slavers has made it a personal matter. He laid a hand on
Aeia's shoulder. "This is Aeia; one of your people. We have brought her here. Home." "I see. And if
slavers were to raid Melawei while you are here?" Before Karl could answer, Chak snickered,
drawing his thumb across his throat,
sucking air wetly through his teeth. Karl nodded. The Mel's face became even grimmer as he
slowly rotated his spear, planting the point deeply in the wood of the deck
until the spear stood by itself. Placing his calloused
hands on Karl's shoulders, he drew himself up straight. "I am Seigar Wohtansen, wizard and warleader of
Clan Wohtan. Will you and your friends do me the honor of guesting with Clan
Wohtan while you are in Melawei?" Karl looked past Seigar Wohtansen's
shoulder to Ganness, who stood openmouthed in amazement. And down to Aeia, whose eyes grew wide. Clearly, this
wasn't the standard way to greet
visitors from other countries. Back when he was minoring in anthro, Karl
had learned something of the vast range of acceptable behavior, and the way it
varied from society to society. But the
notion of host and guest was close to universal. Except for the
Yanamamo, of course, the only culture known
by the anthropologists who studied them as "those bastards." The Mel
didn't seem like a This Side version of Yanamamo. Wohtansen stood silently, waiting for Karl's answer. "I am
honored," Karl said. "And we accept." Wohtansen dropped his hands and ran to the
railing, calling down to the men in the
dugouts. "There are guests of
the clan here, who require help with their animals and baggage. Why do you just sit there?" Aeia let
out a deep breath. 182 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "What is it?" Karl asked.
"Glad to be home?" She shook her head. "No, it's not
that." "Why? Afraid I'd turn him down and
hurt his feelings?" The girl shook her head. "If you'd
turned him down, he would have had to try to kill you." Ahira cleared his throat. "I think
we'd all better be careful with our pleases
and thank-yous. No?" Sitting down his wooden mug on the
grass-strewn floor, Seigar Wohtansen sat
back on his grass mat, leaned on his
elbows, and shook his head. He sighed deeply. "An acceptable meal, guests of my clan?" "Not
acceptable." Karl smiled. "Excellent." The others echoed him as they
reclined oh their mats. The guesthouse of
Clan Wohtan was the largest of the seventeen huts in the village, and the most luxurious. It was a
long, low structure, somewhat like a bamboo version of a quonset hut, the
wrist-thick poles that formed the framework
bent overhead, rising to about six feet at the center. Long, flat leaves
were woven among the closely spaced poles. The light wind dryly whistled through them. There was no fireplace in the hut; the
slightest spark could easily set it aflame.
Their dinner of grilled flatfish and deep-fried balls of coconut milk
had been cooked over the firepit twenty yards in front of the open end of the
guesthouse, the food brought in on plantain leaves. The cook—and a good
one, at that—had been Estalli, the younger of Seigar Wohtansen's wives; she was a slim, attractive girl who
looked to be about sixteen. Now, she knelt attentively beside Wohtansen, the hem of her sarong tucked chastely under her knees while her
naked breasts bobbled above, refilling his mug from a clay jug of fermented coconut juice while Wohtansen's seven
sons and daughters served Karl and the rest. Wohtansen's
other wife, Olyla, a hugely pregnant The Guardians of the Sword 183 woman in her late thirties, presided over the tail end of the meal
from the single piece of furniture in the hut, a cane armchair. Illumination was
provided by seven head-size glowing stones, each suspended in an individual net bag hung from the centerpole that ran lengthwise down the
roof of the hut. The light from three of the stones had begun to fade; Wohtansen had spent much of the meal
reassuring Olyla that his promise to refresh the spell still stood, and that he would do so tomorrow. Her knowing smirk
said that this wasn't the first time he had made that promise. Understandable. Life
in Melawei was lazy and easy; it would always be tempting to put work off to
tomorrow. Karl had another swig
of the coconut juice. It was dry and crisp, like a light Italian wine. But
how did they get it so cold? He shrugged. Well, if Romans could make
ice in the desert, maybe the Mel could
chill a bottle of wine. He looked over at
Aeia, who was sprawled out on her grass mat, sated after the heavy meal, half
asleep. "Good to be home, little one?" She
frowned. "I'm not home yet." Wohtansen smiled reassuringly. "We're
not too far from Clan Erik, little cousin.
No more than two days by sea."
He closed his eyes tightly for a full minute. "If your horses can take just a bit of water, you should be
able to ride straight there. And in
less time. We can start out in the morning." He shrugged.
"I've got to go that way myself. I'll need to arrange for Ganness' copra
to be picked up, and I'll have to visit the cave." Estalli reacted to
the last two words as though she had been slapped. "Seigar—" "Shh. Remember
Arta Myrdhyn's words. 'He will be a stranger from a far land.' I'll have to
take Karl Cullinane there.
And if he's not the one, the sword can protect itself. It has before." That was
the second time Wohtansen had brought up 184 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN this sword. Karl spent a half-second debating with himself whether
asking might offend the Mel. Then: "What
sword is this?" Wohtansen shrugged.
"The sword. I wish Svenna—he was the Clan Speaker—hadn't been taken by the
slavers; he could tell you the story, word by word." He raised his head. "Though Clan Erik still has its
Speaker. Do you want to wait until you can hear it properly?" "To
be honest, I'm itching with curiosity." Not particularly
about this sword, though. What were a group of Mel men doing with Scandinavian
names and Scandinavian accents? And more. The figureheads on
the dugouts looked like the dragons on Viking longboats; they were stylized,
almost rectangular, not
saurian, like Ellegon. The huts were bamboo-and-cane versions of
Viking lodges. That didn't make sense. A climate and
environment similar to Polynesia could have given rise to a culture similar to
the Polynesian culture, complete with loose, wraparound clothing, outrigger
canoes, and a loose and easy life-style
based on the bounty of the sea. But where had the Scandinavian elements come from? It was possible that the dragon-headed
canoes or the accent or the
similarity of some of the names could have been a coincidence, but not
all three. Seigar Wohtansen sat
up, then drained his mug, beckoning
to Estalli for a refill. "Very well. My father's father's
father's . . ." He knit his brow in
concentration as he counted out the generations
by tapping his fingers against his leg. "... father's father's father's father, Wohtan
Redbeard, was called a pirate, although he truly was a just man. He sailed his boat on a sea of salt, as he raided the
villages of the wicked landfolk, taking from them their ill-gotten grain
and gold." As
Wohtansen spoke, the children sat down on the The Guardians of the
Sword 185 mats, listening intently, as if to a
favorite, of ten-repeated bedtime story. "... he and his men would appear from over the
horizon, beach their boat, then ..." One of the little boys leaned over toward
an older sister. "How could they sail
on salt?" he asked, in a quiet whisper. She sneered down at
him, holding herself with the air of superiority possessed by older sisters everywhere. "There
was salt in the water." "That doesn't
make sense. Why would they waste salt by putting it in the water?" he
pressed. "Father says salt is hard enough to find as it is." "They
didn't. It was already there." "How?" "Shh,
Father's talking." "... but
this night was dark, and a storm raged on the sea, sending his ship
leaping into the air, then crashing down into the troughs between the waves. ..." "Why didn't
they just land?" The boy nudged his sister again. She sighed. "Because they were too far out at sea." "Didn't they know that they weren't
supposed to go out of sight of land?" "I guess they forgot." "... and just as he thought that his ship
would founder and sink, the sky cracked open
around him, and the ship found itself
on the quiet waters of the Cirric. ..." "But
how did it get here?" "Weren't you listening?" She
gave him a clout on the head. "The sky
cracked open." He rubbed at the
spot where she had struck him. "I've never seen that." "You
will if you don't be quiet." "... standing at the prow was an old man.
White-bearded, he was, dressed in gray
wizard's robes. Clutched tightly in fingers of light, a sword floated in the air over his head. 186 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN " 'I, Arta
Myrdhyn, have saved your lives and brought you here,' he said, in a tongue they had never before heard, but somehow understood, 'to take this to a
place I will show you.' His voice was
the squeak of a boy whose manhood was
almost upon him, yet his face was lined with age. 'You and your children will watch over it, and keep it for one
whom I will send.' "A man named Bj0rn laughed. 'My
thanks for the sword,' he said. 'But I will
take it for myself.' "As he sprang
across the deck at the wizard, lightning leaped from the wizard's fingers, slaying
Bj0rn instant-ly. ..." The boy looked up at
his sister. "Bj0rn? What kind of name is Bj^rn?" "An unlucky one. And a stupid one. Now, shh." "... brought them to the cave, and left the
sword there, amid the writings that only two
of them could see, and none of them
could read. 'Watch for strangers,' Arta Myrdhyn said. 'One day, a stranger will come for the sword.' " 'But how will
I know him?' my many-times-greatgrandfather asked. "The wizard
shook his head. 'You will not, and neither will your children, or their children. It is not yours to know,
but to watch, and wait. The sword will know. . . .' " "How can a sword know anything?" "It's a magical sword, stupid." "Hmph." "... accepted
them gladly, and offered their daughters
as wives." Wohtansen raised his head. "And so, they settled down to an easier life, raised their
children, and grandchildren, down
the nine generations." He thumped his
hand against his mat. "And here we are." He tapped the jug. "More juice?" Ahira caught Karl's
eye. "What we've had has already gotten to my bladder." He elbowed Karl
in the side. "Oof. Me, too. If you'll excuse us for a moment?" The Guardians of the
Sword 187 "Did you catch all that, Karl?"
Seating himself on a waist-high rock, the
dwarf drummed his heels against the stone. Karl's head swam. It made sense, but it
didn't. All at once. "I don't understand it. Part of it makes sense, but ..." What Wohtansen had said boiled
down to the sort of story a group of conquering
Vikings might tell to their children and grandchildren. "But eight,
nine generations? When were the Vikings? About eleventh century, no?" Ahira nodded. "Something like that.
And with the faster time rate on This Side, if a bunch of eleventh-century Vikings crossed over, they should have
been here for far more than two centuries. Especially since time passes so much more quickly here." Karl nodded. That was what Deighton had
said, and what they had observed. Their
trip from Lundeyll to the Gate Between Worlds had taken a couple of
months on This Side, but when they had used the Gate to return home, only a few
hours had passed. Once, he had sat down with Lou Riccetti to figure it out: For
every hour that passed at home, about four
or five hundred flew by here. "It can't be something as simple as
Deighton lying," Karl said. "No." The dwarf scowled.
"Deighton has lied to us more than once, but not this time. We know he was
telling the truth. This time. The time rate is faster here, relatively." "Maybe
not." Karl shrugged. "Maybe the time differential fluctuates. That'd explain some
things." "Like what?" "Think it through." Karl stamped
his foot. "Wish I'd had the sense to, before." He gestured around
them. "If this side really was four hundred times as old as Earth, that'd
make it about sixteen hundred billion years old, no? It'd be that much more worn; most of the atmosphere 188 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN would have escaped, probably; all the
mountains would have worn themselves down." "Huh?"
Ahira's forehead furrowed. "You're telling me that mountains wear out? Too much
dry-cleaning?" "Give me a
break. Mountains tend to wear down, just like anything else. The Appalachians are older than the Rockies,
which is why they don't rise as high, not anymore. In another couple of
billion years, they'll be the Appalachian
plains, if tectonic forces don't raise a whole new set of mountains.
Entropy." The dwarf pounded his
fist against the rock. "Deighton lied again." "Maybe; maybe not." Karl shook
his head. "So, the time differential fluctuates. But maybe Deighton didn't
know that. After all, the time rate could
have worked just the way he said it did during his whole life. He could
have been telling the truth." "I doubt
it." The dwarf shook his head. "I didn't think you caught it. Remember the wizard's name:
Arta Myrdhyn. Sound familiar?" "Myrdhyn. Well, that kind of sounds
like Merlin." Karl shrugged. "I guess it's possible that Arta Myrdhyn
inspired the legends about Merlin." That wouldn't be surprising; he had
already seen evidence that happenings on
this side had leaked over the boundary between worlds: elves, dwarves, wizards throwing
bolts of lightning, the silkies of the northern Cirric, the notion of
fire-breathing dragons, the cave beneath Bremon that was echoed in the writings
of Isaiah— "No. Or maybe," the dwarf
corrected himself. "But that's not the point. Remember how Wohtansen described the wizard? 'White-bearded ... his
voice was the squeak of a boy whose manhood was almost upon him, yet his face was lined with age.' Doesn't
that sound like someone we
know?" Ohgod. "And the name: Arta—Arthur. Arthur Simp-son Deighton. But he said—" The Guardians of the
Sword 189 "That he had only seen this side, but
never had been able to bring himself across. That's what he said, Kail. Doesn't make it true." Karl shook his head.
"I don't see what this all adds up to." "Me neither." The dwarf
shrugged. "And I've got a hunch we're
not going to for quite a while. If ever. Unless you want to try to slip
past The Dragon, again, then go quiz
Deighton." "I'll
pass, thanks." "Thought so." "I don't see you volunteering." "I'm not."
Ahira flexed his arm, his biceps bulging like a huge knot. "I like it here. No, I think we just keep
thinking about it. Maybe Walter or Andrea or Lou Riccetti will have some idea; maybe Ellegon knows more than he's telling. We'll just have to wait until
we get back to the valley." "Well,
what do we do in the meantime?" Ahira smiled.
"That's easy. We live. Eat. Breathe. Kill slavers. All the usual
stuff." Karl snorted. "Well, let's get back
inside, then. Got a lot to think about." Ahira raised a finger. "There is one
more thing we'd better do." "Yes?" "I think we'd better have a look at
this sword of Woh-tansen's." "Right." CHAPTER THIRTEEN: The Scourge Her beams bemocked the sultry main, Like April hoarfrost
spread; But where the ship's huge shadow lay, The charmed water burnt away A still and
awful red. —Samuel Taylor Coleridge "I still say we should have
taken them while they were at sea," Lensius muttered to Hynryd, his voice pitched
so that Ahrmin could hear
him, but only barely. Lensius shook his
head, his long, greasy ringlets of hair waggling in counterpoint. "And we would have, were I in charge." Hynryd
nodded. "That's what Jheral thought, too." "I know. He—" "Enough." Ahrmin's fingers
tightened on the hilt of his sword. Lensius and Hynryd fell silent. Ahrmin sighed. The fiasco at the dock
hadn't done anything to improve his standing with his thirty-seven remaining men. What had once been only a silent
resentment had become open doubt, sometimes verging on mutiny. But that
didn't matter. Only one thing mattered. So / failed, Karl Cullinane. This first
time. That's not so important; even Father couldn't beat you the first time.
But it isn't the first time that counts, Karl Cullinane. It's the last time. He looked around the Scourge's cramped
forward hold. Of the thirty-odd faces, the only one that didn't bear a frown
was Thyren's; the wizard held himself 190 The Scourge 191 above both the sailors and slavers. In contrast to the grubbiness of the rest, the wizard's gray robes
were clean and unwrinkled, his drawn
face freshly shaved, his thin lips
holding a disdainful smile. "Ahrmin?" Raykh scratched at his
head. "I think we should consider letting this Karl Cullinane go. There's enough gold to be had picking up a few dozen
Mel." He rapped on the bulkhead behind him. "Enough space in
the hold for one hundred and fifty, two hundred, if we pack tightly enough." Ahrmin's irritation
rose. He'd had enough of the tight-pack fanatic. Of all tight-pack fanatics. It had been proved, over and over again,
that there was more money to be made by delivering a smaller number of healthy
slaves than by tight-packing them, chaining them all closely together in the
hold, leaving them to stew in their own wastes during a sea voyage, having to throw away those who didn't survive,
then treat the others with expensive
healing draughts before a sale. Tight-packing was a
particularly stupid way to handle Mel. Mel didn't take easily to their chains;
many would refuse to eat.
Tight-packed, they could lose more than half of the slaves. Even loose-packed,
the trip from Melawei to Pandathaway would kill ten, maybe twenty percent of the cargo, and leave the rest sick as
dogs. Of course, they
could always sell the surviving slaves as-is. But in Pandathaway—or anywhere else along the coast, for that matter—there was little demand
for sickly slaves who had to be either healed or nursed back to health before they would be any use to their new
owners. Tight-packing would kill much
profit. Besides,
tight-packing the women would remove one of the great joys of the profession. Ahrmin snorted. "And what would you
do? It would take several tendays in a good
port to refit the Scourge for tight-pack." Raykh shrugged.
"It seems a bit late to point that out. We could have—" 192 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Thyren cleared his throat; Raykh fell silent. "I believe that was Ahrmin's
point," the wizard said. "We're not in Pandathaway. Nor are we in
Lundeyll, or Port Salke, or even Ehvenor. To
be precise, we're off the coast of Melawei. Even if you wanted to take
the time and money to refit the slavehold, I doubt that the locals would be willing to help you." Fihka spoke up, his
low growl barely carrying over the rush of water. "We could always make them help us." The wizard eyed him
for a moment, then carefully spat in Fihka's face. Fihka reddened, but kept his
white-knuckled fists at his sides, not even daring to raise his hands to wipe
the spittle from his cheek. The others near him turned their faces away, not
wanting to be next. "Fool," Thyren said, smiling
gently. "Who do you think I am? Grandmaster Lucius? Arta Myrdhyn? I can
easily hold off any one of these Mel wizards and his apprentices. I could
probably take on two, perhaps as many as
three. But if I were stupid enough to allow you to anchor the Scourge
offshore for—a tenday, did you say? two?—we would quickly find the ship
surrounded by every Mel wizard and apprentice that could run, paddle, swim, or
crawl. There is a limit to how many spells I can intercept." Thyren rose. "But enough of this
nonsense; I have better things to do than listen to more squabbling." He rose and left, all of the men glaring in unison at
the door as he closed it behind him. You would be able
to dispel more if you didn't insist on keeping other spells in your head, wizard. Like your lightning bolt, or flame spell, Ahrmin thought. But
then you wouldn't be
able to abuse everyone with impunity, would
you? Then it occurred to him that Thyren had,
albeit unknowingly, done him a favor. By
acting as a lightning rod for the
men's discontent, the wizard had given Ahrmin a chance to ingratiate
himself with the others. The Scourge 193 But how? He thought for a
moment, and an idea that had been in the back of his mind suddenly jelled. "Raykh,"
he said. "You should trust me more." Raykh's
head snapped around. "What?" "You assumed that I had no reason for
not taking the Warthog at sea." The other sneered. "I know your
reason. You want to take Cullinane
alive." "And you'd rather take a share of a
much smaller reward? Never mind. There is another reason. One that will fatten all of our pouches, as well. As much
as a tight-pack would if all the
slaves survived. And ..." "And?"
Raykh leaned forward, interested. "And my plan
will ensure that we can come upon Karl Cullinane unaware. It will be tricky, granted; and we have to
assume that Cullinane has business in Melawei that will take him at least a
day's ride away from where they've beached the Warthog. I'll be happy to
share my idea, if you're interested."
Ahrmin lay back on his bunk, cradling his head on his arms. "But my major
concern is Cullinane. If you don't
mind forgoing some extra slaves, some
extra coin . . ." He closed his eyes. "Wait," another voice piped up.
"Don't keep it a secret, Master
Ahrmin." He sat up, making sure that his smile
didn't reach his face. "Master Ahrmin," eh? I like the sound of
that. "Very well." Ahrmin nodded.
"The timing will be tricky, but I'm
sure we can do it." He pulled the glass ball from his pouch,
unwrapped the soft leather sheets that covered
it. Ahrmin cradled the
ball in the palm of his hand. "It all depends on this." The finger floated in the center of the
sphere, bobbing slowly in the yellow oil. From the finger's hacked-off stump,
threads of tendon and shreds of skin waved gently, while the slim fingernail
pointed unerringly toward the north. 194 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Listen
carefully, now. We'll lie offshore, out of sight, until we're sure that Cullinane has gone a
fair distance away, then ..." CHAPTER FOURTEEN: The Cave
of Writings The great brand Made lightnings in the splendor of the moon, And flashing round and round, and whirled in an arch, Shot like a streamer of the northern morn, Seen where the moving isles of winter shock By night, with noises of the northern sea ... —Alfred, Lord Tennyson There are times, Karl thought, when
I like this business a whole lot. He rode Carrot at the edge of the water, sometimes kicking her into a canter, urging
her a short way into the surf. Her hooves
kicked up spray, bathing both of them
in a cool shower. "Stop that, Karl. Get back on the
beach." Aeia laughed, wiping the spray
from her eyes. To his left and a few yards behind, she bounced along on
Pirate's back, her feet barely reaching the
shortened stirrups. She patted Pirate's
white neck. Aeia had grown fond of that horse; it occurred to Karl that she would probably have a harder time saying goodbye to Pirate than
to him. Almost three hundred yards offshore, four
dugouts kept pace with them. The first one
held Tennetty, Chak, Ahira, Seigar,
Wohtansen, and two other Mel paddlers; the other two, each manned by
three Mel, were piled high with trade goods from the Warthog. In a
couple of days, the men of Clan Wohtansen would free the boat 195 196 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN from its sandbar, so that Ganness could sail down to collect his copra. Ahead, a small island
grew closer. Perhaps a quarter-mile
offshore, it was heavily wooded and roughly conical,
rising to a height of almost a hundred feet at its peak. Aeia's eyes grew
wide. "Karl." She pulled Pirate to a stop and stared at the island,
her eyes filling with tears. He guided Carrot over to her side. "What's wrong?" "I remember. My parent's house
is . . ." Her pointing forefinger
wavered, then straightened. "That way. Along that path." Her
arm trembled; she lowered it. He dismounted from
Carrot's saddle and helped Aeia down from Pirate. "Let's walk, shall we?" Taking Pirate's reins in her left hand,
she clasped Karl's right hand as they
walked along the sand. From the top of a
slanting palm tree, a rough tattoo of drumbeats issued, then echoed as they were repeated along the path
into the forest. As the three dugouts
were beached, Karl smiled down at
Aeia. "Let's wait a moment." "But—" she tugged on his hand. "But nothing." He smoothed down
the sides of his sarong. "I may be
dressed in local costume, little one, but I don't think anybody grows
quite this tall or hairy around here. I'd rather your clan finds out that I'm
friendly before we meet them, rather than after I've gotten a spear through my chest." Seigar Wohtansen
spoke a few quiet words to one of his men; the Mel sprinted across the sands and
disappeared into the forest, as Wohtansen and the rest walked over to where Karl and Aeia
stood. They were all
dressed in local costume. Karl laughed at the way Chak's sunburned potbelly protruded over the waist of his sarong, although Rahff wore his with
dignity. On the other hand, Tennetty
actually looked kind of nice in a sarong, if you could ignore the scars along
her belly The Cave of Writings 197 and back. And the way that her right hand never strayed far from
the hilt of her sword. / guess I've been
away from Andy-Andy far too long, if Tennetty's starting to look good. Ahira looked ridiculous. The hem of his
sarong brushed the sand, and it didn't really go with the chain-mail vest that
he wore over a thin under-shirt. Dwarfs weren't built to wear sarongs. But who
except me would tell him that? As always, the dwarf had his battleaxe
with him, strapped across his broad chest. While Ahira really wasn't as touchy
as his scowling face suggested, it was unlikely that anyone would risk finding
that out. Wohtansen tapped
Karl's shoulder. "The Eriksens will be down to pick up their goods in a short while. And, I suspect,
celebrate their surprise." He ran affectionate fingers through Aeia's hair; his face grew somber. "Which
means that you and I had best be getting on to the cave. I know Clan Erik;
likely you won't be able to leave the celebration for days without offending
someone." Aeia's lower lip
trembled; Karl dialed for a reassuring smile, relieved to find that at least some sort of grimace spread across his face. It would be hard leaving Aeia here. Karl
had never had a little sister before. "I guess we'd
better," he said, handing Carrot's reins to Chak. "Keep an eye on everything." "No sweat, kemo
sabe," Chak said in English, his thick accent leaving a lot to be desired. Karl
raised an eyebrow. "Kemo sabe?" Chak nodded, then turned to Ahira. "I
said that properly, no?" "Close."
Ahira shrugged an apology to Karl. "Well, he asked to be taught some English. And so did Rahff." "I can see you started them with the
important stuff first." 198 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Of course." Wohtansen was getting impatient. Karl
turned to accompany him. "Coming, Ahira?" Karl asked. The dwarf shook his head. "You have
to swim to get there. I think you'd better
count me out. But I will want to hear about it, later." "Swim?" Wohtansen nodded.
"You'd better give your sword to one of your friends. You'd have trouble
swimming with it." Karl unbuckled his swordbelt and tossed
the scab-barded sword to Rahff. "Don't lose it, now." "Of course, Karl." His
apprentice nodded gravely. "And ... up
your nose with a rubber nose," he added in English, bowing slightly. Karl laughed. "Ahira, you cut that
out." Karl unstrapped his sandals, then kicked them off, absent-mindedly spraying Ahira with sand. The dwarf chuckled; Karl and Wohtansen
dropped their sarongs on the sand and jogged
away. The water was warm and clear; Karl kept to
Woh-tansen's pace as they swam toward the
island. But it had been a
long time since Karl had been swimming, and a quarter of a mile was more
distance than he was used to;
by the time Wohtansen pulled himself up onto
the flat top of a jutting boulder, then offered Karl a hand up, Karl was
grateful for the help. He mimicked Wohtansen, stretching out on a
rock, resting while the hot sun dried his
skin. His breath came in short
gasps; Karl forced his breathing to slow down. "Any reason we couldn't just take a canoe over?" Wohtansen smiled
tolerantly at Karl's panting. "Yes." He thumped a fist on the boulder.
"Whole island is rocky, like this. No place to beach it. Besides, it's better
not to draw attention to this
place. Just in case." Wohtansen rose to
his feet. "This way." The Cave of Writings 199 The narrow path twisted sharply upward
through the bushes, until they arrived at the summit of the island, a rocky outcropping overlooking the seaward side. A
single palm grew there, projecting
out of a crack in the rock. A sparkling in the leaves caught KaiTs eye; he
glanced up. A glass ball, only
slightly larger than a lightbulb, hung in midair among the palm's fronds, hobbling slightly in the breeze. Wohtansen smiled. "A gift from Arta
Myrdhyn; you can see what it does when we
get below." Below? The Mel brought him
to the ledge and pointed downward.
A few yards from where the waves broke against the rocks almost a hundred feet
below, the water burbled. "There's a
spring that feeds into the Cirric down there. It will help us coming
out, but it does make it difficult to go in. "Listen closely: After I strike the
water, count forty breaths, take as large a breath as you can, then follow me. Dive directly for the rough water, then swim
down, as far as you can. The tunnel
goes deep, very deep. Don't hesitate, just keep swimming down. It will
be difficult for you, but it can be done. "You must keep your eyes open; when
you see light, swim toward it. I'll meet you
and help you the rest of the way. Do
you understand?" At Karl's nod,
Wohtansen walked away from the edge, took a running start, and leaped outward, away from the edge, his
body arching into a classic swan dive, then straightening a scant pulsebeat
before he hit the surface. Wohtansen struck the
dark water cleanly; he vanished, only a small splash marking his passing. Karl took
a deep breath and began counting. One breath. / don't like this, not at
all. But he kept breathing and counting. Ten. Well, at least we know why someone
as young and vital as Wohtansen is the
wizard around here. Not a 200 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN job for an old man; one misstep and he'd
shatter himself on the rocks. Twenty. // / remember right, the cliff
divers in Acapulco dive more than a hundred feet from La Que-brada—if they can
do it; why the hell can't I jump a bit less? Twenty-five. Because
I'm not trained for it, that's why the hell I can't do it. Or why I
shouldn't, if I had a brain in my head. Thirty. But
do I have any choice? Thirty-five.
Not if I want to see this sword. To hell with it. He began
hyperventilating, forcing air in
and out of his lungs. He counted out five quick breaths, added another fifteen
for good measure, eyed the distance from the rocks to the bubbling water, ran,
and dove, his hands forming into fists of their own volition. The air clung to him like a rubber sheet;
the scant three seconds that he fell felt
like a long hour. He hit. The water slammed
into him like a brick wall, knocking the air out of his lungs, as he sank
into the smooth tunnel, scraping his right shoulder against the stone. For a moment, he
considered returning to the surface, giving up for now, trying again later. But he knew
that if he backed away now, he would never regain his nerve. So he swam down,
into the black water, kicking his legs as frantically as he worked his arms. The pressure in his
chest grew; his lungs burned with a cruel fire; his diaphragm ached to draw
anything, anything into his lungs. And just when he
finally thought his head and chest would split wide open, a horizontal channel
appeared beside
him, marked by a flickering light. Karl swam toward the light. A hand grasped his
outstretched arm; Karl went limp and let Wohtansen pull him through the
horizontal tunnel, then up through another vertical one. The Cave of Writings 201 Two yards above him, the surface rippled
invitingly. Desperately, he kicked himself
from Wohtansen's grasp and stuck his head through to the surface. His first breath was the sweetest one he had ever taken. Karl pulled himself
out of the water and lay gasping on the rough stone floor. Seal-like, Wohtansen slipped from the
water, then handed Karl a thick, soft
blanket. "Here. Take a moment to
dry off. It gets cold in here." Following his own advice, the Mel took another blanket from a cane drying
rack. As he dried himself,
Karl looked around. They were in a small, almost spherical room, the stone
floor concave to accommodate the pool in the center, the walls rising to a height of perhaps
five yards. Glowing crystals speckled the walls. Just like the
crystals in the Cave of The Dragon. An icy chill crept along his spine; he rubbed
himself harder, but the chill remained. A long, jagged crack ran along the ceiling
on the far side of the room, letting in shreds of noon sunlight through the
green foliage that grew over the outside of the
wall. That wall couldn't have been more than a
few inches thick; chiseling a doorway
wouldn't have been difficult. Still, it was understandable why the Mel
hadn't created another, more convenient way into the caverns. If this was the source of their magic, it would be best to
keep it hidden. On the far side of
the cavern, a tunnel stood as the only exit other than the pool. Wohtansen helped
Karl to his feet, and they started to walk toward the tunnel. Low enough that Karl had to stoop to walk
through it, the tunnel was only ten feet long,
opening up on another cavern. "You won't be able to see the magical
writing on the far wall, but I think you'll enjoy . . . this." Karl started. On the wall beside him, a
huge picture window looked down on the sea. 202 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Window? How can there be a window? They were inside the island; a window on
that wall would open on rock, not look down
on the Cirric. And it wasn't a painting;
the waves in a painting didn't ripple; the clouds in a painting didn't
move. "That's
just not possible. We're at sea level." Wohtansen smiled. "Remember the Eye
you saw above. Arta Myrdhyn left it there, and this here, so that we would never have to leave this place without
knowing what lies outside." Wohtansen at his
side, Karl walked to the window and ran his fingers over the cool glass. The view spun. "Gently, gently," Wohtansen
said, pulling Karl's arm from the glass. He
put his own fingers on the left side of the glass, and pressed gently for a moment. Like a camera
panning to the left, the picture moved. Now the glass revealed a distant view of the
beach, where perhaps a dozen people stood. "It seems that
some of the Eriksens have arrived on the beach," Wohtansen said. He pressed his fingers to the center
of the window, holding them firmly against the glass. The field of vision
narrowed, zooming in until it could hold only four figures, all of them with
the flat appearance brought on by a
telescope or binoculars. Ahira stood smiling,
while a fiftyish Mel couple, their faces dripping with tears, hugged little
Aeia so hard that Karl
thought they might squeeze the air out of her. Wohtansen removed his hand from the glass,
then lightly touched it on the right side, again removing his hand when the seaside view slid around. "But
this is what it's for." He jerked his head toward the exit tunnel. "Come." They walked into the
tunnel. This one was longer than the other, forty yards of twisting turns. As they neared the tunnel's mouth, the brightness grew. But it
was a different sort, a whiter, purer light.
The Cave of Writings Karl stepped up his
pace. He reached the final bend in the tunnel and stepped out into brightness. "I don't—" the words caught in
his throat; his head spun. Above a rough stone altar, gripped tightly
by ghostly fingers of white light, the sword floated in midair. CHAPTER FIFTEEN: The Sword Once more unto the breach, dear friends, once more; Or close the wall up with our English dead! In peace there's nothing so becomes a man - As modest stillness and humility; But
when the blast of war blows in our ears, Then
imitate the action of the tiger; Stiffen
the sinews, summon up the blood, Disguise fair nature with hard-favored rage; Then lend the eye a terrible aspect. —William Shakespeare Karl's breath caught in his throat. His hands trembled. But why? In and of
itself, the sword didn't look unusual. It was a fairly
ordinary two-handed broadsword, three inches wide at the ricasso, tapering at first
gently, then suddenly, to a needle-pointed tip; a cord-wound grip and long, thick brass
quillons proclaimed it a sword for use, not for dress. The blade was free
of nicks and rust, granted, but Karl had seen many swords just as good. Perhaps a
sword like this was worth sixty, seventy gold. No more. So why was just looking at it like an electric shock? "Part of the spell." Wohtansen
chuckled thinly. "It affects everyone
that way." Karl tore his eyes
away from the sword and the ghostly hand gripping it. He turned to face
Wohtansen. "What . . .
?" The Mel shrugged. "I don't know much more about it 204 The Sword 205 than I've told you. There are two charms on it that I can
see." He tapped the middle of his forehead. "With the inner sight.
One holds it there, waiting." He gestured at the bands of light clutching
the sword. "For the one whom Arta Myrdhyn has intended to have it." "The other?" "A charm of protection. Not for the
sword, for the bearer. It will protect him from magical spells." Karl couldn't keep
his eyes off the sword any longer; he turned back. His palms itching for the cord-wound hilt, he took a step forward. "Wait." Wohtansen's hand fell on
Karl's shoulder. "What do you read on the blade? What does the blade say?" The blade was shiny steel, lacking any
filigreed inscription. "Say? Nothing."
Karl shrugged the hand away. "Nothing? Then
we may as well go; the sword was not left for you." Wohtansen stared intently
into KarFs face. "I'd hoped you were the one," he said sadly, then bit his lip as he shook his head. "But hoping
never did make it so." Karl took another step toward the sword.
It vibrated, setting up a low hum that filled the cavern. As Karl leaned toward
it, the humming grew louder. He reached up and fastened both hands on
the hilt, while the radiance grew brighter, the humming louder. The fingers of
light dazzled his eyes; they gripped the sword
more tightly. His eyes tearing, Karl squinted against
the light and pulled. The vibration rattled
his teeth, but he gripped the hilt tightly and pulled even harder. The
light grew so bright that it made his eyes
ache even through closed eyelids, but the sword didn't move at all. Goddam it, he thought. Here I am, trying to grab a
magical vibrator when I should be home with my wife and child and— The sword gave a fraction of an inch, then
stopped, frozen in place. /rn 206 /THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN / "Karl." Wohtansen's voice was shrill. "It's
never moved before. Pull harder, Karl Cullinane. Harder." He pulled
harder. Nothing. He gripped the hilt
even more tightly, then braced his feet against the stone altar, and pulled on
the sword until his heart pounded in his chest, and the strain threatened to break his
head open. Move,
dammit, move. Nothing. He set his
feet back on the floor and released his grip. The light faded back
to its original dimness; the vibration slowed, then stopped. "I can't do
it." Karl shook his head. Wohtansen tugged at his arm. "A pity," Wohtansen said.
"When it moved, I was certain you were
the one." He pursed his lips,
then shrugged, as he led Karl back through the tunnel, the radiance diminishing behind them. "But it's not the first disappointment
in my life; it won't be the last." Wohtansen waved a hand at the window and
walked to the far wall. "I do have to reimprint some spells; if you'd like, amuse yourself with the Eye while I
study." He seated himself tailor-fashion in front of the wall opposite the glass, folded his hands in his lap,
and began reading the invisible
letters, moving his lips as he studied it. Karl stared intently at the wall. No, it
was just a blank wall to him; since he didn't have the genes that allowed him
to work magic, he couldn't even see the writing. That hardly seemed fair. Then again, damn little was fair; damn
little even made sense. Although some things
were beginning to. Arta Myrdhyn and the sword, for one. Things on this side
were often reflected as legends on the other side, at home. A great broadsword, somehow The Sword 207 involved with the plans of a powerful wizard, held immobile until
the right man appeared to claim it...
that sounded like the story of Excalibur.
The legend had been garbled, granted, but that wasn't unexpected. The Excalibur story had never made sense
to Karl; if whoever could remove Excalibur from the stone were automatically to
become king of England, England would quickly be ruled by the first stoneworker
to happen along and chisel it loose. No spell could
prevent that; magic worked erratically back home, when it worked at all. But what does all this add up to? Deighton had brought a group of Vikings
through to this side, not primarily to guard
the sword, but to guide the right one to the sword, a sword that
protected its bearer against magic. And the right one was
supposed to take it. To use it. To use it for what? Karl shook his head.
He couldn't follow the thread any further. What are you really up to, DeightonP He shrugged. Ahira
was right. It would be a long time, at best, before they knew. Karl turned to the
window that looked out on the sea. He pressed his fingers against the left side
of the glass and spun the
view shoreward. A procession of Mel was engaged in bringing canvas sacks down
the beach and depositing them on the sand just above the high-water mark. The pile was already well over six feet
high. Karl shrugged.
Ganness' copra, no doubt. Too bad for Avair that he couldn't bring it directly to Pandathaway, but would
instead have to sell it in Ehvenor to some Pandathaway-bound merchant. The
dried, unpressed coconut meat would bring a
high price in Pandathaway; after it had been run through presses, what
oil the wizards didn't need would find its
way into gentle soaps and balms, while the remaining meat would end up
in breads and cakes. 208 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN But why were they
bringing it down to the beach now? Ganness and the Warthog weren't due
until tomorrow. Right now,
the Eriksens should be celebrating Aeia's return. Karl spun the view
seaward. Just over the horizon, a black speck grew. A ship. That explained it.
Ganness was on his way a day early, and the Clan Erik coastwatchers had spotted
the Wart-hog.
Undoubtedly, the watchers had sounded the alarm, which had then been canceled when
Wohtansen's men explained that there was a friendly ship en route. Karl opened his
mouth to tell Wohtansen about it, but changed his mind; the Mel was still studying
the wall, his whole body tensed in concentration. Wish I'd asked
how long this was going to take. Idly, he centered the ship on the screen and
pressed his fingers to the center of the glass. The Warthog grew in the screen as
it seemed to sail directly toward Karl. The ship rode high in the water, since
most of its cargo had been unloaded in Clan Wohtan. As it moved closer, Karl
could make out Ganness at the prow. That was unusual;
Ganness generally ran the ship from the main deck, where he was midway between the lookout in the
forward mast and the steersman at the stern. That way, he could lounge in his
chair while still able to hear warnings and
give commands easily. Only when the ship
needed careful handling did he act as either lookout or steersman himself.
Beaching the ship in the lagoon had needed that careful handling; beaching it here should just be a matter of sailing
the Warthog slowly toward shore until it wouldn't go any farther. Ganness' figure grew in the screen.
Trembling, he raised a hand to wipe sweat from his brow. What's Ganness
nervous about? I guess there could be underwater boulders near the shore, but that shouldn't scare him like this. Karl moved his finger to scan the rest of the ship, but The Sword 209 his control wasn't fine enough; the Warthog
scudded out of the Eye's field of view. Damn. He removed his finger from the screen, centered the ship as
soon as the field widened, and zoomed in
carefully, making fingertip corrections to the aim of the Eye. Standing next to Ganness was a young man.
His face was dark and thin, his hair straight. A cruel smile flickered across his lips as he examined a dark
glass ball, slipped it into his pouch, then turned to say something to the men behind him. He looked for all the world like a younger
version of Ohlmin. Karl's heart pounded. "Wohtansen, look." < The Mel wizard scowled at him. "Not
now, please. This is difficult." "Shut up. This is important. That's the slaver who tried to take me on the docks at Ehvenor. He and
his men have taken the Warthog. They're
going to be sailing right up to the damn beach, and the Eriksens won't
know—" "—that they are
slavers." Wohtansen whitened. "We've told them to expect
friends." "Right."
Karl's right hand ached for his sword. Got to figure out exactly what they're going to
do. The slavers had the element of surprise. How would they use
it? They would probably drop anchor or beach
the ship, and let some Eriksen dugouts come
out to meet them, just as if this
were a normal trading session. Then the slavers would kill or capture the Mel in the canoes, and use the canoes to go ashore, their wizard protecting them
all the while from the Mel wizard's
spells. They would work it something like that.
The slavers had clearly gone to some trouble
to gain the advantage of surprise,
and they would make good use of it. "Karl," Wohtansen said, his
voice shaky, "they must have already
raided my clan. Otherwise someone would have chased after us, to warn
us." 210 /
THE SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Be quiet for a moment." That
was true, but there wasn't anything that could be done about it right now. "We've only got one edge. You and I know
what's going on, but they don't know that we know." But how could they use that single
advantage? Karl and Wohtansen couldn't take
on the slavers all by themselves.
"You swim to shore, and quietly warn my people, only my
people. Tell Ahira to get into the treeline with his crossbow; have Chak take
Tennetty and Rahff, and hide themselves
along the path to the village." "But the Eriksens—" Karl shook his head. "If we let them
know, they'll sound the alarm. All that would do is turn this into a standard raid, with Clan Erik taking to the
hills, and the slavers scooping up a
few dozen stragglers. We've got to stop them; that wouldn't do it." The Pandathaway
wizard, he was the key; Karl would have to take the wizard out. "Just keep quiet until you hear
from me. If you raise a fuss, all you'll do is bring their wizard down on your
head. Now, move." "But you can't
take on the wizard, not by yourself. You don't have a chance." "I won't be by myself. Get going." Wohtansen ran toward the tunnel that led
to the entrance pool. Karl didn't wait for
the splash; he turned and sprinted toward the cavern of the sword. He seated himself tailor-fashion on the
cold stone. "Deighton, can you hear
me?" No answer. "I know you put this sword here for a purpose." Still no answer.
Nothing. Held firmly by the fingers of light, the sword hung silently in the air.
"Arta Myrdhyn, talk to
me. Say something." Nothing. He stood and walked
over to the rough stone altar and gently laid his hand on the sword's hilt. As though he The Sword 211 were holding a baby's arm, he pulled on the sword, as gently as he could. It didn't move. He pulled harder, harder; the light
brightened, the sword vibrated. Karl loosened his grip. Force wasn't the
answer. Reason had to be. Why would Arta Myrdhyn create or procure a
sword that rendered its user immune to magical spells? What was such a sword good for? The answer was obvious:
It was good for killing wizards. That
was Arta Myrdhyn's intention. Not all wizards, of
course. Myrdhyn wouldn't go to all that trouble to wipe out his own kind; he wanted a specific wizard killed. So. The sword had been left here for a
purpose, and that purpose was for the right
person to take it, to use to kill an
enemy of Deighton's. That made sense. But why would a
wizard as powerful as Arta Myrdhyn need to do this in such a roundabout way?
Why not just kill the wizard himself? There was only one
answer: Deighton wasn't sure that he could win, not in a fair fight. Unsummoned, a vision
of the Waste welled up. It had been
lush green forest, until a battle between two wizards
had scarred the land forever. And the Shattered
Islands lay across the northern part of the Cirric. Legend had it that they once were one island, one
kingdom. But the name of that island had been
lost. Lost? That didn't make sense. There were
records of everything in the Great Library of Pandathaway; knowledge
couldn't be lost as long as the library stood. Unless . . . Unless the name had been excised. Not just
from paper, but from minds. And who could do that better than the grandmaster
of Wizards' Guild? Hypothesis:
Deighton fought the grandmaster; their 212 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN battle created
the waste and
shattered the island. And while Deighton
wasn't killed, he had lost, and had either created or found the sword, brought
some Vikings across to guard
it, then fled to the Other Side. And, eventually, brought us across. That had to be
connected. If this was truly part of his battle with the grandmaster, Karl and the
rest being sent across had to be some sort of attack on his enemy. Then why hadn't Karl
been able to take the sword? If all that was true, then the sword should have
practically jumped into his hand. All it had done was move a little. Then I can't take
the sword because, for some reason, I'm not the one who is supposed to kill the
grandmaster. But I am
somehow connected with the right one, or the sword wouldn't have twitched. No! Deighton hadn't sent
them across until the night Andy-Andy joined the group. That was what triggered it. "Connected
with? As in 'the father of?" He rested his hand on
the sword's hilt. "And if I were to agree to take this for the purpose of
bringing it back to the valley, giving it to my son when he's ready—" Black shapes
flickered across the silvery blade, forming themselves into thick black letters. Take Me. Karl blinked. The letters were gone. The ghostly fingers faded, then vanished;
the sword clanged on the stone. Quickly, he stopped
to pick it up; the steel was blank, unmarred. "Okay,
Deighton, you've got yourself a deal." There's going to be an accounting between you and
me, one of these days. But, in the meantime, I'd damn well better
work out how I'm going to use this. CHAPTER SIXTEEN: Blood Price The world breaks everyone and afterward
many are strong at the broken places. But
those it cannot break it kills. It kills the very good and the very
gentle and the very brave impartially. If you are none of these you can be sure
that it will kill you, but there will be no
special hurry. —Ernest Hemingway Keeping all of himself except his eyes and
nose below the waterline,
Karl clung with both hands to a half-submerged
boulder. The sword, wrapped tightly in a blanket
from the cavern, was slung across his back with two strips Karl had torn from
another blanket. Hiding in shadow, he
kept motionless as the Warthog passed, no more than two hundred feet away. At the bow, the boy who looked like Ohlmin stood next to
Gan-ness, one arm around the captain's shoulders in false comradery, the
other resting on a scabbarded dagger. All over the ship, thirty, possibly forty
strangers worked in sailcloth tunics, never straying far from their swords and bows. So, that's the way they're playing it. All
of Ganness' crew had been replaced by slavers. Probably the crew was chained below. More likely, they were held
captive in the slavers' own ship. Or, conceivably, they were dead. With excruciating slowness, the Warthog
passed the island. There was no lookout
at the stern; Karl pushed off 213 214 THE SWORD AND THE
CHAIN the boulder and swam after the ship, struggling against the weight
of the sword to keep his head above water. The ship slowed
still further; its huge jib luffed, flapping in the wind, while crewmen doused the mainsail. But they
didn't bring the ship about or drop the anchor; the Warthog drifted in
toward the sandy shore. So that was the plan: The slavers would
ground the ship just as though this were a normal trading session. Then wait
until enough of the men of Clan Erik came down to the beach to load the cargo,
charge shoreward through the shallow water, and attack the unprepared Mel. Let's
see if I can put a few holes in that plan. It would have been nice to have Walter
Slovotsky around; Walter could have figured
out some way to get aboard without
alerting anyone, then taken out half the slavers before anyone realized
there was an intruder among them. Hell, Walter would probably have been able
to steal all their pouches, file their
swords down to blunt harm-lessness, then tie all the slavers' sandal
laces together without being spotted. Karl would have to
confront all of them, take out the wizard quickly, then do his best to hold on until help arrived. And that just
plain sucks. Too much had to go right. It would work just fine, if Karl
could take out the slavers' wizard quickly, if he wasn't too tired to hold off
a score of slavers, if the Eriksens arrived quickly enough. Too damn many ifs. He gave a mental shrug. I'm no Walter
Slovotsky, but let's see if I can do a bit
of Walter-style recon. He reached the stern
of the Warthog and clung desperately to the massive rudder, his breath coming in gasps. His back
and thighs ached terribly; the tendons in his shoulder
felt like hot wires. Swimming with the sword on his back had taken more out of him than he had thought. Blood Price 215 The rudder was
slippery, overgrown with some sort of slimy green fungus. The ship's railing
and deck loomed a full ten
feet over his head. It might as well have been a mile. There was nothing to grip; even rested, he Wouldn't be able to pull himself up by his fingernails. But halfway up the
blunt stern was Ganness' cabin. In the Warthog's long-ago better days, the captain's cabin had been a light, airy place, the light and air
provided by a large sliding porthole
made up of glass squares. Or was it a window? Didn't something have to
be round to be called a porthole? The glass had long
since broken, and the window was covered by boards, but the window sash might
still slide, if he could get
a grip on it without stabbing himself on the points of the rusted nails that
held the boards in place. Panting from the
exertion, Karl pulled himself up onto the rudder and rose shakily to his feet, balancing precariously, his hands resting on the splintered
wood of the windowsill. He tried
to slide the boarded-up window to one side. It didn't move. Years and years of the
wood swelling and contracting in the hot
sun and cool spray had welded the
window in place. If he pushed harder, he'd likely lose his
footing and splash back into the water. Either that, or his hands would slip and open themselves up on the nails. The nails—of course! His balance growing
even more hazardous, he reached over his shoulder and unslung the sword, then unwrapped it, dropping the
blanket and strips of cloth into the water.
He held the sword hilt-up. Careful, now. And I'd better pray that
there's nobody inside the cabin. Using the pommel like a hammer, he tapped lightly against the
point of a nail, flattening it. It didn't
make much sound; no one on the Warthog would be able to hear it over the whispering of the
wind and the quiet murmur of the
waves. 216 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN His free hand held
flat against the wood to dampen the vibration, he hit the flattened nail harder,
driving it back through the wood. The second nail took less time; the third,
only a few seconds. Soon, he pried the board away, dropped it
carefully into the cabin, and went to work on the second board. Within a few
minutes, he had cleared an opening large enough
to accommodate his head and shoulders. The slavers were
using the cabin as a storeroom; it was piled high with muslin sacks, rough wool
blankets, cases of winebottles, and chains. Karl slid
the sword into the cabin and followed it in. For a moment, he lay gasping on the floor.
No time. Can't afford this. He rose to his hands and knees, then crawled
to the cabin's door, putting his ear to the rough wood. No sound. Good; that meant that the slavers were all on deck. Using a rough blanket to towel himself off, he took a quick
look around the room. Over in a corner was his own rucksack. He opened it and
drew out his spare sandals and breechclout, quickly donning them before picking
up the sword. / always feel better when I'm dressed, and a fight is no time to worry about splinters. But there was no armor in the room. That
was bad; tired as he was, he could easily
miss a parry. This was one time that
he would have liked to have his boiled-leather armor, no matter how
uncomfortable it was over bare skin. As he moved again
toward the door, a familiar-looking brass bottle under a bunk caught his eye. Propping the sword against the bunk, he stooped to examine the
bottle, and found that there were eight other, similar ones, all marked
with the sign of the Healing Hand. Healing draughts. Thank God. He uncorked a bottle and drank deeply, then splashed the rest of the
bottle on his face and shoulders. The sweet, cool liquid washed Blood Price 217 away his muscle aches and exhaustion as though they never had been. Reclaiming the sword, he straightened. Good.
My chances of getting out of this alive have
just gone way up. He tucked another bottle of healing draughts under
his arm. It might come in handy. Next to the stacked bottles of healing
draughts were five other brass bottles.
These were plain, unengraved. He unstoppered one
and sniffed. Lamp oil. Not necessarily any use, but— I'm still stalling, he thought, suddenly aware that the dampness on his palms hadn't been caused by
either the splashed healing draughts or the water of the Cirric. I'd better get to it. Both of them
standing aft of the forward mast, Ahrmin smiled genially at Thyren. The wizard looked silly in a sailcloth tunic, but Ahrmin wasn't about to tell
him that. "Have you spotted
their wizard yet?" Ahrmin asked, as he stooped to check Ganness' bonds and gag,
then rolled the captain
through the open hatch, enjoying the thump and
muffled groan as Ganness landed in the hold. Thyren smirked. "Wizards." "Wizards?" Thyren closed his
eyes. His forehead furrowed. "There's
one on the beach." He opened his eyes. "And another, some distance
away, beyond the treeline." "Are you sure?" "Yes. My inner sight sees their
glow." He raised a palm. "But they can't see me; my own glow is
damped. They won't be able to see it until
it's too late. I have done this
before, you know." "Good."
Ahrmin turned to glare at Lensius and Fihka. Lensius was fondling a hooknet, while Fihka had taken his bolas from the rack beneath the mainmast.
"Put those down," he hissed. "We don't show any
weapons until we're ready." 218 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "And
when will that be?" Lensius muttered. "When enough of
them gather on the beach." A simple plan, but a good one: The crossbows would
kill twenty or thirty of the Mel men, cutting the locals' ability to defend themselves down to almost nothing. That,
and the element of surprise, would make it easy to gather up scores of women and children. The nice part of it
was that once Thyren had killed the Mel wizards and Ahrmin's men had gotten down to work, Ahrmin would
be able to take Thyren and a few others out
in search of Karl Cullinane, leaving the rest of his men to the boring task of chasing down the Mel. Thyren waved a hand
at Ahrmin's pouch. "Best to see where Cullinane is." Ahrmin shrugged. The last sighting he had
taken, before they had steered around the tiny island, had shown that Cullinane
was in the direction of the Mel village.
Since he wasn't on the beach, he was probably up at the village. Resting comfortably, I hope. It will be
the last time you will ever be comfortable, Karl Cullinane. I've put away four bottles of healing draughts, so that I
can keep you alive on our trip back to Pandathaway, while I amuse myself with you. I have to deliver you
unmarked to Wenthall, but that doesn't mean I can't spend hours cutting
you open, then healing you up. "Take a sighting," Thyren
repeated. "If he's within range, I'll put him to sleep before I deal with
the Mel wizards. That way, he won't have the chance to run." Ahrmin sneered. "Run? And abandon his
friends? Leave slavers alive behind
him?" He turned to Lensius, "Now,
if you please." Lensius smiled, and
beckoned to the milling throng on deck. With merry whoops, all except five of
the slavers vaulted over the
side and charged toward the beach. Thyren
caught Ahrmin's arm. "Take a sighting." Ahrmin
shrugged and reached for his pouch. "Since aiooa Price 219 you insist . . ."He pulled the
glass sphere from his pouch and
unwrapped the soft leathers that covered it. "Although we don't have to—" His breath caught in
his throat. Bobbing in the yellow oil, the dismembered finger pointed straight
down. "GannessI" Karl hissed, pulling the other away from the light streaming down through the hatch. When
both of them were safely in shadow,
Karl shook the captain's shoulder
with one hand while he wielded the sword with the other, slicing through
the ropes that tied Ganness' hands behind
his back. His face ashen, Ganness shook his head.
His eyes cleared. "Cullinane, they want you." "Shh. Drink
this." Karl unstoppered the bottle of healing draughts, then forced the mouth of the bottle between Ganness' lips. Immediately, color started
to return to Ganness' face. "You'd better get out of here. Things are going to get very nasty in just—" "Greetings, Karl Cullinane." A familiar face leaned out over the edge
of the hatch. "Please don't move a muscle." Four crossbowmen looked
down at him, their bows cocked, the bolts
pointing directly toward his heart. "I've
been waiting to meet you. If you'll be kind enough to stay where you
are, I'll be down in a moment." There was no doubt in Karl's mind that
Ahira was right: The face was Ohlmin's, only younger, smoother. Perhaps the eyes were a bit sharper, maybe the
smile was a trifle more cruel, but that was all. Another man joined
the five above. "Don't be foolish. Let me put him to sleep. Then you can chain
him at your leisure." The boy shrugged. "Very well." The other raised his hands and began to
mutter harsh words that were forgotten as
soon as they were heard. Ganness' eyes sagged shut, but Karl only
felt a momentary faintness. 220 THE SWORD AND THE
CHAIN He held
the sword tighter, while the wizard paled. "It's not working," the wizard shrilled. "Something's Interfering with—" Karl didn't wait for the wizard to finish;
he dove for the companionway, bolts
thudding into the deck behind him. He ducked through a door, and looked
around, while feet pounded on the deck
above him. There was no way out.
They would have the aft hatch covered before he could get to it. The captain's cabin,
the way I came in. He ran to the cabin, slammed the door behind him, and
threw the bolt. On the other side of the door, voices
shouted, feet thudded. / can dive out through there, and—no. If the slavers' wizard hadn't already taken out
Wohtansen, he would be doing that at any moment. There just wasn't time to get off the ship and then warn Wohtansen
to get away. I'll have to take them out quickly, then
get to the wizard. It's either that or make them come to me. His eye fell on the bottles of lamp oil
next to the healing draughts. I've got to try it. As hard blows shook the door, he uncorked
all except one of the bottles of oil, then slathered
their contents around the room, soaking himself with the lamp oil in the process. He lunged for his knapsack, jerked it
open, then extracted a piece of flint before dropping the knapsack and
opening a bottle of healing draughts. The pounding grew louder. Another few seconds and they'll be inside,
A quick, hefty swig of the sweet liquid for luck, then he
poured the rest of the bottle over his head, careful to keep both sword
and flint dry. He made sure that the healing draughts covered him from head to
toe, then tossed the empty bottle aside before opening another, putting it to
his lips, and draining it. He uncorked the last bottle of lamp oil
and held it in his left hand. A quick
thrust to the oil-wetted wood stuck Blood Price 221 the sword into the wall beside the door. He
coated most of the sword with the oil, then dropped the empty bottle to the floor. He retrieved another bottle of healing
draughts, and waited, while the slavers
pounded against the door. The wood held solid,
but the bolt began to give, protesting the punishment with the squeal of metal
strained beyond
its limits. As the door crashed inward, Karl took a
deep breath and stroked the flint along the
sword's length. One spark caught the oil. The cabin
burst into flame. Fire seared him; his skin crackled in the
flames, the pain taking his breath away. But he healed instantly, only to be burned again. The fire burned brighter, hotter. As the
flames seared his eyeballs, Karl screamed,
jamming his eyelids shut. He smashed a bearded face with the bottle
of healing draughts, then jerked the sword
from the wall and swung one-handed,
slicing through a slaver's neck. A lancing pain shot
through his belly accompanied by the cool slickness of a steel blade; Karl fell
back, batting the blade away.
He switched grips and threw the sword like a javelin, driving it into a
slaver's chest to its brass quillons. Another hand fastened
on his bottle of healing draughts. No. The bottle was Karl's only chance to come out of this
alive. He bit the other's hand, his teeth rending muscle and tendons, a rush of
salty blood filling his mouth. The pain stopped as
his wound healed, but the fire still roared, still burned him. Karl reached out with his free hand and
caught hold of a slaver's ear. While the slaver screamed, Karl brought his hand down and his knee up, the man's face shattering against his knee like a
bagful of eggs. Screams still filled his ears, but now they were only his 222 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN screams. Karl staggered through the shattered
door and into
the companionway beyond, his whole body on fire. His right hand fumbled at the bottle's
cork, but he couldn't control his fingers. He brought the cork to his mouth, clamped his teeth on it, and jerked it
loose. As he drank the sweet healing draughts, he
inhaled some of the fluid. Doubled over in a
coughing spasm, he splashed the
healing draughts over his body, making sure to get some into his eyes. The pain receded. He opened his eyes. At
first, his vision was cloudy; it was as if he had opened his eyes underwater. Then his vision
cleared. He poured some of the healing draughts onto the smoldering spots of his
breechclout, feeling the burns on his thighs and buttocks subside. The pain was gone.
Tossing the empty bottle aside, he let out his breath, then sucked in sweet,
fresh air. Behind him, the fire was spreading beyond the cabin. Through the wall of flame he
could see unmoving bodies, scattered across the room, crackling in the flame. Beside him in the companionway, a dead
slaver sat against a bulkhead, propped up by the sword stuck through his chest,
unseeing eyes staring up as Karl jerked the
sword from the body. The stench of burning flesh filled his
nostrils. He gagged, stumbling back through
the companionway. Ganness lay unmoving on the deck. "Ganness." Karl slapped Ganness'
face lightly, then harder. "Wake up." Ganness' eyelids fluttered, then snapped
open. He grabbed at Karl's arm. "Ganness, the ship's burning. Get
over the side. Quickly, now." "My ship—" "Your life—move." Karl jerked Ganness to his feet, then
pushed him toward the companionway. "Get out through the rear hatch; I've
got to get to the wizard." Karl ran
to the forward ladder, then climbed it, his Blood Price 223 feet touching every other rung. He broke through into daylight. On the
beach, a battle raged. No time for this. Where's— At the bow of the Warthog, the
wizard stood, wind whipping through his
hair, rippling his tunic, as he raised his hands over his head,
murmuring words that Karl couldn't make
out. Lightning crackled
from the wizard's fingers, the sun-bright bolts shooting shoreward. "Wizard!
Try me!" The wizard turned,
his sweaty face going ashen as his eyes widened. "Karl Cullinane. Wait." He raised
his hands. "Please don't. We can
talk—" Karl took a step forward. The wizard murmured
another spell. Again, lightning crackled from his fingertips, streaking
across the few feet that
separated Karl and the wizard. Inches from Kail's
chest, the lightning shattered into a stream of sparks that flowed around him,
never touching him. Karl took another step. "The sword—it's the sword of Arta Myrdhyn." "A sword made to kill wizards." And another step. Again, the wizard threw up his hands. "Wait.
I surrender to you. There's much I can do for you, Karl Cullinane, much I
can tell you. Wait, please." Karl stopped three
feet away and lowered the point of the sword. The wizard relaxed momentarily, a relieved
smile spreading across his face. Karl returned the smile, then slashed. Once. The smile was still
on both of their faces as the wizard's head rolled across the deck and splashed
overboard, leaving his body
behind to twitch in a pool of blood for a moment,
and then lie still. On the beach, the battle stopped. Slavers and Mel alike 224 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN staggered, then dropped to their knees, and to their bellies, unconscious. Except for one man.
Seigar Wohtansen stood at the waterline and lowered his arms. The sand around
him was
dotted with smoldering black patches. He sprinted across
the sand to the nearest Mel man and kicked him awake, holding a hand across the
man's mouth
to prevent him from crying out. "Quickly, before they wake." Roughly, the Mel woke
another of his fellows, and then another,
until all the Mel men stood among the
sleeping bodies of the slavers. And slowly,
cold-bloodedly, they picked up swords and knives, cutting the slavers' throats as
they slept. Karl shuddered, but
the roar of the fire behind him suggested that the Warthog wasn't the
place to be right now; he levered himself over the side and dropped into the water, wading
toward shore. As he reached the
beach, Wohtansen ran up. "This way—some got by us. Going up toward the
village." They ran up the
path, under the overhanging branches. "Just put them all to sleep," Karl
said, panting as he ran. Wohtansen shook his
head. "Can't. All out of ... spells." Scattered across the
trail ahead, the pieces of several dead slavers lay, already covered with a
blanket of flies. Karl nodded to himself as he leaped over a part of a leg. Looked like Ahira's
handiwork; nothing but a battleaxe could dismember someone so thoroughly. That boded well. A break in the trees
loomed ahead. Through it, Karl could see the tops of Mel lodges. Karl picked up the pace, leaving Wohtansen behind. The lodges of the
village were set in a wide circle, surrounding a grassy common area, cleared
patches with grids and stones for cooking fires on the near side, water vats on the far side. Blood Price 225 Thirty or forty bodies littered the green.
Slavers and Mel men, women, and children lay
across the grass, some dead, some
moaning from their wounds. But the battle wasn't over. Tennetty
parried a slaver's thrust, then lunged in
perfect extension, spitting him on her sword. She jerked the sword out
and turned to help Chak with his opponent. A few yards away from Tennetty and Chak,
Ahira ducked under his enemy's swing, then
swung his battle-axe. The axe didn't slow as it cut through the slaver's
torso. But Rahff was in trouble. Karl ran toward
the boy, hoping he'd make it in time, knowing that he wouldn't. Rahff stood between Aeia and a tall,
long-haired swordsman. The boy's bloody left
arm hung uselessly; a long, bloody gash ran from elbow to shoulder. The swordsman beat Rahffs blade aside and slashed. Rahff screamed. His belly opened like an overripe fruit. Karl was only a few
yards away; he dropped the sword and leaped, his arms outstretched. As the slaver pulled back his sword for a
final thrust, Karl landed on him, bowling
him over. Before the slaver could
bring his sword into play, Karl grabbed the man's head and twisted, neckbones snapping like pencils. He pounded the slaver's face with his
fists, not knowing if the man was already dead, not caring. "Karl." The dwarfs face was
inches away from his. Ahira gripped Karl's hands. "Rahffs alive. He
needs help." Karl turned. The boy lay sprawled on the
grass, his head cradled on Aeia's lap, his hands clawing at his wounds, trying to hold his belly closed. "Tennetty," Karl snapped. "Find my horse—healing draughts in the saddlebags." "On my way," she called back,
her voice already fading in the distance. Rahffs arm
was badly gashed; a long, deep cut ran 226 THE
SWOflD AND THE CHAIN from the elbow almost to the
shoulder. His whole left side and much of the ground underneath it was soaked with dark blood. Rahff smiled weakly,
trying to raise his head. "Karl, you're alive," he said, his voice
weak. "I told them you would be." "Shh. Just lie
there." Karl ripped a strip of cloth from his breechclout and slipped it around
the upper part of Rahff s left arm. He tied a quick slipknot, then pulled it as tight as he
could. That would keep him from bleeding to death from that wound. But what about the
belly? There was nothing he
could do. Direct pressure would just spread the boy's intestines all over the
meadow; there was no way to clamp all the bleeding veins and arteries shut. Just a few minutes. That's all he needs.
Just a few minutes. Tennetty
would be back with the healing draughts and then— "Chak, Wohtansen's somewhere around.
He should know where the Eriksens keep
their healing draughts." Without a
word, Chak ran off. Rahff coughed; a
blood-flecked foam spewed from his lips. "Aeia's fine, Karl. I took care
of her. Just as you said we were supposed to." "Shut up,
apprentice." Karl forced a smile to his face. "If you'll just keep
still for a moment, Tennetty or Chak will be back with a bottle, and we'll fix you right up." "I did right, didn't I? She's fine,
isn't she?" He looked up at Karl as though Aeia weren't there. "She's
just fine, Rahff. Shh." Ahira laid a hand on Karl's shoulder.
"The boy was overmatched. That slaver went for Aeia, and Rahff couldn't
wait for me to finish off mine." "How the hell did they get by
you?" Karl snarled. "I told Wohtansen to tell you to hide on the
path." Ahira shrugged. "Just too many of
them. Six of them engaged Chak, Tennetty, and me, while the others ran past. By
the time we killed ours off and got up to the Blood Price 227 village . . ." He shook his head.
"They went crazy, Karl. Most
of them didn't bother trying to capture anyone, they just started hacking.
Mainly trying to wound the Mel, it seemed. I guess they figured we'd be so busy
treating the injured that we wouldn't have time to chase after them. A lot of them got away, Karl. After
they had their fill of killing." Their fill of
killing. They're going to learn what a fill of killing is. "Just take it
easy, Rahff. Just another moment or two." Rahff s hand gripped
Karl's. "I'm not going to die, am I?" " 'Course not." Hurry up, Tennetty,
Chak. Hurry. He doesn't have much time. "Ahira, find the Eriksen wizard. Maybe he knows—" The dwarf shook his
head. "Pile of cinders; the slavers' wizard got a flame spell through to him." Rahffs breathing was becoming more
shallow. Karl laid a finger on the boy's
good wrist. His pulse was rapid, thready. Come on, Tennetty. At a cry of pain,
Karl looked up. Coming around from behind a hut, Chak ran toward him, an uncorked brass bottle cradled in his arms. White-lipped, he
knelt beside Karl, pouring the liquid into the boy's open belly. The healing draughts pooled amid the blood
and the gore. It's not working. Karl slipped a hand behind Rahffs head,
prying the jaw open with his other hand so Chak could pour healing draughts into the boy's mouth. It puddled in Rahffs mouth. The overflow
ran down the boy's cheek and onto Aeia's
lap. Chak lowered the
bottle. "He's dead, Karl. It won't do him any good." "Keep pouring." Gripping Rahffs arm tightly, Karl couldn't
feel a pulse. He slipped a finger to the boy's throat. 228 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN Nothing. Karl spread the
fingers of his left hand across Rahff s chest, and pounded the back of that hand
with his fist, all the while cursing himself for never having taken a CPR course. Live, damn you, live. "I said to keep pouring. Drip some on
his arm." He put his mouth over the boy's, pinched Rahff s nostrils with his left hand, and breathed in. And
again, and again, and again . . . He became aware that Ahira was shaking
him. "Let him go, Karl. Let him go. He's dead." The dwarf gathered
Karl's hands in his and pulled him away. The boy's head fell back, limp. Glazed,
vacant eyes stared blankly up at Karl.
Slowly, Chak knelt down and closed
Rahff s eyes. A drop fell on Rahffs face, then another.
Aeia wept soundlessly, her tears running down her cheeks and falling onto Rahff. Karl rose and led
Aeia away from the body. At Chak's low moan, he noticed for the first time that
the little man was clutching the side of his waist. A bloodstain the size of a dinner plate
spread out across Chak's sarong. "Drink
some," Karl said quietly, motioning toward the bottle. "Then give the rest to the wounded.
And give them whatever Tennetty comes back
with, if it's needed." "Fine." Chak raised the bottle
to his lips, then poured some of the
healing draughts into his own wound. The wound closed
immediately. Visibly getting stronger,
Chak gripped his falchion. "Can I kill Woh-tansen, or do you want
to?" Karl
jerked around. "What?" "I'd better show you. Take that
sword. You'll be wanting it." Karl walked over to
where the sword lay and stooped to pick it up. "Aeia, go find Tennetty." "No.
I want to stay with you." She clung to him, her Blood Price 229 tears wet
against his side. "But what about Rahff?" Ahira
sighed. "I'll take care of him." "There's ... no
rush, Aeia." He blinked back the tears. "It doesn't hurt him
anymore." He turned to Chak. "Take
me to Wohtansen." Behind a hut, Wohtansen was ministering to
a wounded woman, pouring healing draughts down her throat and into a deep gash
in her belly. "Tell
me," Karl said. Chak spat. "He found two bottles
of the stuff, but he couldn't be bothered
to bring one for Rahff. I had to pry it
from his fingers." Karl stood over
Wohtansen and spoke quietly. "Stand up, you bastard." Wohtansen didn't glance up. "I'll
speak to you in a moment." Karl reached out a hand and lifted
Wohtansen by the hair, dropping the sword so that he could slap the Mel's face with his free hand. In the back of his mind he realized that
hitting a clan wizard and war leader might possibly trigger an attack by the
remaining Mel; certainly it would make Karl persona non grata throughout
Melawei. But he
didn't care. "Why didn't you bring it over there?
We could have saved him," he shouted, punctuating every word with a slap.
"Why didn't you—" He caught himself, letting Wohtansen's limp form drop to the ground. Chak felt at Wohtansen's neck. "He's
still alive." Laying the edge of his blade against the Mel's neck, he
looked up at Karl. "Should I fix that?" "You leave him
alone!" The Mel woman shrilled up at Karl. "That boy was a stranger. Not one of ours." Aeia launched herself at the woman,
pounding her little fists into the woman's
face until Karl pulled her off. "Come
on, Aeia, let's go." They gathered on the
beach, half a mile away from the 230 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN sands where the bodies lay. Off in the
distance, the Wort-hog still
burned, sending sparks and cinders shooting hundreds
of feet into the night sky. A few yards from where they sat, Rahffs
body lay, wrapped in a blanket. / won't have him
buried in Melawei soil. I won't have his body polluted that way. Rahff would be buried
in the Cirric.
Not here. Karl looked from
face to face. All were grim, although Tennetty's expression was a mix of
satisfaction and frustration.
Karl could understand the first; after all, she'd gotten her quota of slavers.
But the frustration? "Tennetty?
What is it?" She shook her head,
her straight hair whipping around her face. "I can't find him. The one
that killed Fialt. I've looked at all the bodies, but. . ." She pounded her
fist on the sand. "He
got away." "No, he didn't." Karl waved a
hand at the burning wreck. "The one who killed Fialt was the leader,
right? Black hair, thin smile—" In light from the
burning ship, a smile flickered across her sweat-shiny face. "You killed
him?" "Yes. He and some of his friends
trapped me in Gan-ness" cabin. So they
thought." She looked at him
for a long moment, her face blank, unreadable. Then: "Thank you, Karl." She gripped his hand in both of hers for just a moment, then
dropped his hand and turned away. She walked a few yards, then stopped,
watching the burning wreck. Aeia stared down at a spot in front of
her, picking up sand and letting it dribble through her fingers. Soundlessly,
she rose, walked over to the pile of driftwood where Carrot and Pirate stood
hitched, and stroked Carrot's face. The horse snorted, then nuzzled her. Karl walked over and
stood beside her. "You're going to miss Carrot, eh?" "No." Carrot lowered her head.
Aeia put her cheek against the horse's neck. "I can't. I can't stay
here." Blood Price 231 He stroked her shoulder. "They didn't
understand about Rahff. They didn't know he
was your friend." His words sounded false, even in his own ears.
But he couldn't try to push her into
leaving home. "No. They just didn't care. I ..." her voice trailed off into sobs.
Aeia turned and threw her arms around Karl, burying
her face against him. Tears wet his side. "Go talk it
over with your parents, with your people. If you want to come with us, you can." He ran his fingers
through her hair. "You know that." "No. I won't
talk with them. They let Rahff die. I want to go with you." "Think
it over." "But—" He pried her arms away. "Just think
it over." He turned and walked back to the others. Ganness sprawled on the sand, visibly
relieved to be alive. In a while, he'd once
again start regretting the loss of
his ship. But it wouldn't hurt him as much as losing the Ganness' Pride had. Chak had been through all this before.
Just another day in the life of a soldier
of fortune. Sure. "Ahira?" The dwarf
looked up at him, not saying a word. "What
the hell do we do?" Ahira shrugged.
"I think it's time we go home. At least for now." "I
know. It's just that I wish . . ." "But you wish
this victory had been bloodless, at least for our side. And you wish that Wohtansen had had as much concern for one of us as for one of his own.
And you wish that the world were a
fine and simple place, where every problem you can't solve with your
head you can solve with one simple blow from
your sword. Right?" Ahira shook his
head. "Doesn't work that way, Karl." Ahira pushed the hilt of his battleaxe into the sand and scooped up handfuls to scour the congealed blood
from its 232 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN head. "Just doesn't work that way.
You're trying to start a revolution; one that will shake this whole damn world, turn it upside down.
Didn't Thoreau say something about revolutions not being hatched in a
soft-boiled egg? "Before we're
done, rivers of blood will flow. And not just the blood of slavers, either. A
lot of good people are going to die, and die horribly. That's a fact, Karl.
Yes?" Karl nodded. "Yes." Ahira sat silently for so long that Karl
thought the dwarf was finished. Just as Karl was
about to speak, Ahira shook his head. "Karl, what it really comes down to
is whether you think the end
justifies the means." Ahira chuckled. "Sounds hideous, doesn't it?" "It does, at that." Still, Ahira
was right. The world was not full of nice,
clean, easy choices. And wishing that it
was would never make it so. The battleaxe now
clean, the dwarf rose to his feet and strapped the axe to his chest. He flexed his hands,
then finger-combed his hair. "You asked where we go from here. I think we take off and walk back
toward Clan Wohtan. Ganness says the slavers' ship is there, with only a
skeleton guard. We'll take the ship, kill the slavers, and free the Mel and Ganness' crew. Then we can give Ganness the
ship—" "We
do owe him a ship." "Two, actually.
We'll have him drop us off as close to the Pandathaway-Metreyll road as he can.
We buy a few more horses, and
ride back to the valley." Chak joined them. "Except for losing
Rahff, we haven't done too badly here. The
wizards lost one of their own; maybe
they won't be so eager to send guild members along on slaving raids into Melawei." To hell with that.
Who cares if—He caught himself. So the Mel weren't all nice people. Did that make it okay to
clap collars around their necks? Aeia clutched at his hand. "I'm
coming with you. I won't stay here." Blood Price 233 Tennetty pulled her away. "Nobody
will make you stay here." She patted
the hilt of her sword. "I swear it." "But what do we do about Rahff?" Aeia shrilled. There wasn't any answer to that. Killing
Wohtansen wouldn't change it. Rahff was
dead, and he'd stay dead. Like Jason
Parker, like Fialt. And probably like me, before this is all
over. He stopped and
picked up his own sword, belting it around his
waist. He gripped the sharkskin hilt for a moment. It felt good,
comfortable, familiar in his hand. "Ganness, you sure that the slavers don't have another wizard with them?" "Yes." Ganness nodded. "But
why do you care? You have the sword." Karl ,didn't answer. He lifted the
sword of Arta Myrdhyn, holding it with both hands. The bright steel caught the flicker of the Warthog's flames. Once more, dark shapes moved across the
blade, forming sharp letters. Keep me, they
said. No. Karl walked to the edge of the beach, then
into the Cirric until the water rose to his
knees. He held the sword over his head, the hilt
clenched in both hands. Okay, Deighton, you've got me to do your dirty work for you. I'll probably die with my
blood pouring out of me, as Rahff did. "But
not my son, Arta Myrdhyn. Not my son." He swung the sword over his head three
times, then threw it with every ounce of strength he had left. It tumbled end over end through the air;
Karl turned back toward the beach, not
caring where the sword fell. Ahira's
eyes were wide. "Look at that." Karl turned back.
Ghostly fingers of light reached out of the water and caught the sword, then
pulled it underwater. A quick glimmering, and the sword was gone. For now. It doesn't matter if you keep the sword
here for him. Karl shook his head. Not my son. "Okay, people, let's get 234 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN going. We've got some traveling to do before
we reach Clan Wohtan." Chak nodded. "A couple days'
travel, a quick fight, a day or so getting the pirate ship ready for sea, a tenday
at sea, and quite a few more
tenday's ride, and then we're home." Tennetty shrugged. "Sounds easy to me." PART FIVE: Home CHAPTER SEVENTEEN: Jason Home is where one starts from. As we grow older The
world becomes stranger, the pattern more complicated Of dead
and living. Not the intense moment Isolated, with no before and after, But a
lifetime burning in every moment . . . —T. S. Eliot Tennetty kicked Pirate into a canter, coming even with Karl, then slowing her horse down to a walk. Carrot whinnied, lifting her feet a bit
higher as Karl rode her through the tall
grasses. "Easy, Carrot." He patted her
neck, then glared at Tennetty. "Don't do that—she likes to be out in
front." She shrugged. It was
possible that Tennetty could have cared less about something than she did about what Carrot wanted
or didn't want, but only barely. "How long?" Fine. On this
trip,-I didn't have Slovotsky asking "Are we there yet?" all the damn
time. Instead, I've got Tennetty asking "How long is it going to
be?" Three times in the morning, four in the afternoon, twice when we're sitting around the campfire in the evening. I
could set my watch by her. If I had a watch. It had taken a couple of weeks on the
newly named Ganness' Revenge to arrive at the little fishing village of Hindeyll,
then weeks of travel on the Pandathaway- 237 238 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Metreyll road to get to the Waste,
another month to skirt the Waste and cross into the outskirts of Therranj. Of course, we could have cut out some time
if we hadn't jumped those slavers near
Wehnest. Backtracking to chase them down must have cost us a week. At
least. Not a bad raid,
though; it had added a sackful of coin, three horses, and another member to
their party. Peill was a nice
addition to the group; Karl had never met anyone with such a talent for tracking as the elf. He turned to see the
tall elf riding next to Ahira's pony, Chak and Aeia on the dwarfs other side, while Ahira continued the English lesson. Guess this stuff about elves and dwarves
not getting along doesn't apply when the dwarf is the one who shatters the elf's chains. Peill's skills with a longbow could come
in handy, particularly if he could teach
others to use it. The trouble with
the crossbows was that their rate of fire was just too damn low,
although they did have the advantage of greater
accuracy. But from ambush, a few good longbowmen
might be able to finish off a group of
slavers before they even knew that they were under attack. Then again, it would be hard for a
longbowman to conceal himself; a crossbowman
could shoot while prone, or from a perch in a tree. . . . Well, it was
something to think about, anyway. Maybe talk over with Chak. But I can do that
later. We're almost home, and we all deserve a vacation. "I asked you, 'How long?' "
Tennetty glared at him. "If you're
going deaf, you can damn well count me out of the next trip." Perhaps twenty miles across the plain, the
ground sloped upward into an area of blackened, burned ground. Beyond that, the
valley lay. "I
figure we'll get there sometime tomorrow." It was
almost over. For now. But only for now. Jason 239 Karl sighed. I'm never going to be done
with blood. Not until the day I die. 'Then again, if you
don't learn to keep your eyes open while you're feeling sorry for yourself, that could be anytime now.* "Ellegonl" He scanned the sky.
Nothing but clouds, and a few birds to the east. Where are you? * Try behind you.* Karl turned in the saddle; above and
behind him, a familiar shape dropped out of
the blue sky. *I usually come this way on the returning
leg of my patrol,* the dragon said. Both Carrot and Pirate snorted and held
their ground as the dragon landed; the
other horses galloped away in different directions, their riders vainly
trying to control the animals' panic. Tennetty swore as she struggled with
Pirate's reins. "Easy, now. Easy, damn you. The idiot dragon's just trying
to scare you, not eat you." *Good to see you too, Tennetty.* "Try
giving a little warning next time." "Cut the crap, both of you," Karl snapped. "Ellegon, how is Andy-Andy? And the baby?" A gout of fire roared into the sky. *Took
you long enough to ask. * Don't
play games with me, Ellegon. *Both your wife and son are fine. * My son. Karl shook his head.
// ever anyone wished for a daughter . . . "You stay away
from my son, Deighton," he whispered. "Just leave him alone." Across the plain, Aeia and Chak had reined
their horses down to a canter, while
Ahira's and Peill's mounts still
galloped away. "Just as well," Tennetty said.
"Might teach them all something about
keeping their animals under control." She patted at Pirate's neck, then held out a hand to Karl. "Give
me your reins." "Huh?" 240 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN She jerked a thumb at
the dragon. "I think you might be able to persuade Ellegon to give you a
ride the rest of the way home. I'll gather the others together and bring them all in sometime
tomorrow." It was tempting, but
. . . "I'd better stay." The group was Karl's responsibility, until they
got home. He could relax then. *Idiot.* "Idiot,"
Tennetty echoed. She rolled her eyes, looking toward heaven for reassurance.
"Ellegon, explain to Karl how his wife would feel about his being gone a day
longer than
necessary." *Well ... I
don't think Andrea would exactly appreciate
it. She's been a bit worried; she was hoping you'd be back by now. * "You sure things are safe around here?" *I was just finishing
my patrol, Karl.* The dragon pawed at the grass. 'Though you could be right, come to think of it. I smell
a nest of rabbits somewhere around here; maybe your whole party will get eaten
if you're not here to protect them. If it will make you happy, I'll be willing to fly back
and baby-sit Ahira and the rest after I drop you off at home.* "The reins,
please." Tennetty snapped her fingers. "Get moving." He laughed. "You
win." He jumped from Carrot's saddle, tossing the reins to Tennetty.
"See you tomorrow," he said, climbing up to Ellegon's back. The dragon's wings
began to beat, moving faster and faster until they were only a blur, whipping
so much grass
and dust into the air that Karl had to close his eyes. Ellegon leaped skyward. *I've got strict
instructions about where to set you down,* he said, as the ground dropped away
beneath them. As they passed over
Chak and Aeia, Karl returned their waves. EllegonP *Be quiet for a while; I'm going to put on some speed. * Jason 241 His wings began to work even faster, the wind drawing tears out of Kail's
eyes. Karl put his head to
the dragon's rough hide and held on. * Almost home. * The rush of wind slowed. Karl raised his
head. They were flying over what had been a burned rise leading to the valley. It had become even more green; soon, the evidence that a fire
had once burned would be gone. The valley spread
out below. When Karl had left, the encampment had been one wooden wall, a stone fireplace, and two wagons. There had been some changes. More than
thirty log cabins spread out along the
shore of the lake, several of them with split-rail corrals for horses and
cattle. Children scampered around a wooden dock
that jutted out from the shore, pausing momentarily in their play to wave to
Ellegon as the dragon passed overhead. Where there had been only forest, there
now were fields, stalks of corn, and seas of wheat waving in the breeze. The fortifications had been completed;
they now enclosed a group of five houses,
one with a slow-turning waterwheel. Ellegon dove toward the bare-dirt
courtyard, braking with his wings. Mill? *Yes. Riccetti has done well, no?* No. 'You've all done well. Deftly avoiding the
network of hollowed half-logs that piped water to the five houses, the dragon
landed inside the walls. Karl dismounted. 'Welcome home.* To his right, a familiar face peeked out
of an open-sided cabin whose chimney puffed smoke into the air. Walter Slovotsky, wearing a leather apron and
carrying a smith's hammer, ran into the courtyard, dropping the hammer
as he ran. 242 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "Karl." Slovotsky stuck out a
hand, drew it back, shaking his head. "To hell with it." He threw his
arms around Karl. "Dammit, you're breaking my
back," Karl said, untangling himself. Slovotsky chuckled.
"Fat chance." He turned. "Kirahl They're—" He
caught himself. "Is everyone—?" "We lost Fialt, but the rest of us
are fine." Except for Rahff. I wish he'd gotten the chance to— 'Later, Karl, later. Homecoming is
supposed to be a happiness. * You know a lot about happiness? *I'm
learning, Karl. Walter, take him to her.* Slovotsky led Karl
toward a cabin on the far side of the courtyard, talking nonstop as they walked.
"I wish we'd known you were getting back today. Lou's taken a party to the far side of
the valley. He found a cave full of bats a couple of months ago, and we're finally
getting them all cleared out." "Bats?" Karl removed his hand
from the hilt of his sword. "Some sort
of trouble?" "No." Slovotsky laughed.
"Just garden-variety fruit bats. They can give you a nasty bite, but
Thellaren— he's our cleric—can fix you right
up." "Cleric?" "Spidersect. Showed up one day, half
starved; seems he had some trouble with the
Therranji. Does one hell of a
business, although Andy and I had to reason with him about rates. The bastard was charging—" "Then why clear out the bats?" Slovotsky smiled knowingly. "Think
about it. What are bats good at
making?" "Baby bats, and bat sh—" Of
course. Karl raised a hand. "Never mind. I take it you've found some
sulfur, too." "You got it. No
willows around here. But oak seems to work okay." Take the
crystals of saltpeter from underneath any Jason 243 well-aged pile of excrement, add sulfur and powdered charcoal in
the right proportions, and voila!—gunpowder. Well, it was probably a
bit trickier than that, but not much. Maybe I'm not going to be needing longbows, after all. "It was Riccetti's idea. He
remembered reading that Cortez used bat
guano to make gunpowder." "I
didn't know Lou was a historian." "Only when it comes to making
things." Slovotsky nodded. "He's
already made some gunpowder—stinks to high
heaven when it burns—and I'm working on a flintlock right now." Slovotsky caught
himself as they stopped in front of the cabin's door. "Later; we'll have plenty of time. She's in
there, Karl." Slovotsky waved as he jogged off. "I'd better go see Kirah. We've been fattening a
calf." Karl opened the door and walked in. The cabin was well
kept, from the burnished wood of the floor to the ceiling timbers, hung with
unlit oil lamps. A beaded
curtain covered a doorway on the opposite wall. On the right-hand
wall, a rough table stood beneath a mottled glass window. On the left-hand wall, a pot of stew burbled merrily in the stone fireplace. Two huge wooden
chairs stood side by side in front of the fireplace, both with blankets padding
their seats. The arms of one
chair was stained with nicks and sweat marks;
the other looked new, unused. He unbuckled his
sword and hung it over the back of the newer chair. "Who is
it?" She pushed through the curtain, a wicker basket filled with clothes in her arms.
Her eyes grew wide. "Hi." "Hello." He wanted to reach
out, to run to her, but he couldn't. There was an almost palpable distance between them. The months of
separation had changed her, changed both of
them. 244 THE
S WORD AND THE CHAIN Worry lines had
begun to form around her eyes. Her hair was tangled, matted down. It wasn't just that she looked more
than a few months older. Her smile was strained. He could see her looking at the
changes in his face, not sure that she liked what she saw. There had been a time when Karl took the
world lightly, even while he took it
seriously. A time when he could push
the darkness away, when he could dismiss it, if only for a while, not merely
pretend that it didn't exist. There
had been a time when Karl had been basically a gentle man, sometimes forced into doing violent things, but always, deep inside, untouched by the
violence. That time was gone. Forever. It could never
be the same between them. The thought cut at him like a knife. "Andy, I—"
He fumbled blindly for the words. For the right words, the ones that would make
everything right between them. He couldn't find them. Maybe they didn't even exist. "No," she shrilled. She
threw the basket aside and ran to him. As he gathered her
into his arms and buried his face in her hair, he knew that he was both right
and wrong. Yes, there had been changes. No, things could never be the same. But they could be better. After a while, he
took a loose sleeve of her robe, wiped first at his own eyes, and then at hers. She looked up at
him, her eyes still tearing, still red. "Karl?" "Yes?" He ran his fingers through her hair. "If," she
said as she rested her face against his chest, "if you ever give
me another look like that, I swear I'll hit you. Don't you—" "Shh." 'Stupid humans.* Ellegon's
massive head peeked Jason 245 through
the open door. He snorted, sending ashes from the
fireplace swirling around the room. Karl raised his head. What is it
now? *You
always have to make things more complicated than
necessary, don't you?* "What are you getting at?" *Tell her you love her, idiot.* She pushed away from
him and smiled. "Yeah. Tell me you love me, idiot." She grabbed his hand. "But later. I've got someone for you to meet." She pulled him through the beaded curtain
and into the bedroom. Under the murky window, a cradle lay. It
was a plain wood box, mounted on two wooden
rockers. He peered inside. "Don't wake him," she whispered.
"It's a pain to get him back to
sleep." The baby, wrapped in a gray cotton diaper,
slept peacefully on the soft blankets. Karl
reached out a hand and gently
touched the child's soft cheek. Still asleep, the baby turned his head to nuzzle Karl's fingers. Karl
pulled his hand back. "He's so ...
small." "That's your opinion."
She snorted. "He sure as hell didn't
feel that way when I was flat on my back in labor. But he'll grow." "How old is he?" "Just under two months."
Andy-Andy slipped an arm around Karl's waist. "I named him Jason, after
Jason Parker. I hope that's okay; we didn't decide on a name before you left,
so ..." "The
name's fine." "I did good?" "Andy,
he's beautiful." *He takes after his mother. Fortunately.* CHAPTER EIGHTEEN: The Flickering Candle . . . the bravest
are surely those who have the clearest vision of what is before them, glory and
danger alike, and yet
notwithstanding go out to meet it. —Thucydides Walter Slovotsky walked quietly
around the bonfire and tapped
him on the shoulder. "Karl, take a walk with me," he said, his voice slurred. He snagged a bottle from one of the merrymakers, bowing an exaggerated
apology. Andy-Andy leaned over
and whispered in KarFs ear, "He's drunk again." "I noticed. Has this been happening a lot?" "Yes." She
nodded. "Ever since Kirah started to show. But I don't think it's just the expectant father jitters. Maybe you should go see what's wrong. I haven't
been able to get him to talk about it. Neither has Kirah." She cast a glance across the clearing. "And I'd
better go check on the baby." He chuckled.
"Between Ellegon and Aeia, I'm sure he's okay." Ellegon had told him that there were bears and pumas up in the mountains. Probably the animals
would continue to avoid the village. But if they didn't,
Ellegon could always fit an odd bear or puma into his diet. "Still
. . ." "Okay. See you later." "Not too much later, I hope. Kirah's going to keep Aeia 246 The Flickering Candle 247 and Jason tonight. No interruptions." Her eyes smiled a promise at him. Karl rose and followed Walter off into the
dark, leaving the bonfire behind them. The welcome-home party was in its
twelfth or thirteenth hour, but it hadn't let up. Some of the revelers kept the
music going with their flutes and drums; others loitered around the cooking fire, slicing off sizzling pieces of
roast calf from the slowly turning
spit. Tennetty, Chak, Peill, and Ahira looked
road-weary, having arrived only that
morning. Still, the four of them held
court, a few dozen meters from the fire, standing in a circle of fifty listeners, taking turns
relating the story of Karl Cullinane
on the Warthog. Six of the listeners drew Karl's
attention. A group of battle-scarred men,
they listened raptly, occasionally interrupting Tennetty or Chak to
press for more details. Karl had been introduced to them, but had forgotten
their names. But he hadn't forgotten the fact that they were former mercenaries, now engaged in the profession of taking on
slavers. Which means, he thought, that the whole world doesn't rest on my shoulders anymore. And it also means
I'm becoming a legend, he thought, and smiled. Probably have more volunteers than I can use, next
time. He sobered. That possibility might have its pluses, but it sure as hell had its minuses. As they walked,
Slovotsky passed him the clay bottle; Karl took another swig of the tannic wine that already had his head spinning. The fire and sound far enough behind them,
Karl seated himself on a projecting root of
an old oak, gesturing at Slovotsky
to join him. "What's bothering you?" "Me?"
Slovotsky snorted. He tilted back the bottle and drank deeply. "Nothing's bothering me, Karl. Not a
damn thing." Slovotsky was silent for a while. Then: "How soon are you planning on going out
again?" "Eager to get rid of me?" 248 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN "How
about an answer?" "Mmm, I don't want to leave
too soon. Maybe six months or so. I suspect
it'll take Pandathaway a while to put another team together. If they
don't just write off killing me as a lost
cause." Karl folded his
hands behind his head and leaned back against the bulk of the trees. "Besides, I think that the Slavers' Guild is going to be a bit too busy to go
looking for me." He closed his
eyes. "How many people have we got
here?" "Just over two hundred, as of
the last census. Seems to grow every day, practically. But it's not going to get
any easier: The size of the
slavers' caravans keeps growing. They're running scared, Karl. Which isn't
good; I'd rather have them fat and self-satisfied." Karl shrugged. "So we'll take bigger raiding parties." If this scheme of Riccetti's to make
some rifles panned out, he might not need a much larger team. Granted, the manufacture of cartridges was probably
decades away, but even a few flintlocks and blunderbusses would give them a huge edge. "Think
it through, Karl. Think it through." He opened his eyes
to see Slovotsky shaking his head. Karl grabbed his arm. "What the hell is
bothering you?" "Take a look at the silo?" "No,
but what does that have to do with anything?" "It has to do with everything. We're
getting a damn fine yield for the acreage. Better than any of the locals have ever seen. And this is just the first real
harvest. Wait until next year." "This is doom?" "Yup. Free
societies ..." Walter
interrupted himself to down the last of the wine. He flipped the bottle end
over end, then caught it by the neck, setting it carefully on the ground.
"Free societies produce. You should see how hard these poor bastards work, once they understand that what
they grow or make is theirs." "Didn't Riccetti say something about taxes?"
The Flickering Candle 249 "Sure."
Slovotsky shrugged. "Two percent of production or income, payable to the town treasurer— that's me, for now. We've been using it to sponsor
public works like the mill, pay Riccetti and your wife for running the
school, grubstake new arrivals. Matter of fact, I'm going to have to assess
what you've brought back. Quite a bit of gold and platinum, no?" "A bit. Just net, right?" Idly,
he wondered what the tax on the sword of
Arta Myrdhyn would have been. "Net. No tax on what you make and
spend outside. Only what you bring back, or make here. Keeps things simpler.
But can we leave all that for tomorrow?" "Sure. But would you just come out
and tell me what the hell has got you
running scared?" "Running scared
is right." Slovotsky snorted. "You still don't see it, do you? Free societies
produce more than slave societies. Always
have, always will. Right?" "Right. So?" "So, that means
we're going to continue to flourish and grow. So, eventually we're going to
attract some notice. So, when
we do, some bright baron or prince or lord is going
to work out that we just might overflow this valley and spread out, and
eventually, challenge his power." He shook his head. "So . . .
how long do you think that the slave
societies are going to let us get away with it? A year, almost
certainly. Five, probably; ten, possibly; twenty, maybe. But not forever, Karl.
Not forever." Dammit, but that made sense. The only
reason they had gone unmolested so far was
the small size and remote location of
their colony. "So," Walter went on,
"we're in a race. We have to grow
large enough, strong enough, quick enough, so that we can take on all
comers. Or . . ." "Or? You've got an alternative?" "Or your kid and mine grow up as
orphans. If they're lucky. We're going to
have to keep our wives pregnant all the time, rescue and arm as many
slaves as we can, and work our butts off to
have a chance at winning the race. 250 THE
SWORD AND THE CHAIN Any chance at all." Slovotsky
smiled in the dark. "Let me ask you again: How soon are you planning on
going out again?" Karl sighed. "Give me ten days."
Dammit. "I need to spend some
time with Andy." Slovotsky echoed his sigh. "Take
twenty. I'd better break in a new treasurer, and I've got some smithing to finish before we go." "We?" "We. Slovotsk/s Law Number
Forty-three: Thou shalt put thy money where is thy mouth.' " He rose and
held out a hand. "Count me in." Karl accepted the
hand and let Walter pull him to his feet. "So what do we do now, Karl?" "We?" Karl shrugged. "We
don't do anything now. I'm going to let my wife drag me off to our bedroom.
You're going to finish getting drunk tonight, because you're going back into training tomorrow." He threw an arm around Slovotsky's shoulder. "And after
that. . ."he let his voice trail off. The words escaped him. Ellegon? Can you hear me? *No, not at all. Not one—* Please. Give me the words. *No, Karl.
You don't need me for that. You already know
the words. * But I don't. *Try.* "We . . . survive, Walter. We . . ." Gentle fingers stroked Karl's mind. "... we
protect ourselves, our families, our friends, and our own." Fialt had said that, and Fialt was right. But there was something more. "We keep the
flame of freedom burning, because
that is why we all are here." "Fair enough." *I told you that you knew the words.* And you're always right, eh? * Of course.* CHAPTER NINETEEN: The Hunter I am in
blood, Stepped
in so far, that, should I wade no more, Returning were as tedious as go o'er. —William Shakespeare He lived like a jackal, sleeping
during the day in a hollow under
a palm tree, feeding at night at the garbage pits behind the village, always running for cover at the slightest sound. He never tried for his own kills; anything
that could betray his presence had to be avoided. There were just too many of them. All of his burns and
cuts had long since healed, but the scars remained. The bottle of healing draughts he had managed to
drink while the fire burned around his bleeding
body had kept him alive, although only barely; it had not brought him
back to unmarked health. He waited, feeding and gathering his
strength for the hard trip over the mountains. That was the route he would have to take. The sea was closed to him;
even were another raiding ship to
come this way, they would hardly recognize
him as one of their own. But he always kept his pouch with him. And every once in a
while, Ahrmin would unwrap the glass sphere and watch the dismembered finger floating in the yellowish oil,
pointing unerringly to the north and east. And smile. 251 |
||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
|
© 2026 Библиотека RealLib.org
(support [a t] reallib.org) |